Untitled
Untitled
Untitled
and Education
Schools, Children, and Families
Global Migration
and Education
Schools, Children, and Families
Edited by
Leah D. Adams
Eastern Michigan University
Anna Kirova
University of Alberta
Routledge
Taylor &. Francis Group
New York London
Copyright © 2006 by Lawrence Erlbaum Associates, Inc.
All rights reserved. No part of this book may be reproduced in
any form, by photostat, microform, retrieval system, or any other
means, without prior written permission of the publisher.
Routledge Routledge
Taylor & Francis Group Taylor & Francis Group
711 Third Avenue 2 Park Square, Milton Park
New York, NY 10017 Abingdon, Oxon OX14 4RN
Adams, Leah.
Global migration and education : school, children, and families /
Leah D. Adams and Anna Kirova.
p. cm.
Includes bibliographical references and index.
ISBN 0-8058-5837-7 (cloth : alk. paper) — ISBN 0-8058-5838-5
(pbk. : alk. paper)
1. Children of immigrants—Education. 2. Home and school.
3. Multicultural education. 4. Emigration and immigration.
I. Kirova, Anna. II. Title.
LC3745.A33 2006
,
371.826 912—dc22
2006008679
This book is dedicated to Anna's son, Peter, whose experiences as
an immigrant child inspired her research in this area and to
the newly immigrated students and parents Leah worked with as
a teacher, who infused her with a lifelong interest in global
migration and education.
About the Editors
vii
Contents
Preface xiii
Acknowledgments xvii
IX
X CONTENTS
This book is committed to the understanding of children in schools all over the
world, specifically those who are newly arrived from another nation or from a
very different society and environment within the same nation. Globalization is
both multifaceted in its operations and massive in its reach and implications for
all aspects of life. Through the new considerable fissures as well as the new
bridges it has created between societies and states, it has become an emblem of
both hope and apprehension. As one of the most commonly found institutions and
most commonly shared experiences, education is in the center of the social and
cultural processes that result from and influence the economic and political
changes. Although one of the goals of education can be seen by some as repro-
ducing national culture and national identity, preparing the human capital as a
force for future change is a goal shared by most education institutions in the
world. However, with the increased diversification of the student body, rethinking
the role of schools in general, and their moral and political responsibilities in con-
temporary societies in particular, has become essential to educational discourse.
Issues of justice, questions of both opportunities in and outcomes of schooling,
and tensions produced by the assertion of ethnicities and cultural identities within
the educational landscape have challenged educators and policymakers around
the globe.
The process of children moving from one context to another and the struggles
of schools to both stabilize and enhance the result for those children are the focus
of this book. This book is intended to help teachers, administrators, teacher edu-
cators, and all who are interested in the educational milieu and its populace to
gain a deeper understanding of the related issues. Although it acknowledges that
schools cannot take on all of societies' ills or assume full responsibility for pro-
viding all of the support services for all families in the community, this book
engages the reader in exploring how the issues faced by immigrant children and
their parents are addressed by educators as they interact in school settings. By
providing a close look at some of the common challenges to, and successes in,
xiii
xiv PREFACE
. Multiple Global Issues for Immigrant Children and the Schools They Attend
. They Are Here: Newcomers in the Schools
. Views and Voices of Immigrant Children
. Far From Home With Fluctuating Hopes
. Searching for New Ways to Belong
As with any division of materials, the placement of chapters was often a diffi-
cult or arbitrary decision reflecting both the commonalities and the individuality
of the chapters. Introductions are provided for each part; these introductions both
tie the part chapters together and offer insights as to why the particular focus of
a chapter is vital to the overall content of the book.
We believe that this book—intended for researchers, students, school profes-
sionals, and educational policymakers and analysts around the world in the fields
of multicultural education, child psychology, comparative and international edu-
cation, educational foundations, educational policy, and cross-cultural studies—
will be highly relevant as a text for courses in these disciplines. The content in the
wide range of chapters may provide a look at a different reality for those who
were less aware of situations in countries poles apart economically and culturally
from their own. Thus, we feel that this book makes a notable contribution to
understanding the experiences of immigrant children, their families, and teachers
as they interact and strive to negotiate the shared space we call school and to iden-
tifying future directions in making school a better place for all.
Acknowledgments
We wish to acknowledge the 29 authors who have contributed their expertise, vast
knowledge, and writing skills to make this book a reality. It is truly a collabora-
tive effort of 31 of us from 14 nations with multifaceted experiences, comple-
mentary views, a wide range of professional experiences and life stories, and
differing approaches to both life and research. Those 29 authors have our highest
respect and lifelong gratitude. We all worked toward a common goal based on our
mutual commitment to the smoothest transition possible and a quality education
for all immigrant children, whoever they are and wherever they may be.
Our gratitude also goes to the entire staff at LEA especially Naomi Silverman
and Erica Kica, expert handholders who offered unflagging support and encour-
agement. We would also want to acknowledge the assistance provided by Naomi
Stinson, who has helped us tremendously with the editing of the chapters.
Most important of all, we must say thanks to our families and our colleagues
for their tolerance of the effects of stress and hard work on our dispositions and
on the time available to spend with those we care about.
xvii
Chapter 1
Leah D. Adams
Eastern Michigan University, USA
Anna Kirova
University of Alberta, Canada
Migration is not new. Human beings have always migrated; much of the
prehistoric and historic record focuses on the migration of people. Although the
highest percentage of world population migration was between 1850 and 1910,
when as much as 10% of the world population was on the move, the transitional
displacement of people appears to have become endemic by the beginning of 21st
century, with more people on the face of the globe then ever before and some 200
million living away from their country of birth (Global Commission on
International Migration, 2005). Every nation is a sending, receiving, or transient
nation for migrants, and there is every indication that international mobility and
the challenges associated with transition will continue to affect future generations
(Langford, 1998; RAND Corporation, 2000; Schiff & Ozden, 2005). The trend
has significant effects on the racial and ethnic composition of many of the world's
schools (Rong & Preissle, 1998).
Although transnational migration is an increasingly recognized international
term for people moving from one country to another, because of the international
nature of this volume, the chapters and introductory sections use various terms for
1
2 ADAMS AND KIROVA
transnational migrants or for those who move from rural to urban locations. In
many countries, particularly in North America, immigration is the term for the act
of people moving from other nations to settle, and people who do so are termed
immigrants; the term migrants is reserved for those who move within national
borders. In Europe and in some other areas, new arrivals from other nations are
sometimes referred to as migrants, and, in some instances, the terms immigrants
and migrants are used interchangeably. In general, although the terms immi-
grants, migrants, and newcomers are used differently in various parts of the
world, they typically refer to people who have left their places of birth by choice
to settle in a new place either permanently or temporarily. The terms used to
describe the people who have left their homes not by choice are refugees, asylum
seekers, and displaced people. For the purposes of this book, we decided that
readers would be able to cope with the interchanging of the terms and that it
would be inappropriate to alter the authors' preferred terms. The semantics used
to describe the phenomenon are not as important as the recognition of the
magnitude of the global phenomenon of movement from one nation to another
and the impact on societies, communities, and schools.
The particular focus of this volume is the factors that shape the lives of fami-
lies with young children in transition as they experience schooling in their new
location. We see these experiences as fundamental to the study of global migra-
tion of people, because they provide a glimpse into how schools might allow
space for the expression of people's ideas, languages, social behaviors, ideolo-
gies, and ways of seeing the world. Educators and school environments are the
key to facilitating the socialization and acculturation of immigrant children. It is
in schools that children often first encounter in-depth contact with the host cul-
ture, which leads to school becoming a central part of life for the children (Hones
& Cha, 1999; Trueba, Jacobs, & Kirton, 1990; Yale Center in Child Development
and Social Policy, 2003). As Corson (1998) pointed out, schools are where most
of a culture's dominant discourses are exchanged; most simple, everyday con-
ventional acts are observed; and new ways of doing things are learned. The cul-
tural capital valued in schools may not be equally available to the newcomer who
brings another set of cultural conventions into the classroom (Suårez-Orozco &
Suårez-Orozco, 2001). Events experienced by children and their families before
entering the school system, as well as the experiences of schooling in the host
country, to a large extent affect the kind of relationship children will develop with
the new culture and how they will begin to shape their new identities.
In the past, the paths of migration were more predictable, that is, from less
economically developed countries to more highly developed areas. Current global
economic trends, the growth of global communication, and greater access to
transportation have affected this pattern of migration. Although it can still be
expected that most immigrant families struggle financially and that children in
immigrant families are more likely to be poor and to live in crowded housing
1. GLOBAL MIGRATION AND EDUCATION 3
conditions (Children Now, 2004; Segal 1993), this is not true of all immigrants.
Many highly skilled and well-educated workers, managers, and entrepreneurs are
among those who migrate (Fix & Passel, 2003). This trend has challenged the
traditional view of immigrants as people who are forced to move away from their
countries of origin to survive economically. Migration of skilled workers is often
referred to as a brain drain (Schiff & Ozden, 2005), and some of the world's
poorest countries have the highest incidence of this phenomenon. More than 50%
of the university-educated professionals from many countries in Central America
and the Caribbean live abroad; for some countries, this statistic is as high as 80%.
Most college-educated emigrants from developing countries go to the United
States, the European Union, Australia, and Canada. Canada and Australia have
the largest percentage of educated migrants among the total number of migrants,
and immigrants represent approximately 25% of the skilled labor force in
Australia, Luxembourg, and Switzerland (Schiff & Ozden, 2005).
Migration for the children of highly educated workers is not necessarily any
less challenging. Educated migrants often fail to find work that matches their
education levels; one of the main reasons is lack of fluency in the host language.
The family may struggle to obtain enough income for basic necessities, and many
new arrivals feel obliged to support family members in their home country.
Although the question arises as to whether the brain drain has adverse effects on
the sending nation, a World Bank report (Schiff & Ozden, 2005) clearly shows
that the remittances from migrants do help alleviate poverty in the home country.
Sending remittances adds to the financial strain on immigrant families, but teach-
ers should not assume that the parents of newly arrived children who live at or
near the poverty line have limited education or skills.
Although the trend toward global movement among highly skilled workers and
entrepreneurs still represents a small percentage of the overall number of people
in transitional migration, it illustrates one aspect of global change that results in
people considering themselves global citizens—comfortable living almost any-
where (Friedmann, 2002). Schools must be able to face the challenge of meeting
the needs of students who are well prepared for the curriculum and already global
citizens. It is important to consider that although importing culture, goods, and
foods, along with global media and media products, may facilitate the process of
becoming a global citizen, it also may lead to reduction in diversity through
hybridization or even assimilation. Noddings (2005) reminded us that in our
world of instant communication and swift travel, we have become keenly aware
of our global interdependence. Along with this awareness, we ponder the ques-
tion of global citizenship and how we can preserve diversity while seeking unity.
The forces behind international transitional migration cannot be reduced to
economic factors. Intolerance and political exclusion and various forms of vio-
lence, including armed conflicts, civil wars, ethnic cleansing, or natural disasters,
can and do force people away from their countries of origin to protect their own
4 ADAMS AND KIROVA
lives and those of their families. The United Nation High Commissioner for
Refugees (UNHCR, 1994) estimated that more than half of any refugee popula-
tion consists of children. Separation of families during flight (Boyden, de Berry,
Feeny, & Hart, 2002); rape, abduction, and trafficking of refugee children; illness
and malnutrition; loss of stability; and lack of education (Boyden et al., 2002;
Tollefson, 1989) are among the traumas refugee families with children may expe-
rience before entering the host country. The multiple losses of the children and
their families and the children's fears, confusion, sadness, loneliness, and alien-
ation are carried with them to their new schools (Kirova, 2001). Thus, these
premigration experiences present challenges to both the newcomers and the
people and institutions that receive them in the new locations. Educators who
work with immigrant and refugee children and their families must recognize the
social, economic, health, and education hardships faced by these people. At the
same time, educators need to recognize that many systemic challenges in educa-
tion have yet to be overcome. The plight of the immigrant who is marginalized in
the community through encountering xenophobia and economic, linguistic, or
cultural barriers is a reality that needs the attention of all members of the inter-
national education community.
Although the reasons behind peoples' migration are multifaceted and usually
involve a complex decision-making process that takes into consideration several
factors, the process of settlement and establishing a new pattern of life in the new
location after migration has some common elements for all transitional migrants.
For example, regardless of their level of education, many migrants, especially
those who are racially different from the dominant group, encounter varying
degrees of prejudice, racism, rejection, or indifference (Li, 2001; Moreau, 2000;
Nauck & Sattles, 2001). With regard to schools, recent studies (Gitlin, Buendía,
Crosland, & Doumbia, 2003) in the United States have shown a discrepancy
between what students, teachers, and administrators say about diversity and the
exclusionary practices in place in schools that lead to marginalization of immi-
grant children. These experiences point to unresolved power issues among the
cultural groups and indicate that the "mainstream population in the country of set-
tlement is almost always more powerful than the migrating group" (van de Vijver
& Phalet, 2004, p. 216). However, not all encounters with the dominant group are
negative. Depending on their encounters with the dominant culture, newcomers
may engage in "cultural frame switching," (Lafromboise, Coleman, & Gerton,
1993) which over time leads them to develop different relationships with the host
culture.
The change in an individual or cultural group that results from contact with
another culture is known as acculturation (McBrien, 2005). The process of accul-
turation, which once was seen as a unidimensional change in the direction of the
mainstream culture, is now envisaged as bidimensional (Berry & Sam, 1997), an
acknowledgment that immigrants increasingly choose options other than pursuing
1. GLOBAL MIGRATION AND EDUCATION 5
complete adjustment. For example, migrants who have positive relationships with
the mainstream culture and consider it important to combine elements of it with
their own integrate into the mainstream culture and become bicultural (Phalet &
Hagendoorn, 1996; Phalet, Van Lotringen, & Entzinger, 2000). Terms such as
biculturalism, transculturalism, and additive assimilation (McBrien, 2005) are
used to indicate the processes through which, depending on the circumstances,
people are able to move between cultures. Children of immigrants clustering
around a bicultural style of adaptation (Trueba & Bartolome, 2000) typically
emerge as cultural brokers who mediate the often-conflicting cultural currents of
home and the host culture.
Immigrant groups who live in ethnic enclaves in the host country may gain
sufficient momentum to develop and sustain their own culture through institutions
such as schools (van de Vijver & Phalet, 2004) and may consider maintaining
their own culture more important than establishing relationships with the host
culture. This strategy is known as separation or segregation. The opposite strat-
egy, which attempts complete absorption into the host culture and entails loss of
the original culture, is known as assimilation (Berry & Sam, 1996; Gordon,
1964). Assimilation is associated with cultural dissonance, where children
acquire the language and skills of their new culture, reject their parents' culture,
and often join "oppositional structures of marginalized peers" (Gibson, 2001,
p. 21). Trueba and Bartolome (2000) suggested that children in this pattern may
develop either an "ethnic flight style" or "adversarial style" of adaptation. An ethnic
flight style is expressed in the struggle of immigrant children and youth to mimic
the dominant group and attempt to join in, thereby rejecting their own ethnic
group—including parental authority, moral codes, values, and expectations—as
anachronistic and not current in the new country. The adversarial style of adapta-
tion is characterized by newcomer children's rejecting the institutions of the
dominant culture, including school and the formal economy. The resultant school
dropouts also tend to have significant problems with parents and relatives,
because the culturally constituted function of parental authority often becomes
severely corroded. It is from this situation, typically, that gangs emerge that exist
on the margins of the dominant society and construct spaces of competence in the
underground alternative economy or counterculture. Although these patterns
are more often seen in second- or third-generation children of immigrants,
recently arrived refugee children who lack a significant social support system are
especially vulnerable to this negative pattern of acculturation, also known as
subtractive acculturation (McBrien, 2005).
With the greater accessibility of technology, international transportation, and
the magnitude of migration that facilitates the formation of social networks
among ethnic groups after migration, more immigrants may choose to resist
assimilation. Also, because the assimilation doctrine among mainstream cultures
has largely been replaced by a climate of greater acceptance of migrants maintaining
6 ADAMS AND KIROVA
their culture of origin (van de Vijver & Phalet, 2004), transnational spaces created
in the receiving countries allow immigrants to establish and maintain productive
ties between their country of origin and the host country (Brittain, 2002).
Despite some current positive trends in overall societal acceptance of immi-
grants, educating children from diverse cultural, linguistic, ethnic, racial,
or religious backgrounds is perceived as problematic. Bias and preconceived
expectations on the part of educators are not limited to newly arrived children
(Lee, 2002; McBrien, 2005; Suárez-Orozco, 1989; Trueba et al., 1990). The
school's view of parents may be just as prejudiced and equally wrong. For exam-
ple, the new community may hold false impressions about women from countries
where a patriarchal culture predominates and strong cultural expectations
influence the lives of women. Erel (2002) pointed out that migrant women from
Turkey are generally perceived in an Orientalist manner as backward, oppressed,
and passive, with the family unit perceived as the main site of sexist oppression.
Her research reveals the self-representations of migrant women of Turkish back-
ground and provides a more complex view of mothering relations and migration
than the stereotypical fixation on tradition. Further, the mothering relationships
and the attainment of more autonomy may occur as a result of the migration
process. Izuhara and Shibata (2002) studied Japanese migrant women in the
United Kingdom and concluded that when removed from Japanese society, many
appreciated the reduced pressure to conform to Japanese social norms. At the
same time, it is essential for educators to recognize that reaching out to female
members of an immigrant household demands different strategies than when
looking to local residents for parental participation. Both sensitivity and cultural
understanding are needed.
In addition to being accepting of immigrants, schools and communities must
be prepared to adjust to the demographic changes that may accompany immigra-
tion (Bryceson & Vuorela, 2002; Segal, 1993; Yale Center, 2003). Although
fertility rates are declining in all developed nations, those who immigrate to these
countries may have larger families, and the women are more likely to be of child-
bearing age (RAND Corporation, 2005), which will affect school enrolments in
areas with high rates of immigration. Births in immigrant families accounted for
56% of the population growth in the United States in 2002 (Camerota, 2002).
Female immigrants in the United States also may have more children than women
in their home countries. For example, Mexican immigrant women have an aver-
age of 3.5 children, whereas women in Mexico average 2.4 children (Camerota,
2002). Friedmann (2002) pointed out that immigrants go primarily to urban areas,
where they may place a strain on already stretched services and infrastructure.
Urban schools may lack special comprehensive services needed to offer to newly
arrived students to ease their adjustment to the new education system. Conversely,
an increasing number of immigrants are now settling in rural areas (Bryceson &
Vuorela, 2004; Segal, 1993). Rural communities and schools may lack experience
1. GLOBAL MIGRATION AND EDUCATION 7
identification that were in place before resettlement (Hebert, 2001). Thus, identities
that are formed in the complex relationships between globalization, transnation-
alism, and transmigration remain fluid and open to transformation.
Immigrant children's identity formation is influenced by at least two distinct,
and sometimes contradicting, cultural systems: the home culture and the school
culture. As immigrant children begin to navigate the complex, often contradictory,
territories of home and host culture, socially structured hierarchies of authority such
as gender scripts, parental voice, values, and beliefs are often disrupted. The peer
group can become not only the primary point of reference for values and tastes but
also a source of social and emotional support, economic resources, and safety (De
Vos, 1992). Because of the emotional relevance of the peer group, the interpersonal
tone set by peers is an important variable in the adaptation of immigrant children.
Trueba and Bartolome (2000) suggested that identity and agency are important
factors in immigrant children's adaptation to the host culture.
Some common challenges revealed through the studies in this volume include
appropriate assessment and grade placement. Immigrant children arriving in a
school do not represent a homogeneous group and are usually difficult to catego-
rize. Some may come from economically stable, urban backgrounds where they
have been prepared from a young age for high-stakes, competitive academic tasks
such as achievement tests. These children know how to study and know that their
parents expect them to succeed (Bankston & Zhou, 2002). However, "doing well is
not the same as being well" (Mosselson, 2002, p. 408); high academic achievement
has been found to be negatively correlated with self-esteem and depression
(Bankston & Zhou, 2002). Conversely, some children have entered the host coun-
try with little or no prior schooling. They lack prior group experiences or may have
experienced strife and trauma, the memories of which impede their ability to
function in school. The knowledge and experience of these children is not of an
academic type and cannot be measured by the available standardized assessment
tools (Ogilvie et al., 2005). As a result, teachers may give high priority to socially
sensitive teaching and practice but may feel less competent to provide the adequate
level of content to the newcomer children. Paired with lack of appropriate curricu-
lum and curriculum materials, lack of proper information about the child's prior
educational experiences, and poor assessment of general knowledge and skills, edu-
cators' day-to-day life in a classroom with these children is challenging. Children
who have experienced multiple losses and trauma may need psychological coun-
seling before they can be fully ready to concentrate on their schoolwork
(Gonzales-Ramos & Sanchez-Nester, 2001). Language barriers; lack of support
programs, proper identification, and assessment of needs; and family resistance to
assessment and counseling may prevent full attention to the problems.
From the parents' point of view, assessments may have a different meaning
based on their prior experiences. They may see assessments as offensive or fright-
ening, and this could lead them to reject further testing if teachers express
1. GLOBAL MIGRATION AND EDUCATION 9
concerns about their child's performance level. Some parents may strongly object
to individual testing or any suggestion that their child might need special services.
Depending on culture, prior experiences, and individual personalities, parents
may not speak openly to school personnel. They may see the teacher as deserv-
ing the highest respect and may believe that it is inappropriate for them to express
an opinion or to question the teacher. Parents may have come from a country
where the school authorities do not seek or listen to the opinions of parents. Such
misunderstandings can result in a dysfunctional relationship between schools and
parents and contribute to stereotyping of immigrant families and students.
Although some parents may strongly object to their children being tested or
may not actively seek additional support if the child is not performing well
in school, as Suárez-Orozco and Suárez-Orozco (2001) pointed out, immigrant
families as a rule firmly believe in the importance of schooling. Research suggests
(Portes & Rumbaut, 2001) that parents' involvement can increase the likelihood
of academic success for immigrant students. However, studies also indicate that
although parental support and interest in their children's education makes a dif-
ference to their success in school, this involvement may not be what teachers have
come to expect from parents in the majority culture. Some immigrant parents may
believe that as long as they send the child to school and see that homework is
completed, they are involved in the child's schooling (Moosa, Karabenick, &
Adams, 2001). Parents may view teachers as the education experts and so will not
consider being involved in their children's education. Furthermore, they may have
no frame of reference for understanding parent-teacher conferences (Timm,
1994; Trueba et al., 1990). Others who are highly skilled professionals may pres-
sure their children to excel in school (Bankston & Zhou, 2002). By contrast, most
North American parents, for example, often consider involvement as being
actively present at school events and parent-teacher conferences and openly
advocating or voicing demands about what the school should or should not do,
particularly concerning their own children.
Some immigrant parents described in this book do advocate for their own
children, using this advocacy to help their children achieve their high expecta-
tions for their future in the host country. As some of the chapters indicate, when
educational programs are based in local communities and are flexible enough to
accommodate the parents' work schedules and when parents are involved in both
their children's and their own education, such parents become the main actors and
agents in community education.
All the authors offer recommendations about educational policy and practices
to address and ultimately improve the education of all children, including immi-
grant children. However, because of the international nature of the collection
presented here, the recommended education policies and practices may not nec-
essarily be of interest or apparent value to all readers. In addition, the wide range
of approaches to analyzing problems and gathering information in each chapter
10 ADAMS AND KIROVA
reflects the authors' views of issues that are of a particular importance to them
in their specific location and context and may not be immediately applicable in
other contexts. As editors, we are aware that this book cannot offer resolutions to
the many issues raised by the authors about the schooling of immigrants or sug-
gest changes in the immigration policies in the 14 countries represented. It would
be impossible to consider the myriad policies and problems related to immigra-
tion in all these countries. However, we believe that the volume presents a mosaic
of issues that, viewed together, present a picture of the complex processes of
adjustment of both migrant families and school systems, not only as problems and
challenges but also as opportunities for a cross-fertilization of cultural views,
beliefs, and expectations.
Many other important issues are not directly addressed in this volume, includ-
ing questions of mental health and the well-being of those whose physical health
was in jeopardy before emigration. The issues related to the recognition of
foreign credentials of immigrants and the effect on their socioeconomic status,
changes in family dynamics and parenting styles are also not addressed. From the
inception of the book, our focus has been exclusively on the experiences of newly
immigrated children of preschool through elementary school ages from the point
of view of the children, their parents, and their teachers. We believe that because
this volume is a unique collection of studies of all types of families with young
children, including both voluntary and forced migrants, it offers the reader
specific information about the needs, challenges, and successes of a particular
group. It also offers an opportunity to identify some similarities and differences
among and within these groups in terms of their educational experiences.
REFERENCES
Bankston III, C. L., & Zhou, M. (2002). Being well vs. doing well: Self-esteem and school perfor-
mance among immigrant and non-immigrant racial and ethnic groups. International Migration
Review, 36, 389-115.
Berry, J. W., Poortinga, Y. H., Pandey, J., Dasen, P., Saraswathi, T. S., Segall, M , & Kagitcibasi, C.
(Eds.). Handbook of Cross-Cultural Psychology (2nd ed., Vol. 3, pp. 291-326). Boston, MA: Allyn
& Bacon.
Berry, J. W., & Sam, D. L. (1997). Acculturation and adaptation. In J. W. Berry, M. H. Segall &
C. Kagitcibasi (Eds) Handbook of Cross-cultural Psychology, Vol. 3: Social behaviour and
Applications 2nd. ed., (pp. 291-326). Boston: Allyn & Bacon.
Boyden, J., de Berry, J., Feeny, T., & Hart, J. (2002). Childrten Affected by Conflict in South Asia: A
Review of Trends and Issues Identified Through Secondary Research. RSC Working Paper No. 7.
Oxford, UK: Refugee Studies Centre, University of Oxford. Retrieved September 6, 2005, from
http://www.rsc.ox.ac.uk/PDFs/workingpaper7.pdf
Brittain, C. (2002). Transnational Messages: Experiences of Chinese and Mexican Immigrants in
American Schools. New York: LFB Scholarly Publishing.
1. GLOBAL MIGRATION AND EDUCATION 11
Bryceson, D., & Vuorela, U. (2003). Transnational families in the twenty-first century. In D. Bryceson
& U. Vuorela (Eds.), The Transnational Family: New European Frontiers and Global Networks
(pp. 3-30). Oxford Berg Press.
Camerota, S. A. (2002, November). Immigrants in the United States—2002 A Snapshot of America's
Foreign-Born Population. Washington, DC: Center for Immigration Studies. Retrieved April 22,
2006, from http://www.cis.org/articles/2002/backl302.html
Children Now. (2004). California Report Card: Focus on Children in Immigrant Families. Oakland,
CA: Author. Retrieved August 26, 2005 from http://publications.childrennow.org/publications/
invest/reportcard_2004.cfm
Corson, D. (1998). Changing Education for Diversity. Milton Keynes, UK: Open University Press.
De Vos, G. (1992). Social Cohesion and Alienation: Minorities in the United States and Japan.
Boulder, CO: Westview.
Erel, U. (2002). Reconceptualizing motherhood: Experiences of migrant women from Turkey living
in Germany. In D. Bryceson & U. Vuorela (Eds.), The Transnational Family: New European
Frontiers and Global Networks (pp. 127-146). New York: Oxford University Press.
Fix, M., & Passel, J. (2003, January). U.S. Immigration—Trends and Implications for Schools. Paper
presented at the National Association for Bilingual Education NCLB Implementation Institute,
New Orleans, LA.
Fong, R. (2004). Culturally Competent Practice with Immigrant and Refugee Children and Families.
New York: Guilford.
Friedmann, J. (2002). The Prospect of Cities. Minneapolis, MN: University of Minnesota Press.
Global Commission on International Migration. (2005). Migration at a Glance: Global Commission
on International Migration. Retrieved September 29, 2005, from www.gcim.org
Gibson, M. A. (2001). Immigrant adaptation and patterns of acculturation. Human Development, 44, 19-23.
Gitlin, A., Buendía, E., Crosland, K., & Dounbia, F. (2003). The production of margin and center:
Welcoming-unwelcoming of immigrant students. American Educational Research Journal, 40(1),
91-122.
Gordon, M. M. (1964). Assimilation in American Life: The Role of Race, Religion, and National
Origin. New York: Oxford University Press.
Gonzales-Ramos, G., & Sanchez-Nester, M. (2001). Responding to Immigrant Children's Mental
Health Needs in the Schools: Project Mi Tierra/My Country. Children and Schools, 23(1), 49-63.
Hebert, Y. (2001). Identity, diversity, and education: A critical review of the literature. Canadian
Ethnic Studies, 33(3), 155-186.
Hones, D. E, & Cha, C. S. (1999). Educating New Americans: Immigrant Lives and Learning.
Mahwah, NJ: Lawrence Erlbaum Associates, Inc.
Izuhara, M., & Shibata, H. (2002). Breaking the generational contract? Japanese migration and
old-age care in Britain. In D. Bryceson & U. Vuorela (Eds.), The Transnational Family: New
European Frontiers and Global Networks (pp. 155-169). New York: Oxford University Press.
Kirova, A. (2001). Loneliness in immigrant children: Implications for classroom practice. Childhood
Education, 77, 260-267.
Lafromboise, T, Coleman, H. L. K., & Gerton, J. (1993). Psychological impact of biculturalism:
Evidence and theory. Psychological Bulletin, 114, 395-412.
Langford, M. (1998). Global nomads, third culture kids and international schools. In M. Hayden &
J. Thompson (Eds.), International Education (pp. 28-13). London: Kogan Page.
Lee, S. (2002). Learning "America": Hmong American high school students. Education and Urban
Society, 34, 233-246.
Li, P. (2001). The racial subtext in Canada's immigration discourse. Journal of International
Migration and Integration, 2(1), 77-97.
McBrien, J. L. (2005). Educational needs and barriers for refugee students in the United States:
A review of literature. Review of Educational Research, 75, 329-364.
12 ADAMS AND KIROVA
Moosa, S., Karabenick, S. A., & Adams, L. (2001). Teachers' perceptions of Arab parent involvement
in elementary schools. School Community Journal, 11, 1-23.
Moreau, G. (2000). Some elements of comparison between the integration policies of Germany,
Canada, France, Great Britain, Italy and the Netherlands. Journal of International Migration and
Integration, 7(1, Winter), 101-120.
Mosselson, J. (2002). Roots and routes: Reimagining the identity construction of Bosnian adolescent
female refugees in the United States. Dissertation Abstracts International, 63(04), 1287. (UMO
No. 3048196)
Nauck, B., & Sattles, B. H. (2001). Social capital, intergenerational transmission and intercultural
contact in immigrant families. Journal of International Migration and Integration, 32(4), 4 6 5 - 8 8 .
Noddings, N. (Ed.) (2005). Educating Citizens for Global Awareness. New York: Teachers College
Press.
Ogilvie, L., Fleming, D., Burgess-Pinoto, E., Caufield, C , Chui, Y., Kirova, A., Linschoten, K.,
Martin, W., & Ortiz, L. (2005). Examining culturally appropriate assessment practices in early
childhood development (ECD) programs. Unpublished manuscript.
Phalet, K., & Hagendoorn, L. (1996). Personal adjustment to acculturative transitions: The Turkish
experience. International Journal of Psychology, 31, 131-144.
Phalet, K., Van Lotringen, C , & Entzinger, H. (2000). Islam in de multiculturele samenleving [Islam
in multicultural society]. Utrecht, The Netherlands: University of Utrecht, European Research
Centre on Migration and Ethnic Relations.
Pile, S., & Thrift, N. (Eds.) (1995). Mapping the Subject. In S. Pile and N. Thrift (Eds.), Mapping the
Subject: Geographies of Cultural Transformation (pp. 13-57). London: Routledge.
Portes, A., & Rumbaut, R. (2001). Legacies: The Story of the Immigrant Second Generation.
Berkeley, CA: University of California Press.
RAND Corporation. (2000). Population Matters. Policy Brief. Santa Monica, CA: Author.
Rong, X. L., & Preissle, J. (1998). Educating Immigrant Students: What We Need to Know to Meet
the Challenges. Thousand Oaks, CA: Corwin Press.
Schiff, M., & Ozden, C. (Eds.). (2005). International Migration, Remittances, and the Brain Drain.
New York: Palgrave Macmillan.
Segal, A. (1993). An Atlas of International Migration. New Providence, NJ: Hans Zell.
Suárez-Orozco, C , & Suárez-Orozco, M. M. (2001). Children of Immigration. Cambridge, MA:
Harvard University Press.
Suårez-Orozco, M. M. (1989). Central American Refugees and the U.S. High School: A Psychological
Study of Motivation and Achievement. Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press.
Timm, J. T. (1994). Hmong values and American education. Equity and Excellence in Education,
27(2), 36-44.
Tollefson, J. (1989). Alien Winds: The Reeducation of America's Indochinese Refugees. New York:
Praeger.
Trueba, E. T., & Bartolome, L. I., (2000). Immigrant Voices: In Search of Educational Equity. Boston,
MA: Rowman & Littlefield.
Trueba, H. T., Jacobs, L., & Kirton, E. (1990). Cultural Conflict and Adaptation: The Case of Hmong
Children in American Society. New York: Falmer.
United Nations High Commission for Refugees (UNHCR). (1994). Refugee children: Guidelines and
Protection. Retrieved October 5, 2005, from http://www.unhcr.ch/cgi-bin/texis/vtx/protect/opendoc.
pdf?tbl=PROTECTION&id=3b66c2aal0.
van de Vijver, F. J. R., & Phalet, K. (2004). Assessment in multicultural groups: The role of accultur-
ation. Applied Psychology: An International Review, 53, 215-236.
Wierzbicki, S. (2004). Beyond the Immigrant Enclave: Network Change and Assimilation. New York:
LFB Scholarly Publishing.
Yale Center in Child Development and Social Policy. (2003). Portraits of Four Schools: Meeting the
Needs of Immigrant Students and Their Families. New Haven, CT: Author.
Introduction to Part I
Multiple Global Issues for
Immigrant Children and the
Schools They Attend
13
14 PART I
their linguistic, cultural, and social resources in constructing new knowledge and
developing skills and attitudes.
The relationships between acculturation, self-concept or self-esteem, gender,
and school achievement are vital to the study presented in chapter 3. The authors
offer a definition of performance of acculturation competence that has been found
useful in studying immigrant children's academic achievement. This definition
refers not only to learning the language of the host country but also to learning
about new knowledge domains and integrating new values, norms, symbols, and
behavior patterns into one's original value system. Thus, becoming acculturated
is seen and interpreted as a synthesis of actions in various aspects of life that form
a foundation for the successful development of a hybrid or bicultural identity.
Rather than referring only to broadening one's competences to align oneself with
the cultural expectations of the host country, acculturation designates a meta-
competence that allows the individual to incorporate cultural differences produc-
tively. Deficiencies in attaining acculturation competence have an adverse effect
on school achievement in general or on achievement in specific subject areas.
Research suggests that teachers and school personnel play a role in school
practices that may lead to marginalization of immigrant and refugee students
(Lee, 2002; McBrien, 2005; Suárez-Orozco, 1989; Trueba et al., 1990). Empirical
data show that questions asked of students in the school setting, and the limited
range of responses for which these allow, provide minority, immigrant, and abo-
riginal students with little opportunity to become active participants in classroom
dialogue. This often leads to negative evaluations of students' abilities (Dei,
James, Karumanchery, James-Wilson, & Zine, 2000; Gossetti & Rusch, 1995),
thus affecting minority students not only emotionally but also cognitively.
Ladson-Billings and Tate (1995) argued that race was the most important variable
in the difference in students' achievement, which according to Steele (1997), is
consistent at every level of schooling (prekindergarten-12). Even in the absence
of formal discrimination against immigrants in a country's school system, the
immigrant population typically has lower educational attainment levels than
children of nonimmigrants and may be unable to close this gap (Conger et al.,
2003).
When teacher preparation does not include sufficient training in cultural diver-
sity, intercultural understanding, and multicultural education (chapter 2), teachers
may misunderstand or misinterpret as culturally inappropriate children's attempts
to succeed in their environments and either may not support or may reject such
attempts (Hones, 2002; Lee, 2002; Trueba et al., 1990).
Although specific cases are presented in each chapter, the issues discussed have
some degree of global application as they challenge readers to examine their own
context critically. One such issue, for example, as discussed in chapter 4, is the need
for a deep transformation of the organizational and educational practice of schools
so that they might respond to the diversity of educational needs of all students,
respecting their social and cultural origins and personal competence. The difficulties
INTRODUCTION TO PART I 15
REFERENCES
Conger, D., Schwartz, A. E. & Stiefel, L. (2003) Who are Our Students? A Statistical Portrait of
Immigrant Students in New York City Elementary and Middle Schools. New York: Wagner
Graduate School of Public Service, New York University.
Dei, G. J. S., James, I. M., Karumanchery, L. L., James-Wilson, S., & Zine, J. (2000). Removing the
Margins: The Challenges and Possibilities of Inclusive Schooling. Toronto, ON: Canadian
Scholars' Press.
Ghaemii-Ahmadi, S. (1992). Attitudes toward breast-feeding and infant feeding among Iranian,
Afghan, and Southeast Asian immigrant women in the United States: Implications for health and
nutrition education. Journal of American Dietetics Association, 92, 354-355.
Gossetti, P. P. & Rusch, E. (1995). Reexamining educational leadership: Challenging assumptions. In
D. M. Dunlap & Patricia A. Schmuck (Eds.) Women leading in education (pp. 11-35). Albany State
University of New York Press.
Gracey, M. (2004). Caring for the health and medical and emotional needs of children of immigrants
and asylum seekers. Acta Paediatrica, 93(11), 1423-1426.
Hones, D. F. (2002). American Dreams, Global Visions: Dialogic Teacher Research with Refugee and
Immigrant Families. Mahwah, NJ: Erlbaum.
Ladson-Billings, G. & Tate, W. F. (1995). Toward a Critical Race Theory of Education. Teachers
College Record, 97(1), 47-68.
Lee, S. (2002). Learning "America": Hmong American high school students. Education and Urban
Society, 34, 233-246.
McBrien, J. L. (2005). Educational needs and barriers for refugee students in the United States: A
review of literature. Review of Educational Research, 75, 329-364.
Segal, A. (1993). An Atlas of International Migration. New Providence, NJ: Hans Zell.
Statistics Norway. (2005). Immigrants From 200 Countries in Norway. Oslo, Norway: Author.
Retrieved April 22, 2006, from http://www.ssb.no
Steele, T. (1997). The Emergence of Cultural Studies: Adult Education, Cultural Politics, and the
'English' Question. London: Lawrence & Wishart.
Suárez-Orozco, M. M. (1989). Central American Refugees and the U.S. High Schools: A Psychosocial
Study of Motivation and Achievement. Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press.
Tomkins, A. (2001). Vitamin and mineral nutrition for the health and development of the children of
Europe. Public Health Nutrition 4(la), pp. 101-107.
Trueba, H. T., Jacobs, L., & Kirton, E. (1990). Cultural Conflict and Adaptation: The Case of Hmong
Children in American Society. New York: Flamer Press.
Yale Center in Child Development and Social Policy. (2003). Portraits of Four Schools: Meeting the
Needs of Immigrant Students and Their Families. New Haven, CT: Author.
Chapter 2
Within the last 20 years, the number of children with ethnic-minority background
in the Danish folkeskole (municipal primary and lower secondary schools) has
increased from 13,457 in 1986-1987 to 57,523 in 2003-2004 (Ministry of Educa-
tion, 2004; Ministry of the Interior, 1998), making up approximately 10% of all
pupils. We use the term ethnic-minority children as synonymous with the term
bilingual children. Over time, the terminology has shifted a number of times reflect-
ing inclusiveness or exclusiveness. For example, in 1976, the official definition
was foreign-language-speaking children. Today the legally binding definition is
"Bilingual children are children who have another mother tongue than Danish
and who will learn Danish when coming in contact with the surrounding society
or in school" {Law About the Danish Folk School, Section 4a, 1.2, 1995).
The increase in bilingual children in Denmark reflects a change in the ethnic
composition of the population similar to that of other European nation states
because of postwar migration and reception of refugees. A growing awareness of
the academic underachievement of minority students has brought about a number
17
18 HORST AND HOLMEN
The rooting of democratic society in universal values raises the question of how
linguistic, social, and cultural diversity is being addressed in social institutions.
To what extent does the educational system reflect the diversity of the country,
and are there signs of change? Countries that have recognized complexity in their
educational systems, for some years, have been in the process of developing a
new basis for changes in curriculum and school organization (Banks, 1997; Brisk,
1998; Hyltenstam, 2003; Miramontes, Nadeau, & Commins, 1997; Øzerk, 2003).
In Danish schools, changes are now called for, inspired by modern educational
thinking combined with reflections on equity based on universal values.
According to this perspective, equal access to education is a major concern, but
of high priority is also the question of how schools must be organized for their
students to profit the most. One important goal is for all students to be able to see
their own background reflected in the narratives of school and to be able to make
active use of their linguistic, cultural, and social resources in taking up new
knowledge and developing skills and attitudes.
To fully grasp the scope of this development, one may make a comparison to
the effect on Danish educational thinking brought about by the recent change
from separating children according to test results toward teaching all children in
the same classroom. This has meant a stronger emphasis on child development
and on the adjustment of teaching to students' background rather than shaping
students to a given educational content and form.
Throughout the 20th century, the struggle for equality has extended individual
rights and created an awareness of socioeconomic, gender, and cultural rights in
the value systems of schools. As a parallel, ethnic and linguistic complexity is
being recognized and secured through international conventions and national leg-
islation (Batelaan & Coomans, 1999). This has engendered a conflict between the
dominant culture of the nation-state, which has traditionally had a homogenizing
function in the educational system, and the recognition of ethnic complexity as a
prerequisite to learning (Horst, 2003). One may ask how in an ethnically complex
2. MULTICULTURAL EDUCATION IN THE MAINSTREAM 19
society such as Denmark education can be transformed to give the same weight
to the linguistic, cultural, and family background of all children. In other words,
how can schools achieve Klafki's (2000) "double opening": opening the curricu-
lum for children as well as children for curriculum? And what role does the intro-
duction of intercultural education as a general approach play in transforming a
specific school system?
THEORETICAL POSITION
Pupils Classroom,
playground Observation
The project was started in eight schools in 2002, was extended to six more
schools in 2003, and was expanded to another five in 2004 (all schools are
public folkeskole). According to the project plan, all 51 schools in Aarhus will
take part by 2006.
the more traditional role of conducting observation, surveys, and so forth in the
various sites. This design included the well-known tension between researchers
maintaining analytic distance from the research sites and being involved in the
progress of the project.
To enable us to identify various kinds of change during the project period, we
decided to determine the status of the initial situation. This followed the strong
wishes of principals and teachers to be evaluated on their own terms and not com-
pared with general standards. To respect this position, we constructed a survey for
teachers and principals on general and specific school features, profiles, attitudes,
and practices related to diverse core elements in multicultural education.
Survey data from the first eight schools, with a focus on ambivalences and
contradictions in the initial situation seen through teachers' and principals'
answers to questions about their training, attitudes, and previous experience with
developing multicultural and bilingual education, are presented here. The picture
presented here is related to international research on the schooling of minority
children, as well as to recent critical voices about the quality and efficiency of
Danish schools in general, for example, as expressed in the analysis of the
Programme for International Student Assessment (PISA) results (Organization
for Economic Cooperation and Development [OECD], 2002).
TABLE 1
Experience in Teaching Bilingual Pupils (Only one mark in each row)
development project in this field, whereas this was the case for only one school
according to the teachers. The mismatch may be because of a recent change of prin-
cipals or to a highly decentralized structure of development in schools that gave
responsibility to the individual teachers rather than to the school. In any case, the mis-
match shows that principals do not always give high priority to multicultural issues.
The projects reported varied in content and time span from a few weeks to 10
years. They included projects on local teacher training in DSL, development of
teaching materials for bilingual students, projects about how to combine MTE
with ordinary teaching, language and science, parent collaboration, and so forth.
However, only a few projects were of longer duration, and most did not focus on
issues of teaching and learning in formal situations but on cultural and social
activities outside the classroom.
TABLE 2
Teachers' Interpretation of Background Factors for School Success
Rated Rated Rated Rank
first second third Total order
Home
Family background 22 19 20 61 1
Social differences 13 15 12 40 4
Cultural background 5 15 11 31 6
School
Well-being 26 15 13 54 3
Instruction 3 8 10 21 7
Teachers' expectations 0 2 3 5 8
Child
Language 23 17 18 58 2
Intellectual capacity 13 11 15 39 5
parents on their school boards, but only one had deliberately planned to involve
minority parents in school democracy.
Probably the Aarhus schools resemble other Danish schools in representing a
strong national identity, which is supported by a high degree of consensus across
the political scene in defending Denmark as a monocultural society.1 This is
expressed in common policies and attitudes about a number of issues (e.g., disper-
sal of ethnic minorities through busing and housing policy, restrictions to family
reunification). However, it is clear that the ratings in Table 2 are not only the result
of issues of national identity. There is also a complex interaction with educational
tradition, values, and priorities of the school in general, on which we comment here.
'"Under no circumstances will I put up with a multicultural society in the sense of a society where
cultures are treated equally," Karen Jespersen, Minister of the Interior (the social-democratic-liberal
government 1998-2001), Berlingske Tidende, September 6, 2000. "Everyone talks about cultural
equality and the need for ethnic equality. No, this should not be so.... In Denmark, Danishness must
have a preference. Of course. Anything else would be to disregard culture. A culturally based policy
cannot be founded on equality between the Danish and the foreign. It must necessarily be a policy
which favours the Danish," Bertel Haarder, Minister of Refugees, Immigrants and Integration (in the
present liberal and conservative government), Kristeligt Dagblad, December 7, 2001.
2. MULTICULTURAL EDUCATION IN THE MAINSTREAM 27
Ambivalence in Transformation
After 18 months of the Aarhus project, it is clear to us that there is ambivalence
to exchanging the culturally homogeneous society for a multicultural society.
This is expressed in our survey and interview data at various levels. When we
asked about school leadership, school profile, development projects, and teach-
ers' attitudes and qualifications, we realized how difficult it would be to face the
new cultural complexity, because it would challenge the traditional national
understanding of the role of schools. To analyze how transformation is conceived
in a local educational system, we suggest a perspective of wider educational
changes taking place in late modernity. This perspective is illustrated in Figure 3.
Figure 3 is a preliminary analytic framework that we have developed to question
familiar concepts that interact with a new social complexity characterized by ethnic
diversity. The horizontal line depicts a transformation from the culturally homoge-
neous to the multicultural society; that is, a movement away from a time when the
nation state was seen as the target of development supported by the identity policy
expressed in a nationally based curriculum. Through this, all citizens were assumed
to have the same linguistic, historical, and cultural background and to be linked in
a common loyalty to state and nation as overlapping entities.
2. MULTICULTURAL EDUCATION IN THE MAINSTREAM 29
Along the vertical line is a continuum between two traditional positions in the
history of education (seen as positions in dialogue with each other and not as con-
tradictions). According to one position, schooling involves all aspects of
children's personal, intellectual, and skills development. This is a predominantly
student-centered position or a whole-person approach. The other position focuses
on children's learning of skills and subject knowledge in the framework and pro-
gression given in curriculum. In this concept, good schools achieve high educa-
tional outcomes for all children according to their individual capabilities.
When the two dimensions are combined, four sections appear in which major
educational approaches are marked in italics and key words are placed from
recent Danish educational thinking. Historically, the starting point was a subject-
based school that tested and streamed students and that was met with criticism
from the reform movement, which claimed that curriculum and schools in gen-
eral did not adequately reflect children's individual and social background.
When the reform movement was challenged by progressivism, a student-centered
approach was introduced with a focus on children's development seen as a broad,
holistic category. The teaching of subject knowledge was then changed from being
tied to relatively delimited units, each with its distinct core characteristics based on
30 HORST AND HOLMEN
scientific disciplines. This was meant to take place through engagement in learning
objectives that were thematically based and that dealt with real-life issues.
Furthermore, the development of social competence and dialogic and communica-
tive skills was emphasized through a new balance between individual tasks and
group assignments and through the use of various media: writing, oral presentation,
collage, audiotape and music, photography, film, videotape, drama, and so forth.
Today a new perspective on learning as an individualized process has gained a
foothold while societal pressure grows to promote canonical subject matter (com-
pare to a national curriculum or to "back to the basics"). As the two dimensions
meet, new school terminology has appeared: the inclusive school, individualized
contracts with parents and students, detailed objectives for all school subjects,
stronger leadership with ongoing inspection of all contracts (assessment, evalua-
tion, supervision), giving the individual responsibility, and teacher as facilitator
rather than instructor. At the same time, awareness is growing that despite the
resources expended, no convincing change is being seen in the reproduction of
social and gender patterns in schools (Hansen, 1995). In equity terms, the out-
come of schooling seen through international assessments like PISA is dis-
turbingly low, especially for students with an ethnic-minority background. This
might lead to reconsideration of practices in the schooling of minority students.
We believe that the first 18 months of the school development project of multicul-
tural education in Aarhus has been useful in raising important issues about both the
teaching of minority students in Danish schools and the development of schools in
general. The transformation of society into multiculturalism has exposed not only
a new kind of marginalization (based on a naturalized national curriculum) but also
invited a reconstruction of well-known educational positions.
The Danish situation is characterized by systematic underachievement of
bilingual students, lack of focus on the role of instruction in general, emphasis on
children's family background and on social issues in the classroom, and by insuf-
ficient training for those who teach minority students. Together these factors sup-
port the OECD (2004) criticism of widespread complacency and lack of ambition
on the one hand and a socially sensitive school on the other hand. The problem
is, as the report stresses, that this kind of school is not strong enough to break the
social pattern for underprivileged children. On the contrary, it tends to reproduce
inequality in education.
In this report, the OECD (2004) examiners criticized Danish schools for pro-
viding "an insufficient support of bilingual children" (p. 123), and they recom-
mended "an intensified effort" (pp. 145-146). In principle, this may be achieved
2. MULTICULTURAL EDUCATION IN THE MAINSTREAM 31
REFERENCES
Axelsson, M., Lennartson-Hokkanen, I., & Sellgren, M. (2002). Den röda tråden. Utvärdering av
Stockholms stads storstadssatsningmålområde språkutveckling och skolresultat. Rinkeby,
Stockholm, Sweden: Språkforskningsinstitut.
Banks, J. A. (1997). Educating Citizens in a Multicultural Society. Albany, NY: Teachers College
Press.
Batelaan, R, & Coomans, F. (Eds.). (1999). The International Basis for Intercultural Education,
Including Anti-Racist and Human Rights Education. a Selection of Articles from Relevant
Documents. International Association for Intercultural Education, UNESCO and Council of
Europe. Retrieved June 6, 2006 from http://www.ibe.unesco.org/International/Publications/
FreePublications/FreePublicationsPdf/batelaan.
Bourdieu, P., & Wacquant, L. (1996). Refleksiv sociologi. Copenhagen, Denmark: Reitzel.
Brisk, M. E. (1998). Bilingual Education. From Compensatory Schooling to Quality Schooling.
Mahwah, NJ: Lawrence Erlbaum Associates, Inc.
Collier, V., & Thomas, W. (2001). A National Study of School Effectiveness for Language Minority
Students' Long-Term Academic Achievement. Retrieved June 6, 2006 from http://repositories.cdlib.
org/crede/finalrpts/11 final
Egelund, N. (2003). Tosprogede og dansksprogede -forskelle mellem faglige og sociale færdigheder
for de 15-16 årige unge. Copenhagen, Denmark: Pædagogiske Universitets Forlag.
Gimbel, J., Holmen, A., & Jørgensen, J. N. (2000). Det bedste Københavns Kommune har foretaget
sig hidtil. Beskrivelse og evaluering af sproggruppeforsøg i skoledistrikterne 6 og 12 i Københavns
Kommunes Skolevæsen 1996-99. Københavnerstudier i tosprogethed 31. Copenhagen, Denmark:
Lærerhøjskole.
Hansen, E. J. (1995). En generation blev voksen. Copenhagen, Denmark: Socialforskningsinstituttet.
Holmen, A. (2002). Betydningen af sprog, tosprogethed og sprogligt bårne kulturformer for integra-
tionsprocesserne. AMID Working Papers No. 23. Retrieved June 6, 2006 from www.amid.auc.dk
Horst, C. (2003). Retten til modersmålet. In C. Horst (Ed.), Interkulturel pædagogik. Flere sprog -
problem eller resource? (pp. 53-84). Vejle, Denmark: Kroghs Forlag.
Hyltenstam, K. (2001). Modersmåls baserede utbildnings system, Kunskapskapital och ekcinisk till
våut. In C. Horst (Ed.), Interkulturel Pødugejik. Kroghs Farlag.
Hyltenstam, K., Brox, O., Engen, T. O., & Hvenekilde, A. (Eds.). (1996). Tilpasset språkopplæring
for minoritetselever. Rapport fra konsensuskonferanse. Oslo, Norway: Norges Forskningsråd.
Klafki, W. (2000). The significance of the classical theories of Bildung for a contemporary concept of
Allgemeinbildung. In I. Westby, S. Hopmann, & K. Riquarts (Eds.), Teaching as Reflective
Practice: The German Didaktik Tradition. Mahwah, NJ: Lawrence Erlbaum Associates, Inc.
Kristjansdottir, B. (2004). Dansk som andetsprog i kejserens nye klæder. In L. Ekberg &
G. Haakansson (Eds.), NORDAND 6. Proceedings fra 6. konference om Nordens sprog som andet-
sprog (pp. 115-129 ). Lund, Sweden: Lunds Universitet.
Law About the Danish Folk School. (1995).Section 4a, 1.2.
Læssøe, J., & Baungaard Rasmussen, L. (1989). Brugerorienterede forskningsmetoder. Lyngby,
Denmark: Institut for Samfundsfag. Danmarks Tekniske Højskole.
Mathiesen, A. (2002). Sociologiske Feltanalyser. Research Paper No. 8/02. Roskilde, Denmark:
Department of Social Sciences, Roskilde Universitetscenter.
Ministry of Education. (2004). Statistics on Bilingual Pupils in the Folk School, School Year 2003/04.
Copenhagen, Denmark: Author. Retrieved from www.uvm.dk/statistik/tosprogedeigrundskolenhtm
Ministry of the Interior. (1998). Foreigners '97. Copenhagen, Denmark: Statens Information.
Miramontes, O., Nadeau, A., & Commins, N. L. (1997). Restructuring Schools for Linguistic
Diversity. Albany, NY: Teachers College Press.
Organization for Economic Cooperation and Development (OECD). (2002). Education at a Glance.
Paris. Retrieved April 23, 2006, from http://www.oecd.org/linklist/0,2678,en_2649_34515_
2735794_l_l_l_37455,00.html
2. MULTICULTURAL EDUCATION IN THE MAINSTREAM 33
Organization for Economic Cooperation and Development (OECD). (2004). OECD rapport om
grundskolen i Danmark. Uddannelsesstyrelsens temahæfteserie nr. 5. Copenhagen, Denmark:
Undervisningsministeriet.
Øzerk, K. (2003). Sampedagogikk. Oslo, Norway: Oplandske Bokforlag.
Parekh, B. (2000). Rethinking Multiculturalism-Cultural Diversity and Political Theory. Basingstoke,
UK: Palgrave.
Reason, P. (1994): Participation in Human Inquiry. Newbury Park, CA: Sage.
Sammons, P., Thomas, S., & Mortimore, P. (1997). Forging Links. Effective Schools and Effective
Departments. London: Chapmann.
School Authorities of Aarhus. (2002). Multicultural Education, Project Design. Retrieved April 4,
2006, from www.aaks.dk
Chapter 3
35
36 HERWARTZ-EMDEN, KUFFNER, LANDGRAF
educational
achievement
mathe-
grades reading
matics
socio-
style of familiy
economic
upbringing level
status
class
structure
gender role and well-being with respect to social position to expand the frame of
interpretation (Fig. 1).
METHODS
50% 50%
90%
10%
(202) stated that German is their second language. In 18% of the population of
children with an immigrant background, German was found to be the primary
language spoken in families. In 7% of the population, Russian is spoken in the
home; in half of those homes, German is spoken as well. In addition to Turkish,
72 nationalities were represented in the population of immigrant children, and
more than 100 languages or combinations of languages were spoken in the home
and community. The result is striking; multilingualism is the norm in the lives of
many of the children. Apart from the main language of the 72 nationalities
surveyed, more than 100 other languages or combinations of languages were
added to our data.
On a 5-point rating scale, teachers were asked to evaluate the German-
language proficiency of children with an immigrant background. An empirical find-
ing was that the dominant family language had a substantial influence on a child's
knowledge of German. This is shown in Figure 4. German language proficiency
was estimated highest in the group of children who gave German as their family's
dominant language: 68.4% were evaluated as good or very good. The poorest
German proficiency was found among the children whose families primarily
spoke a native language: only 26% were judged good or very good. A combina-
tion of a native language with German ranked in the middle: 51.1% of this group
were considered good or very good. The other extreme shows how a family envi-
ronment where the host country's language is not spoken may negatively affect
language acquisition. In this group, only 6.4% of the students were assessed as
3. IMMIGRANT CHILDREN IN GERMAN PRIMARY SCHOOLS 39
92,5%
7,5%
Figure 4. Language Spoken in the Family and Knowledge of the German Language.
being very good, and 11% were assessed as having very weak and 27.3% as
having weak language skills. The teacher's evaluation is not a valid measure in
terms of scientific test theory, because it is assumed that teachers use varying
norms as criteria. Nonetheless, a teacher's assessment is significant enough to be
acknowledged. On the one hand, the Berlin research project BeLesen
(Schneewind & Merkens, 2004) showed that teachers' evaluations were close to
results from standardized language tests. On the other hand, the academic success
of children depends on the perception and judgment of evaluating teachers. In
other words, the evaluation of language skills is probably a determining factor for
the final grade or textual report in German, which is a pivotal criterion for future
academic endeavors.
On the basis of this structure of the primary school population in the city we
examined, it becomes clear in which dimensions heterogeneity manifests itself in
today's schools. Delineating groups according to ethical or national criteria is not
sufficient, because it is often difficult to make an obvious classification of all
children with respect to their specific family background, and no unmistakable
cultural orientation is derived from this procedure. Hence, cultural heterogeneity
exists not only between native-born schoolchildren and those with an immigrant
background but also, to a large extent, among children with an immigrant back-
ground. Because the teachers we surveyed probably depended on the information
supplied by their students, their statements should be regarded with caution.
40 HERWARTZ-EMDEN, KUFFNER, LANDGRAF
Performance of Acculturation
Compared with nonimmigrant students, children and adolescents with an immi-
grant background face specific supplementary learning in various areas, as well
as the standard age-specific developmental tasks. Thus, the performance of accul-
turation refers to those learning requirements that include not only learning the
language of the host country but also becoming acquainted with new knowledge
domains and integrating new values, norms, symbols, and behavior patterns in the
acquired value system.
Performance of acculturation can be interpreted as synthesis performances,
which in turn can be seen as the foundation for the successful development of a
hybrid or bicultural identity. Rather than referring only to broadening one's com-
petences to align oneself with the host country, the performance of acculturation
designates a metacompetence, which also allows the individual to assimilate cul-
tural differences productively. In addition to the usual requirements compulsory
for entry to primary school, the performance of acculturation needs to be taken
into account. Deficits in attaining competences of acculturation have an adverse
effect on school achievement or on achievement in specific subjects and vice
versa. This interrelation is complex and is explained as follows as we clarify the
development of self-concept and self-esteem.
Self-concept represents the sum of cognitive representations of one's own
personality or self. Self-concept may be differentiated into a cognitive and a judg-
mental part—the judgmental part as self-referring cognitions with a strong judg-
mental component. These cognitions regard evaluations of one's own person,
3. IMMIGRANT CHILDREN IN GERMAN PRIMARY SCHOOLS 41
self-esteem from which positive feelings arise. Lack of competence in various fields
of action may arise because the cultural norms learned by children with an immi-
grant background do not correspond to the cultural requirements of the host country,
and those requirements may have been inadequately transmitted.
These processes vary between boys and girls: The sources and domains relevant
for self-esteem are not the same for both sexes or have varying degrees of
importance. Reflective and defining people who model gender-specific expecta-
tions and social valuations to both sexes have a part in a child's achievement of self-
esteem. Individual orientation and societal models of masculinity and femininity
can influence the experiences of socialization of children. In primary school, girls
and boys are approached differently, not only in physical education classes but also
in a host of other school situations where gender constitutes an organizational char-
acteristic. This leads to structurally and institutionally different starting points for
the developmental processes of boys and girls, to different "cultural locations"
(Hagemann-White, 1992). In a relatively new study, the portrayal of differential
courses of self-esteem—until adulthood—shows that gender-specific differences
exist in relation to the level of continuity of self-esteem. Whereas men are stable to
a high degree, women are more likely to be stable at a low or average level, which
indicates a more problematic starting point for women (Sandmeier, 2005).
Presumably in primary school, girls develop self-esteem on a completely different
level than boys, and this development interacts with the immigrant background.
Ormrod (2005) summarizes the U.S. research in his thesis that boys show a gener-
ally higher self-esteem than girls toward the end of their primary school years.
Ormrod traces these differences to the tendency of boys to overestimate, and the
tendency of girls to underestimate, their abilities and possibilities.
Another relevant hypothesis is the assumption that culture-specific influences
affect self-concept in diagonal relation to the gender-specific influence. In terms
of self-concept, children with an immigrant background are better able to incor-
porate discontinuities in their academic performance ("interdependent self,"
Markus & Kitayama, 1991) than is the case for native-born students ("indepen-
dent self). The interdependent self is anchored in dominant contexts such as the
family or the community and does not necessarily balance such inconsistencies
with a universal or independent self. Development of the self is seen as culture
specific, as can be said of the self-concept that is its cognitive representation. The
group of children with an immigrant background is heterogeneous. The most
diverse societal contexts enter into the picture, as well as various generations with
various experiences of migration. Hence, a uniform process of identity develop-
ment cannot be postulated, although it can be assumed that collective orientations
leave their mark on individuals or subgroups.
Differentiation between independent self and interdependent self, as used in
cognitive psychology to describe the development of the self is based on the
dichotomous classification of societies into individualistic and collectivistic or
44 HERWARTZ-EMDEN, KUFFNER, LANDGRAF
Discussion
Because of the small sample (N = 323) of the pretests, interpretations must be
made with caution. However, at least some tendencies are recognizable that cor-
respond to the approach of our research and that we can expect to be replicated
in future study.
TABLE 1
Mean Values, Standard Deviations, and Internal Consistency of the
Five Self-Concept Scales for Students in Grade 3
Scale N M SD a N M SD a
TABLE 2
Mean Values, Standard Deviations, and Internal Consistency of the
Four Self-Concept Scales for Students in Grade 2
Skala N M SD a N M SD a
TABLE 3
Mean Values, Standard Deviations, and Internal Consistency of the Scales Measuring
Self-Esteem of Students in Grade 2
N M SD a N M SD a
Self-esteem
School 52 .59 .52 .67* 52 .83 .53 .76*
Self-esteem
Leisure time 52 .68 .56 .72* 52 .85 .53 .74*
Self-esteem
Family 52 .96 .58 .72* 52 .97 .58 .77*
TABLE 4
T-Tests Scale Cognitive Competence, PSCA-D for Students in Grade 2
Girls with an
Immigrant T(4I)=2.4I9, T(34) = 0.048, T(33)= 1.031,
background (N = 21) p=0,02 p = 0.962 p = 0.310
Girls without an
Immigrant T(35)= -2.177, T(34) = -1.380,
background (N = 22) p =0.036 p = 0.177
Boys with an
Immigrant T(27) = 0.963,
background (N = 15) p = 0.344
Boys without an
Immigrant
background (N = 14)
To interpret the results of our pilot study, the following observations should be
considered. For the main study, the analyses show that girls and boys evaluate
themselves differently in terms of self-concept and self-esteem regardless of
immigrant or other background. However, we have to assume an interaction
between immigrant background and gender. An important finding is that children
with an immigrant background have a higher self-concept but lower self-esteem
(except on the family scale). This finding leads us to conclude that immigrant
background mainly influences affective self-perception. This in turn may con-
tribute to the low level of school performance of children with an immigrant
background even if they start with the same prerequisites as others. Compared
with the other subgroups, girls without an immigrant background show high self-
esteem in the area of school, which appears to confirm this assumption.
Furthermore, their school performance is generally better than that of boys.
Generally speaking, it is noted that the differences between girls with and
without an immigrant background, especially in Grade 1 are more pronounced
than those between boys with and without an immigrant background. This con-
firms the premise of our research according to which the process of acculturation
is gender specific. To what extent differing developmental processes and their
respective effects are responsible is still open to further investigation. However,
differentiation in the self-concept of all students occurs during the primary school
3. IMMIGRANT CHILDREN IN GERMAN PRIMARY SCHOOLS 49
REFERENCES
Asendorpf, J. B., & van Aken, M. A. G. (1993a). SPPC-D. Self-Perception Profile for Children.
Berlin, Germany: Humboldt-Universität, Institut fur Psychologic
Asendorpf, J. B., & van Aken, M. A. G. (1993b). Deutsche Versionen der Selbstkonzeptskalen von
Harter. Zeitschrift für Entwicklungspsychologie und Pådagogische Psychologie, 25(1), 64-86.
Baumert, J., & Schumer, G. (2001). Familiare Lebensverhältnisse, Bildungsbeteiligung und
Kompetenzerwerb. In J. Baumert, E. Klieme, M. Neubrand, M. Prenzel, U. Schiefele, W. Schneider,
P. Stanat, K.-J. Tillmann, & M. Weiss (Eds.), PISA 2000. Basiskompetenzen von Schiilerinnen und
Schulern im internationalen Vergleich (pp. 323-07). Opladen, Germany: Leske + Budrich.
Berry, J. W. (1969). On cross-cultural comparability. Internationaljournal of Psychology, 4, 119-128.
Berry, J. W. (1986). Introduction to methodology. In H. C. Triandis (Ed.), Handbook of Cross-Cultural
Psychology (pp. 1-28). Boston: Allyn & Bacon
Bronfenbrenner, U. (1981). Die Okologie der menschlichen Entwicklung. Stuttgart, Germany: Klett
Cotta.
Diefenbach, H. (2004): Ethnische Segmentation im deutschen Bildungssystem Eine
Zustandsbeschreibung und einige Erklarungen fur den Zustand. In Forschungsinstitut Arbeit,
Bildung, Partizipation e.V. (FIAB) an der Ruhr-Universität Bochum (Eds.), Bildung als Bürgerrecht
oder Bildung als Ware, Band 21/22 des Jahrbuchs Arbeit, Bildung, Kultur (pp. 225-255).
Recklinghausen, Germany: FIAB.
Fend, H., & Stockli, G. (1996). Der Einfluss des Bildungssystems auf die Humanentwicklung:
Entwicklungspsychologie der Schulzeit. In F. E. Weinert (Ed.), Enzyklopädie der Psychologie, Vol.
3, Psychologie des Unterrichts und der Schule (pp. 1-35). Goettingen, Germany: Hogrefe.
Glimen, S., & Herwartz-Emden, L. (1993). L.: Zur Problematik der Validität im interkulturellen
Vergleich. In C. Tarnai (Ed.), Beiträge zur empirischen pädagogischen Forschung (pp. 67-79).
Miinster, New York: Waxmann.
50 HERWARTZ-EMDEN, KUFFNER, LANDGRAF
Rosa Blanco
Yuki Takemoto
Regional Office for Education in Latin America and the Caribbean/
United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO)
Santiago, Chile
Latin America is said to be the most unequal region in the world. Persistent poverty
and inequality in the distribution of wealth have prevented the development of soci-
eties with greater integration. Inequality of educational opportunities based on the
socioeconomic level of students is one of the most serious characteristics of the
region, so it could be concluded that education in general has not been able to break
the vicious circle of poverty and social inequality (Blanco, 2005).
Poverty is one of the clearest manifestations of inequality, and it has not dimin-
ished substantially despite efforts by all governments in the region. According to
studies conducted by the Economic Commission for Latin America and the
53
54 BLANCO AND TAKEMOTO
for various reasons, find themselves in situations of inequality and face obstacles
in gaining access to learning and participation in the education system. Although
Latin America does not have the highest figures worldwide for refugees, children
have been displaced for economic reasons or as a result of political unrest or
armed conflict (Valencia, 2000).
Inequalities based on socioeconomic origins are most notable, especially con-
sidering that poverty is associated with other types of inequalities such as living
in a rural area, belonging to an indigenous population, being an immigrant, or
being displaced in one's own country because of political or economic instability.
According to data produced by ECLAC (2002-2003), people from households
with scarce resources complete on average 8 or fewer years of education and in
most cases become manual laborers. Those from households with greater
resources on average complete 12 or more years of education and become pro-
fessionals, technicians, or executives.
Inequalities based on geographical location are also of serious concern. The
highest rate of repetition and dropouts are found in rural areas. The regional aver-
age of persons between 15 and 24 years of age who have at least 10 years of edu-
cation is 50% in urban areas, whereas for rural areas the figure is around 20%.
Generally speaking, many rural schools do not enforce compulsory education,
and access to school tends to be difficult (UNESCO, 2002).
Children and young people of indigenous origin or of African descent are
more likely to face situations of inequality. These populations often live in rural
or isolated areas where the incidence of poverty is higher and therefore are more
vulnerable. In countries where segregated data exist, indexes of repetition,
dropout, and illiteracy are greater among people of indigenous origin. In recent
years, some advances in intercultural and bilingual education have been made,
but these remain far from adequate.
Children whose educational needs are associated with some kind of disability
are a group that faces considerable exclusion and inequality. In many countries,
no reliable statistics are available. Where they are available, they reveal that a
high percentage of these students receive no kind of education, especially in cases
of severe disabilities. Although the tendency in the region is to promote integra-
tion of students with disabilities into regular schools, most are in centers of
special education—another reason they face considerable discrimination.
In terms of the gender of children, there is no significant difference in terms of
access to early and basic education. However, there is a difference in retention. In
Latin American countries, dropout and retention rates for girls in rural areas and
for those of indigenous origin are greater. Conversely, in Caribbean countries
and in some Latin American countries, boys are more likely to drop out of school
and achieve lower academic levels than are girls (UNESCO, 2004). Finally,
inequality between public and private schools is increasing in some countries,
especially in the poorer countries in the region, as a consequence of increasing
56 BLANCO AND TAKEMOTO
privatization. This change is widening the gap between rich and poor and is
reproducing the stratification and fragmentation of these societies. Immigrants and
displaced populations are often the most vulnerable sector of the population and
have limited access to economic, educational, and health services and resources.
The movement toward greater inclusion has been gaining strength in recent years,
as governments have attempted to redress high incidences of exclusion, discrim-
ination, and educational inequalities that exist in most education systems world-
wide. As mentioned earlier, despite varying policies and programs that promote
equity, the education system has not managed to reduce inequalities or the gap
between rich and poor. This is why greater efforts need to be made to transform
the education system into a driving force toward achieving greater social equity
(Blanco, 2005).
In many countries, there is confusion about the concept of inclusion or inclu-
sive education, because the term is being used to refer to integration into regular
schools of children with disabilities or other special educational needs. In other
words, the movement toward inclusion and that of integration are believed to be
the same, when in fact they are based on two distinct visions and focuses. As a
result, policies of inclusion are misunderstood as being part of special education.
This confusion limits the possibilities for conducting a comprehensive analysis
that would consider the totality of exclusion and discrimination in the education
system to formulate integral policies of inclusion.
First, it is important to point out that inclusion has a broader focus than inte-
gration. Integration has to do with people with disabilities or other special educa-
tional needs. The integration movement emerged to put into action the right of
such people to be educated in regular schools like any other citizen. The inclusion
movement, however, aspires to put into action the right to quality education for all.
It recognizes that a great number of children worldwide, in addition to those with
disabilities, do not have access to education, or they receive education of lesser
quality or suffer from various types of discrimination. In other words, inclusion is
about access, participation, and achievement of all students, with special empha-
sis on those who are at greater risk of being excluded or marginalized for various
reasons. From this perspective, inclusive education is a policy matter for ministries
of education, not simply for divisions of special education.
Second, the focuses of attention are different from each other. The integration
movement focuses on transforming special education, not on changing the culture
and practice of regular schools so that they become capable of meeting the needs
of a diverse student population and eliminate the various kinds of discrimination
4. HAITIANS IN SCHOOLS IN THE DOMINICAN REPUBLIC 57
that exist in schools. The paradox is that many schools integrate children with
disabilities, but expel or discriminate against other students. These schools
cannot be called inclusive.
Generally speaking, the education system has remained unaltered under the
integration movement. It has limited opportunities for learning and participation
not only for students with special educational needs but also for other students. In
many cases, systems have transferred the model of attention employed by special
schools into regular schools. More attention is given to students with special
needs (e.g., individualized programs, differentiated strategies, and materials)
rather than changing the factors that limit participation and learning in the
educational context.
This demonstrates that maintaining a focus on individual difficulties in learn-
ing, paying attention only to individual variables (e.g., competence, family situa-
tion, social origin), leaves out the considerable influence that the environment has
on a person's development and learning. The curriculum, teaching strategies,
management of schools, expectations of teachers, and personal relationships are
some factors that could facilitate, or hamper, learning and participation.
However, the primary focus of the inclusion movement is about transforming
the culture—the organization and educational practices of regular schools—to
respond to the diversity of educational needs of all students, which are based on
their social and cultural origins and personal characteristics such as competence,
interest, and motivation. As opposed to what happens in integration, the teaching
is adapted to the needs of children and not the other way around. Attention given
to children with special educational needs is framed in the context of the diver-
sity of needs that exist in the whole student population. In other words, it takes
into consideration that all children, not only those with disabilities, have varying
educational capacities and needs.
In the inclusion movement, the problem is not the child but rather the school or
the system. This movement attempts to identify and eliminate or minimize the
obstacles that limit learning and participation for all students. It attempts to identify
the obstacles put in the way by persons, policies, education systems, and schools.
The right to education not only means having access to education but also implies
that it be high-quality education and that students can participate and learn as much
as possible. Inclusive education aspires to put into action high-quality education for
all, which forms part of the foundations of a just and egalitarian society. The right
to participation and nondiscrimination for immigrant and displaced children
implies that they be educated in schools in their respective communities regardless
of their social, cultural, or racial origins or other personal characteristics.
58 BLANCO AND TAKEMOTO
Background
Haiti has been undergoing a political as well as a socioeconomic crisis in recent
years. An outbreak of violence led to the departure of President Aristide in
February 2004, and scores of Haitians sought refuge in neighboring countries
4. HAITIANS IN SCHOOLS IN THE DOMINICAN REPUBLIC 59
(United Nations High Commissioner for Refugees [UNHCR], 2004).1 This new
wave of refugees was in addition to the already significant presence of Haitian
immigrants in the Dominican Republic, which, including those of Haitian descent
born in country, is estimated at more than half a million (Human Rights Watch,
2002). In addition, Haitians daily cross the road that divides the two countries
("The International Road") to attend schools in the Dominican Republic (World
Food Programme, 2000). During the past decade, the Dominican Republic
government has deported hundreds of thousands to Haiti, including some born in
the Dominican Republic. Haiti is the poorest country in the Western Hemisphere,
and 80% of the population lives below the absolute poverty threshold of US$150
per year. Although the Dominican Republic is considered a middle-income coun-
try, because of unequal distribution of income, more than 50% of the population
lives below the poverty line. The western part of the country, including the
border area with Haiti, is among the most economically deprived areas, with high
rates of unemployment, illiteracy, shortage of food, and malnutrition. This project
was conceived in March 2004 during the sociopolitical chaos that surrounded
Aristide's departure.
'It is reported that more than 250 Haitians sought medical attention in neighboring countries, includ-
ing pregnant women, many who suffer from AIDS and those with gunshot and stab wound (CBC World
News, March 11, 2004). According to the UNHCR, 105 Haitian refugees arrived in Jamaica, 30 in Cuba,
and more than 300 in the Dominican Republic as of 29 February 2004. (UNHCR, 2004).
60 BLANCO AND TAKEMOTO
There is a shortage of teaching staff, and staff members often have limited
abilities and little knowledge about issues such as diversity and inclusion in
schools. Government policies toward Haitian immigrants and refugees over the
years have reinforced the already embedded prejudices against this population in
the respective communities. In terms of educational needs, those of children
with disabilities in every school are currently not being met. Sanitary conditions
are poor in all schools. Persons are living with HIV/AIDS in some of the com-
munities, and yet children as well as teachers and community members know
little about the epidemic, even about preventing transmission. Many children
have difficult family situations, which are closely related to the socioeconomic
level of the parents or caregivers and their level of education. The schools and
communities face an array of difficulties because of their geographic location,
such as limited access to information and to services in general (Fundacion
Tonucci, 2005).
. To secure the right to education for all children, including Haitian children,
in the Dominican Republic
. To promote changes in the schools that would allow all children, includ-
ing Haitian children and children with physical and mental disabilities, to
participate fully in the educational process and to be integrated into the
local community
. To raise awareness among teachers and members of the local community
about the importance of inclusion in the educational context To this end, the
infrastructure of the schools would be upgraded, and educational and recre-
ational materials would be supplied.
Project Site
This project operates near the border between the Dominican Republic and Haiti,
which is an impoverished area with a high concentration of Haitian immigrants
and people of Haitian descent. Six public schools were identified in two regions
based on their needs, as well as their willingness to participate actively in the pro-
ject. All the schools are attended by many groups of students each day in the
morning and in the afternoon, and some are open in the evening for adult classes.
Many teachers are in charge of multiple sessions per day.
The educational system of the Dominican Republic consists of the following
levels: initial (niveI initial), basic (niveI bdsico), middle (nivel medio), and higher
4. HAITIANS IN SCHOOLS IN THE DOMINICAN REPUBLIC 61
Region of Neyba
School 1 is a small unitary and multigrade school with 69 students between
Grades 1 and 4. Grades 1 and 2 students attend classes in the morning. The school
is equipped with 24 chairs and two blackboards in poor condition. Few official
textbooks (issued by the Ministry of Education) are available, and the school has
no library. The school building needs complete renovation.
School 2 has 246 students between initial-early education and Grade 4, with
four teachers and a principal. There are two classrooms, and a blackboard under
a tree outside serves as an additional classroom. Two new classrooms are needed.
Of the 130 chairs, 30 are in good condition. Textbooks are in short supply, and
there is no additional educational material.
School 3 is a large school with 853 students of initial-early education and basic
education; 550 attend morning classes. The school building has recently been
rebuilt with funds from the German Development Bank (KfW). There are 19
62 BLANCO AND TAKEMOTO
teachers and a principal. The school is equipped with new furniture, but lacks
furniture suitable for younger children.
international organizations consulted for this project include the KfW Entwicklungsbank (KfW
Development Bank), UNICEF, UNAIDS (Joint United Nations Programme on HIV/AIDS), Plan
International, and United Nations Development Programme.
4. HAITIANS IN SCHOOLS IN THE DOMINICAN REPUBLIC 63
Based on the results of these initial diagnoses, programs have been implemented
on a regular basis in each of the six participating schools. Activities include reg-
ular meetings with teachers and parents where concerns or pending issues are dis-
cussed with members of the technical team, who act as moderators. Several
workshops have been organized where a detailed presentation of the project was
given, and participants became familiar with the basic concept of "attention to
diversity and development of inclusive schools." As part of the project, improve-
ments are being made to the infrastructure of the schools, depending on their par-
ticular needs. Teaching materials such as textbooks and equipment for
recreational activities also have been purchased and distributed to the schools.
Recreational activities are being organized not only for the children but also for
all members of each community. Through the meetings and capacity-building
sessions described here, a wide range of community members participated, and
the following observations were noted:
Based on considerable worry about the level of illiteracy among the adult popu-
lation of the various communities, literacy programs were redesigned with the aid
of technical advisors in the region to accommodate parents and other adults in the
community. In one school, a strong interest was expressed by parents that resulted
in the development of capacity-building activities that specifically targeted
women, the rural population, and farmers. In addition, worry was expressed about
the integration of Haitians into their respective communities. Every community
expressed willingness to integrate children of Haitian descent into the schools;
however, subtle remarks and insinuations are commonly heard that indicate resis-
tance or resentment. For example, regardless of their immigration status, they are
referred to as ''Haitian children," as distinct from other Dominican children.
Some parents of children of Haitian descent have been present in the meetings,
but many do not actively participate in the conversation. It was noted that a spe-
cial effort should be made to understand what special needs might exist.
During the implementation of the project, some difficulties required that some
of the initial plans be modified. Changes in the school district system resulted in
reorganization of technical teams and additional informational meetings with the
new officials in charge of the school. After the initial selection of schools, resis-
tance became evident among the teachers in one of the schools in San Juan de la
Maguana. The principal would be absent from the technical meetings, and there
was little cooperation from the teachers. Given the importance of their active
64 BLANCO AND TAKEMOTO
CONCLUSION
The degree of inequality in Latin America and the Caribbean is a serious issue—
inequality not only in terms of income but also in terms of educational opportu-
nities. One could argue that access to quality education and the achievement of
adequate levels of learning depend on the country where a child is born, where he
or she lives, and the socioeconomic and cultural level of his or her origins.
Children with disabilities who come from conditions of poverty, live in rural
areas, or are of indigenous or African descent suffer more from exclusion and
discrimination in education. In short, education has not achieved equality of
educational opportunities, nor has it been an adequate instrument toward
achieving greater social mobility (Blanco & Curato, 2004).
As we argue in this chapter, the problem is not because of the lack of trying.
On the contrary, many projects and programs in the region have been sponsored
by the Ministry of Education and international organizations that aim to achieve
greater equality in and through education. The problem can be analyzed as being
twofold. One part is fragmentation among various programs and projects accom-
panied by lack of consistency or coordination; the other is the absence of policies
that integrate both equality and quality in and through education.
Projects and programs often focus on a particular population or a particular
issue, not fully taking into account the complexity of the situation that is produc-
ing or reinforcing inequalities in a given community. This often results in
increased discrimination against the particular group and further social exclusion
4. HAITIANS IN SCHOOLS IN THE DOMINICAN REPUBLIC 65
of that group or sometimes of another group. In short, projects and programs that
focus too narrowly on certain forms of social exclusion cannot transform the
conditions that produce or reproduce similar inequalities.
Similarly, fragmentation between equality and quality in the educational
context prevents transformation of the conditions that produce inequalities and
lack of quality. As stated in UNESCO's (2005) EFA global monitoring report
entitled Education for All: The Quality Imperative,
Whether a particular education system is of high or low quality can be judged only
in terms of the extent to which its objectives are being met. Quality must also be
judged in the mirror of equity. An Education system in which there is gender
inequality or discrimination against particular groups on ethical or cultural grounds
is not a high-quality system. A shift towards equity represents, in itself, an improve-
ment in the quality of education. (p. 17)
Most needed in the region are integral policies that aim to modify or transform
systems that produce, reproduce, and reinforce various kinds of inequalities. The
project focusing on children of Haitian descent in the Dominican Republic and the
communities in which they live represents an example of concrete efforts being
made to achieve equality and quality of education through an inclusive approach.
Although the objective was a strong focus on children of Haitian descent, the aims
and implementation of the project have become much broader. It now aims to
promote inclusion not only of children of Haitian descent but also of children with
disabilities, and it recognizes the reality of the concerned communities that are gen-
erally underprivileged economically and socially. Meanwhile, the fact that the pro-
ject has not yet been able to address the issue of the cultural and linguistic heritage
of children of Haitian descent points to a reality that also must be acknowledged.
Resources are limited, and so are the capacities of the professionals who design and
implement these projects. Furthermore, promoting new ideas and practices in
schools and communities, especially when this forces fundamental change, often
meets strong resistance. The value of inclusive education may appear clear on paper,
but implementing the idea is never simple. Nevertheless, to make quality education
for all a reality, the endeavor consists of these small steps, taken one at a time.
REFERENCES
Burman, T. (Ed. in Chief) (2004, March 11). Newsworld [Television broadcast]. Toronto, ON,
Canada: CBC.
Economic Commission for Latin America and the Caribbean (ECLAC). (2002-2003). Panorama
Social de Amírica Latina (Social Panorama of Latin America). Santiago, Chile: Author.
Fundacion Tonucci. (2005). Project Progress Report. Dominican Republic.
Human Rights Watch. (2002). "Illegal people": Haitians and Dominico Haitians in the Dominican
Republic. Retrieved April 24, 2005 from http://www.hrw.org/reports/2002/domrep/
Secretaria de Estado de Eduacion y Cultura, Republica Dominicana. (1999). Ley de Educacion No. 66
'97: Edición Especial Para Padres, Madres, Tutores y Amigos de la Escuela. (Law on Education
No. 66 '97: Special Edition for Fathers, Mothers, Tutors and Friends of the School). Santo
Domingo, Dominican Republic: Author.
United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO). (1994). The Salamanca
Statement and Framework for Action on Special Needs Education (Developed at the World
Conference on Special Needs Education: Access and Quality, in Salamanca, Spain, 1994). Geneva,
Switzerland: Author.
UNESCO Regional Office for Education in Latin America and the Caribbean and Ministerio de
Education deChile. (2002). Regional Report: Educational Panorama of the Americas Summit of the
Americas. Santiago, Chili: Author.
UNESCO Regional office for Education in Latin America and the Caribbean. (2004). Education for
All in Latin America and the Caribbean: A Goal Within Our Reach. Regional Monitoring Report
on Education for All 2003. Santiago, Chili: Author.
UNESCO. (2005). EFA Global Monitoring Report 2005, Education for All: The Quality Imperative.
Paris: Author.
United Nations High Commissioner for Refugees (UNHCR). UNHCR Urges International Support
for Haitians and Right of Asylum. Press Release. 26 February 2004. Geneva: Author.
Valencia, A. (2000). Personas Desplazadas, Refugiados y Personas Que Solicitan Asilo: Practicas Y
Politicas Nacionales, Discriminacion Racial en le Pais De Acogica {Displaced Persons, Refugees,
Asylum Seekers: Practices and National Policies, Racial Discrimination in the Host Country).
Santiago de Chile: Regional Seminar of Experts for Latin America and the Caribbean on Economic,
Social and Legal Measures Against Racism, With Special Reference to Groups at Risk.
World Food Programme (WFP). (2000). Project Summary: School Feeding Programme with
Community Participation in Socially and Economically Depressed Areas. Dominican Republic
5276.01. Washington, DC: U.S. Department of Agriculture.
Chapter 5
Bernadette Kumar
Institute of General Practice and Community Medicine, Norway
Margareta Wandel
Institute of Basic Medical Sciences, University of Oslo, Norway
67
68 KUMAR AND WANDEL
and of these, 40% originate from the Indian subcontinent; origins of other large
groups include Vietnam, Iraq, Somalia, Iran, and Turkey (Lie, 2002). These
groups warrant special attention. In addition to their genetic variations, obvious
cultural and traditional differences affect risk factors that cannot be addressed if
they are not identified. The effect of migration on food and nutrition is twofold:
migrants adopting and adapting new food patterns, and the host population being
exposed to and accepting ethnic foods.
Food is not just a composite of nutrients, and people do not form eating habits
based on nutritional composition. Eating habits are based on ethnic origins, culture,
and religion, as well as availability, household economy, and individual prefer-
ences. Although the basic need for food to alleviate hunger is common to all human
beings, the ways and means of meeting this requirement vary tremendously.
Foods chosen, meal composition, ways of preparation and eating, the number of
meals per day, the time of eating, and size of portions are an integrated part of a
coherent cultural pattern in which traditions, customs, and practice each play a
part. Food habits are part of a dynamic process called gastrodynamics (Rao,
1996), referring to dynamic changes in dietary styles and eating behavior.
The immigrant's lifestyle includes traditional dietary beliefs and practices, as
food is an integral part of a cultural identity. Ethnicity determines how groups
choose, consume, and make use of available foods, thus distinguishing them from
other groups. Therefore, it is important to map the food habits of immigrants. To
collect information from these groups, it is necessary to understand their food
habits and how these differ from those of the host population. Constraints to data
collection include language and communication barriers, as well as lack of under-
standing of the underlying context and role of food in their lives. Lessons learned
from our studies (Kumar, Wandel, & Holmboe-Otteson, 2003) provide us with
valuable insights into how to approach these groups as well as how to interpret
the information collected. Our data show that immigrants in Norway face the
double burden of nutritional problems linked both to inadequacy and to excess.
Although there is no shortage of food, nutritional deficiency diseases such as
vitamin D deficiency and iron deficiency anemia are seen in women and children.
Conversely, obesity and diabetes are on the rise, particularly among some
immigrant groups.
Most immigrants are subject to continual change of their dietary environment.
Selection of food is strongly influenced by the various food values: in other words,
what the foods mean to them. This is reflected in attitudes toward the use of
various food items where preferences are deeply embedded in tradition. Both the
traditional and the host culture may influence immigrants' food selection and how
they make up their meals. Sometimes this combination may have negative conse-
quences for the health of both adults and children. An example among Pakistanis in
Norway is the reduced use of cooked vegetables and lentils following migration,
whereas the consumption of animal products, sugars, processed grains, and oil has
5. IMMIGRANT CHILDREN AND NUTRITION IN NORWAY 69
increased (Dhirad, Kumar, & Holmboe-Otttesen, 2003). For women from the
Indian subcontinent, better nutrition may mean a greater intake of fat and sugar as
these foods are perceived as nourishing (Dawes, Kumar, & Middlethon, 2005). In
developing countries, being overweight (healthy/well fed) is often perceived as
advantageous as the opposite of being underweight (unhealthy/malnourished).
Because these attitudes conflict with those of the host population, children of immi-
grants born and brought up in Norway find themselves at a crossroads between the
majority (host) and minority (immigrant) cultures. Ethnic adolescents, therefore,
may land in double jeopardy with persisting unhealthy habits from their minority
cultures and acquiring unhealthy habits from the majority. This is well illustrated in
the case of boys from the Indian subcontinent who consume large amounts of both
full-fat milk and sugary soft drinks (Kumar, 2004).
Although the consequences of these dietary changes need to be further exam-
ined and are by no means conclusive, it is fair to say that these dietary changes
are concomitant with the burgeoning diabetes and obesity epidemics among
immigrants. This warrants the need to develop appropriate strategies for the pre-
vention of diet-related chronic diseases among this vulnerable group. So far,
immigrants have been given Norwegian dietary guidelines, which encourage
them to decide and which are difficult for them to follow. Recognition of obvious
cultural differences in food selection, habits, and patterns is a prerequisite for
nutrition education. In addition, public health education cannot be successful
without taking into account the context or life situation of these people.
Therefore, we (Kumar/SHD, 2001) developed a brochure especially designed for
Pakistani immigrants based on their life situation and their foods; so far, this has
been received positively in Norway both by Norwegians and Pakistanis.
Attempts to change food habits to improve nutritional status may be thwarted
by failure to understand cultural needs. Because immigrants are now part of the
demographics, it is important to stress strategies for health education, promotion,
and prevention, because these might be both crucial and successful in delaying or
preventing the onset of chronic disease in adult life. We elaborate here on some
of the main nutritional challenges facing children and youth in Norway.
Iron Deficiency
Infants and young children are at especially high risk for developing iron deficiency
because of high requirements corresponding to rapid growth (Hercberg, Papoz,
Galin, Guery, Farmer, & Rossignol, 1987). The health implications of poor iron
status in early childhood have acquired renewed attention among nutritional
scientists. Iron deficiency may impede mental and motor development of the child
70 KUMAR AND WANDEL
(Krieger, Claussen, & Scott, 1999; Walter, 1994). Results from several studies
indicate that the damage may be irreversible (Alvin, Eden, Mohammad, & Mir,
1997; Beard, 2001; Lozoff, Wolf, & Jimenez, 1996). However, there is no general
agreement about the long-term implications of early iron deficiency on mental
development (Grantham-McGregor & Ani, 2001; Major, 1994; Politt, 2000).
Iron deficiency anemia is the most common nutritional deficiency among
preschool children older than 6 months of age in both industrialized and devel-
oping countries (Cook, 1994). It is also the most common nutritional deficiency
among immigrant children in Norway. Many children hospitalized in Oslo with
severe iron deficiency anemia come from immigrant families (Brunvand &
Sander, 1993). A higher prevalence of children with anemia (Solem, 1982) and
iron deficiency (Arsky 1996; Wandel, Fagerli, Olsen, Borch-Iohnsen, & Ek, 1996)
has been found among nonhospitalized 1-year-olds from Turkey and Pakistan
living in Norway. However, differences between Norwegian and immigrant-origin
children were no longer significant among 2 and 4 years olds (Antonsen, 2000;
Fagerli et al., 1996), and this can be attributed to an increase in the prevalence of
iron deficiency among ethnic Norwegian children. A study in Oslo of 2 and 4 year
olds from Somalia showed slightly higher rates of iron deficiency compared with
those of immigrants in the previous study (Madar, 1997).
Many types of foods contribute substantially to iron intake such as meat, fish,
vegetables, and cereals, especially whole-grain products. Because absorption of
iron from meat and fish is better than that from plant foods, these are particularly
important sources. Cow's milk is a poor source of iron, both because the iron
content in milk is low and because it is poorly absorbed. Breast milk, despite its
low iron content, is a better source of iron because it is absorbed better than cow's
milk. In addition, vitamin C (found in fruits, juices, and vegetables) is known to
enhance iron absorption, whereas phytate (found in bread and other cereals) is
known to inhibit absorption.
Several hypotheses have been formulated to explain the higher propensity for
iron deficiency in immigrant children (Brunvand & Brunvatne, 2001; Brunvand
& Sander, 1993; Solem, 1982). These include differences in feeding patterns
between immigrant and native families such as longer or shorter periods of
breast-feeding, early introduction and excessive use of cow's milk, and the
consumption of solid weaning foods with low iron content. It is also possible that
poor iron status among immigrant women during pregnancy contributes to these
differences. Some data suggest that iron status during the first year of life is
affected by iron stored in the body at birth (Fearweather-Tait, 1992).
Vitamin D Deficiency
Rickets is a disease in children caused by vitamin D deficiency. It leads to abnor-
mal bone development with typical deformations in zones of rapid growth,
5. IMMIGRANT CHILDREN AND NUTRITION IN NORWAY 71
reduced growth in length and height, and convulsions. If a mother has vitamin D
deficiency (called osteomalacia in adults), her children will start their lives with
poor vitamin D status because of marginal vitamin D stores at birth as well as low
vitamin D content in the breast milk. Small children grow quickly and need to
build up their bones.
Vitamin D is formed in the skin during exposure to ultraviolet (UV) light. All
factors that can prevent the UV light from penetrating the outer skin layer also
prevent the formation of vitamin D in the skin. These may be clothing, sunscreen
lotion containing a UV-filter, and skin pigmentation (Holick, 1994). Furthermore,
in Norway, UV light during the winter months (October to March) does not have
the required intensity for the formation of vitamin D in the skin (Brustad, 2004).
The dietary contribution of vitamin D is from few foods such as fatty fish, fish
liver oil, and egg yolks. In addition, in Norway margarine, butter, formula milk,
and a type of partly skimmed milk are enriched with Vitamin D.
Rickets was almost eradicated in Norway in the 1950s and 1960s, but has reap-
peared among children of immigrants from developing countries. Almost all
children treated for rickets in Oslo hospitals are from families who originated in
developing countries such as Pakistan, Morocco, Turkey, Bosnia, and the Philippines
(Brunvand & Nordshus, 1996).
The higher prevalence of rickets among children of immigrants from develop-
ing countries may be attributed to one or more of the following factors: low
vitamin D stores at birth, insufficient vitamin D from breast milk, a diet contain-
ing few good sources of vitamin D, insufficient exposure to UV light, heavy skin
pigmentation, or if they wear too much clothing when outdoors.
Wandel To find out if there are The Turkish children were breast-fed for a shorter
et al. differences in iron status time than the Norwegian children (p = 0.02) and
(1996) between Norwegian, introduced to formula (p = 0.05) and cow's milk
Turkish, and other (0.01) at an earlier age. At age 1 the Norwegian
immigrant children, and children had a higher frequency of intake of
if there are differences wholemeal bread and meat/fish (p < 0.001), whereas
in weaning practices, the Turkish children had a higher intake of refined
which may have bread, rice, vegetables, sweets, biscuits, and chips
implications for iron (< 0.05). Exclusive breast-feeding and the intake of
status of the children. liver paste were positively related to iron status.
1-year old children
Fagerli, To estimate differences The immigrant children ate less wholemeal bread,
et al. in diet and iron status liver paté, other meat, and more rice, beans, citrus
(1996) between Norwegian, fruits, and tea than the Norwegian children at
Pakistani, and other 2 years of age. No significant differences in iron
immigrant children at status between the different groups of children.
2 years of age.
Madar To contribute to more The Somali children had adequate energy intake,
(1997) knowledge about iron but the intake of iron and vitamin D was low, 88%
status and important of the children had lower iron intake than what is
factors among 2-4- recommended. Positive correlation between vitamin
year-old children from C intake (p = 0.04) and negative correlation
Somalia between fat intake (p < 0.04) and iron status.
Antonsen To compare changes in All the immigrant children scored higher on foods
(2000) diet and iron status at contributing with sugar and lower on foods
4 years of age among contributing with iron compared to the Norwegians
Norwegian, Turkish (p < 0.03). The Turkish children scored higher on
and other immigrant vitamin C rich foods (p < 0.01). All the children
children. improved iron status from 2 to 4 years and there
were no significant differences between the groups.
5. IMMIGRANT CHILDREN AND NUTRITION IN NORWAY 73
countries where children traditionally are breast-fed even longer than what is
common practice in Norway. However, in some developing countries, the dura-
tion of breast-feeding has been reduced, especially for those living in urban areas.
A study of mothers who had immigrated to Norway from Turkey showed that
they were breast-feeding for a shorter time (median time of exclusive breast-feeding
was 1.5 months for the Turkish and 3.5 months for the Norwegian mothers)
and introduced formula or cow's milk for their infants earlier than Norwegian
mothers (Wandel et al., 1996). They also stopped feeding the iron- and vitamin
D-enriched formula when their children were at a younger age than did the
Norwegian mothers. Such reduced duration of breast-feeding was not found in
another study that compared Pakistani and Norwegian mothers (Arsky, 1996).
Thus, immigrant groups may adapt in varying ways to urbanized life in Norway.
Because the mothers' vitamin D status during pregnancy and breast-feeding is
important to the vitamin D status of infants, we discuss some studies that describe
the diet and vitamin D blood levels among pregnant and nonpregnant immigrant
women in Norway. A study of pregnant Pakistani women in Oslo found that
they consumed substantially less fish (median 15 g a day) than their Norwegian
counterparts (median 56 g a day, p < .001), whereas butter, margarine, and egg
consumption was not significantly different (Henriksen, 1995). The Pakistani
women's median blood serum levels of 25-hydroxy vitamin D (which is the best
indicator for vitamin D status) was less than half the recommended level, whereas
the Norwegian women had median levels just above the recommended level.
A study of adult women from five countries confirmed the low serum levels of
25-hydroxy vitamin D among those from Pakistan (Holvik, Meyer, Haug, &
Brunvand, 2005). Those from Turkey, Sri Lanka, Iran, and Vietnam had some-
what higher values, but still substantially below the recommended level. The
intake of cod liver oil and fatty fish were powerful predictors of vitamin D status.
Length of education and obesity were also predictors of vitamin D status among
these women. Thus, it is likely that the mothers from these countries had such low
vitamin D status that it affected the vitamin D status of their children.
Pregnant Pakistani and Norwegian women also were studied with regard to
iron status. The Pakistani women had significantly lower iron stores as measured
by serum ferritin (mean 7 ug/1) compared with the Norwegian women (mean 25
ug/1), whereas no significant differences were found for hemoglobin (Brunvand,
Henriksen, Larsson, & Sandberg, 1995). Fewer Pakistani than Norwegian women
had received iron supplementation during pregnancy, and no differences were
found in the dietary iron intake or the intake of organic fiber, tea, ascorbic acid,
meat, or cereals. However, the dietary intake of phytate (which may inhibit iron
absorption) from bread and chapati was significantly higher among the Pakistani
women. Thus, iron deficiency appears to be far more common among pregnant
Pakistani women in Norway than among pregnant Norwegian women, and the
main reason may be a combination of a higher parity and a less common use of
74 KUMAR AND WANDEL
iron supplementation and a higher content of phytate in the Pakistani diet. Iron
deficiency in pregnancy may be an important contributor to infants' low iron
stores at birth and iron deficiency among immigrant children.
A critical period may arise when the child is weaned from the breast. A study
of 1-year-old children of immigrants (mostly from Turkey) and Norwegian
children showed that the Norwegian children had a higher intake of foods that are
good sources of vitamin D or iron such as meat, fish, liver paste, and whole-grain
bread, whereas the immigrant children had a higher intake of rice, fruit, vegeta-
bles, sweets, biscuits, and chips, which are either poor sources of iron or contain
iron that is less absorbable (Wandel et al., 1996, see Table 1). Some of these foods
also contribute substantially to the intake of sugar and fat. Both the immigrant
and the Norwegian children received almost 50% of their iron from iron-fortified
infant cereal, and there was no difference between the two groups. It was also
found that the duration of exclusive breast-feeding and the intake of liver paste
were significantly and positively associated with iron stores (ferritin values),
whereas weight gain and the intake of vegetables were inversely related to iron
stores. At 2 years of age, the Norwegian children had a higher intake of soft
drinks, whole-grain bread, and various iron-rich bread spreads than the immigrant
children, who had a higher intake of orange juice and citrus fruits (which may
enhance iron absorption) than the Norwegian children (Fagerli et al., 1996).
A study of the same children's diet at 4 years of age showed only a few
differences between the children of immigrants and Norwegian children
(Antonsen, 2000). Norwegian children ate more iron-rich bread spreads such as
whey cheese and liver paste, whereas the immigrant children ate more yogurt and
drank more juice. The immigrant children from Turkey obtained a higher score on
three indexes consisting of foods rich in sugar, fat, and vitamin C and lower on one
index consisting of foods that contribute to iron intake. The other immigrant
children scored higher on foods rich in sugar and lower on foods rich in iron. The
study of 2- and 4-year-olds from Somalia showed that the percentage of energy
from fat exceeded recommendations (National Nutrition Council, 2005), and the
intake of sugar was well below recommendations for both age groups (Madar,
1997). However, the intake of iron was only approximately half of that recom-
mended, and the intake of vitamin D only 20% of recommended amounts (for 2
year olds) and 40% (for 4 year olds).
Taken together, these studies indicate that although shortage of food is not a
problem for immigrant families, children of immigrants may have nutritional
problems that need attention. Children of preschool age consumed more biscuits
and cookies, sweets, and chips than did Norwegian children. Immigrant children
develop a preference for Western foods in kindergarten and school and often
choose foods both for snacks and lunch that override parental preferences.
Unfortunately, these Western food preferences are often for foods high in sugar
and low in fiber, vitamins, and minerals. The children's nutritional problems are
5. IMMIGRANT CHILDREN AND NUTRITION IN NORWAY 75
related to the mother's nutritional status with regard to iron and vitamin D, as well
as to the content of these nutrients in the diet of the child during weaning. The
problem appears to be more aggravated for infants and very young children.
However, attention also should be paid to the other preschool children.
Few studies in Norway have described the nutritional status and eating habits of
schoolchildren from immigrant families. A study of 9- and 15-year-old children
in Oslo included both ethnic Norwegians and immigrants from both developed
and developing countries (Natland Sannan, 2003). In this analysis, the population
was divided into Caucasians (originating from Northern and Western Europe
except Turkey, North America, and Oceania) and non-Caucasians (from Eastern
Europe, Asia, Africa, South and Central America, and Turkey). No significant dif-
ferences were noted in anthropometrical indexes (height, weight, body mass
index [BMI]) between the Caucasian and non-Caucasian children except for the
15-year-old girls: the Caucasian girls were significantly taller (median 168 cm)
than the non-Caucasian girls (median 166 cm).
There was no significant difference in the total daily energy intake. However,
the non-Caucasian children had a higher intake of foods for which the National
Nutrition Council (2005) recommends reduced consumption such as whole milk,
table fats, chocolate, and snacks, and they skipped breakfast more often than the
Caucasians. However, there was no difference between the groups with regard to
the percentage of calories from fat, saturated fat, and sugar. The percentage was
higher than that recommended for both ethnic groups and age groups. All the
groups had a high intake of sweetened soft drinks, and their consumption of veg-
etables was far below recommendations. The intake of iron and vitamin D from
the diet in both ethnic groups was lower than recommended.
In a large population-based study (2000-2001) of adolescents (15-16 year
olds) from all Oslo schools, ethnic differences in BMI also were observed in the
immigrant groups. Of the 9.4% who were overweight (above the 85th percentile),
the highest proportion originated from Western countries, whereas the highest
proportion of adolescents who were underweight (below the 24th percentile)
originated from the Indian subcontinent. Interestingly, these differences in BMI
were not associated with socioeconomic factors or physical activity. However,
significant associations of BMI were found with ethnicity and dietary habits
including dieting. An ethnic dichotomy of overweight and underweight is evident,
with the Western, Eastern European, and Middle Eastern/North African groups
being more likely to be overweight, whereas those from the Indian subcontinent,
sub-Saharan Africa, and East Asia more likely to be underweight. However, the
76 KUMAR AND WANDEL
overall proportion of overweight adolescents was not as high as might have been
expected, especially compared with adolescents in the United States and
European countries. Our study shows that the proportion of overweight adoles-
cents from the Indian subcontinent compared with adults (first-generation immi-
grants) is very low (Kumar, Meyer, Wandel, Dalen, & Holmboe-Ottesen, 2005).
Further comparisons with studies from the Indian subcontinent show that the
results are not dissimilar from those from urban areas in terms of overweight, but
they are lower in terms of underweight, especially in rural areas.
Because adolescents are at a developmental stage in a life cycle of continually
changing body size and shape, longitudinal data would have been extremely valu-
able. This is also a phase when cultural factors play an important role, and ethnic
identity, particularly for immigrants, is important in making choices.
Differences in health outcomes of various ethnic groups have received grow-
ing attention over the past two decades. Ethnic groups are maintained through
culture and socialization, but it is difficult to classify and define them, as this
would assume social homogeneity. Differences in socioeconomic status among
ethnic groups of adolescents are apparent in our study, where most from non-
Western countries belonged to the lower classes. Notwithstanding these limita-
tions, the data indicate an unusually high proportion of uneducated mothers
among the ethnic minorities. Most immigrants live in the eastern, more disad-
vantaged part of Oslo, known and described as the East-West divide. This is in
accordance with the contention that people from ethnic minorities are concen-
trated in particular geographic locations that are likely to be more deprived.
Interestingly, our analysis revealed that most immigrants, regardless of social
class, live in the eastern part of the city, and this may be attributable to their being
more comfortable among their own ethnic group as well as economic factors.
In addition to socioeconomic differences, lifestyle factors varied with ethnicity.
Consistent with their food traditions, the Mediterranean group of adolescents
consumed more fruits and vegetables. Conversely, the Indian subcontinent group's
low consumption of fruits and vegetables deviates from their traditional diet, which
is abundant in vegetables and fruits, suggesting postmigration changes. In addition,
gender differences showed that boys consumed more soft drinks (58%) and full-fat
milk (65.6%) daily than girls (41% and 34%). Snacking is popular, with 49%
consuming chocolates or candy and 33% consuming salty snacks daily. The asso-
ciation of skipping breakfast with higher BMI may be because of consuming high-
calorie snack foods later in the day or practicing dieting. The inverse relationship
with chocolate and candy and full-fat milk consumption and BMI also observed in
other studies indicates complex underlying behavioral processes. We found that
those who were overweight were more likely to go on diets. Moreover, dieting
is a widespread teenage phenomenon that may be independent of weight, particu-
larly in the case of girls. Despite ethnic variations, eating and drinking habits
associated with adolescent behavior such as snacking, skipping meals, and dieting
5. IMMIGRANT CHILDREN AND NUTRITION IN NORWAY 77
are similar to those found in other studies in Europe, and in this regard, ethnic
minorities are much like their European peers.
Our recent in-depth study among Pakistani women in Oslo confirmed that dietary
changes might be attributable to length of stay in Norway (Dhirad et al., in press).
Table 1 shows the most salient postmigratory changes, with a reduced consump-
tion of cooked vegetables, lentils, and chapati (whole-wheat unleavened bread)
and an increased consumption of soft drinks and animal and diary products.
Interestingly, although total fat consumption may not have changed, the type of
fat has changed from ghee (clarified butter) to oil.
Results from a study on women's reports of changes in food habits after migra-
tion showed that children greatly influenced the choice of foods for snacks and
for family meals (Mellin-Olsen & Wandel 2005). Many of the immigrant women
only came into direct contact with the Norwegian food culture in hospitals. Their
children, on the other hand, were more familiar with Norwegian cuisine from
being exposed to it in kindergarten and school and through their Norwegian
peers. Many of these immigrant mothers, because they are not familiar with either
the Norwegian culture or language, must rely on their children to gain both access
to and knowledge of this culture. Therefore, they are quick to respond to their
children's requests, believing that the children know better, and are uncritical of
their choices. This is a frequent reason for changes in eating habits following
migration. Thus, some traditional dishes such as those made with beans, lentils,
and vegetables may be discarded from the menu, because the children will not eat
them. Some women make special dishes for their children, typically containing
potatoes, fish, or chicken. Others try to find something that the whole family will
eat. The following story from a study of Pakistani women in Oslo (Kumar, 2001)
exemplifies the role that children may play in the dietary changes of the family.
Salmana and her 4 children left their village in Pakistan in the late seventies and fol-
lowed her husband to Norway. When asked about food preferences she responded
by quoting that the adults preferred traditional Pakistani dishes whereas the children
preferred Norwegian food. When asked why they did so, she responded that they
were rather contemptuous of the simple dal (lentils) and vegetables (sabzi) as foods
to be consumed in the village whereas they preferred the modern Norwegian food
(these being pizza, French fries, fish fingers, sweet buns, biscuits and cakes). In
many ways, she inclined to agree with their choice but for other reasons. When she
arrived in Norway, the variety of vegetables was rather limited, fairly expensive and
since she was used to fresh farm produce she felt that the lack of the sun in cold
north had interfered with the ripening process and the vegetables were tasteless.
Moreover, meat and dairy products were cheap and though she had rarely consumed
78 KUMAR AND WANDEL
meat on a daily basis before this had become a part of the lifestyle in Norway. When
asked about the traditional dishes she, while recounting, realized that there were
changes that she had never reflected upon herself. A curry with mincemeat would
consist of half a kilo of mincemeat and nearly 3 times that amount of vegetables in
Pakistan whereas the ratios were reversed in Norway indicating changes in both
food availability and price. Even though she disapproves of the children's liking for
Western foods, she nonetheless goes along with it as it means they eat at home
rather than taking to the street food. She prefers this way of doing it, since home
preparations are safer and more reliable. In addition, her own resistance to change
has also been influenced by the fact that Western food is quick and easy to prepare
compared to traditional Pakistani curries and chapati. (p. 000)
This story shows that changes in food habits are tied to practical, everyday life
situations where children play an important role. Children also may act as sources
of nutrition information that they receive in school or through habits they have
picked up in school and visiting friends and neighbors. Often immigrants are not
conscious of these changes in food habits (Kumar, 2001).
Multicultural societies are here to stay, and they bring with them a new set of
public health challenges. Because immigrants are now part of the demographics,
determining their health priorities becomes important, and this in turn has impli-
cations for health policy, planning, and allocation of resources. It is evident that
unfavorable dietary changes and physical inactivity are factors that contribute to
the obesity and diabetes epidemics. Minorities must be considered when strate-
gies for health education, promotion, and prevention are being developed in the
evolving multiethnic societies of Europe. Children and youth warrant special
attention, because changes among them may be crucial in delaying or preventing
the onset of chronic disease in adult life.
The change from traditional to more Westernized or Norwegian food habits
may have various nutritional consequences in immigrant groups and in various
age groups. Many immigrant groups in Norway come from countries where the
traditional diet in rural areas is low in fat, sugar, and meat and includes generous
amounts of beans, lentils, and greens. Some also include generous amounts of
vegetables and fruits. Migration to urban areas in Western countries is often
accompanied by an increase in fat, sugar, and meat intake, which together with
reduced physical activity may predispose to overweight and lifestyle diseases
such as diabetes and coronary disease.
Immigration to Norway also entails less sun exposure, especially during
the winter months, and the consequent reduction in outdoor activities also may
5. IMMIGRANT CHILDREN AND NUTRITION IN NORWAY 79
contribute to this. Those who come from inland areas where fish is not a
substantial part of the traditional diet and who do not take cod liver oil (or other
fish oils) run the risk insufficient vitamin D in the diet to compensate for less sun
exposure. In food preparation, most immigrants use vegetable oils that are not
fortified with vitamin D (Råberg, 2005), and it has been shown that the diets of
both children and adults are low in vitamin D (Holvik et al., 2005). Thus, a
change toward the Norwegian diet that includes fatty fish and supplementation
with cod liver oil in the winter months would be beneficial for both children and
adults if they could accept this.
It is important that nutrition educators point out the negative aspects of chang-
ing to a more Westernized diet, as well more positive aspects (e.g., a change in
dietary habits may bring nutritional benefits). It is also important to find cultur-
ally acceptable ways to suggest nutritional improvements. Besides determining
the content, and tailor made to suit the method of transmission should be relevant
to the requirements of these groups. There is a need to increase understanding of
the cultural attributes of health-related behaviors. Health education needs to be
emphasized, with a focus on nutrition and physical activity. Unhealthy lifestyle
choices, especially those that affect the development of eating habits and physi-
cal activity in adolescence, need to be further examined. Studies of the underly-
ing processes involved in making these choices are required to gain a better
understanding. Finally, the genes only "load the gun," but the environment "pulls
the trigger," and we owe it to our future generations to provide them with a bet-
ter environment that encourages sound nutritional practices.
REFERENCES
Alvin, N., Eden, M. D., Mohammad, A, & Mir, M. D. (1997). Iron deficiency in 1- to 3-year-old
children. A paediatric failure? Archives of Pediatric and Adolescent Medicine, 151, 986-988.
Antonsen, R. (2000). Jernstatus, Kostutvikling og Kosthold Med Særlig vekt på Jerninntak Blant
Friske Fireåringer (Iron Status, Dietary Changes and Diet With Special Focus on Iron Intake,
Among Healthy 4-Year Olds). Unpublished master's thesis, Institute for Nutrition Research,
University of Oslo, Norway.
Arsky, G. H. (1996). Kosthold, Kostutvikling Og Jernstatus Blant Friske Ettåringer (Dietary Habits,
Dietary Changes and iron Status Among Healthy 1-Year Old Infants). Unpublished master's thesis,
Institute for Nutrition Research, University of Oslo, Norway.
Beard, J. L. (2001). Iron biology in immune function, muscle metabolism and neuronal functioning.
Journal of Nutrition, 131, 568S-580S.
Brunvand, L., & Brunvatne, R. (2001). Helseproblemer blant innvandrerbarn i Norge (Health prob-
lems among immigrant children). Tidsskrift for den Norske Lægeforening, 727(6), 715-718.
Brunvand, L, Henriksen, C, Larsson, M., & Sandberg, A.-S. (1995). Iron deficiency among pregnant
Pakistanis in Norway and the content of phytic acid in their diet. Acta Obstetricia et Gynecologica
Scandinavica, 74, 520-525.
Brunvand, L., & Nordshus, T. (1996). Alimentær rakitt. (Alimentary rickets). Nordisk Medicin,
777(7), 219-221.
80 KUMAR AND WANDEL
Brunvand, L., & Sander, J. (1993). Jernmangelanemi hos innvandrerbarn fra utviklingsland (Iron
deficiency anaemia among immigrant children from development countries). Tidskrift for Norsk
Lægeforening, 113, 1719-1720.
Brustad, M. (2004). Vitamin D Security in Northern Norway in Relation to Marine Food Traditions.
Unpublished doctoral dissertation, ISM skriftserie nr 71, University of Tromsø, Norway.
Cook, J. D. (1994). Iron deficiency anaemia. Bailliere's Clinical Haematology, 7, 787-804.
Dawes, T., Kumar, B. N., & Middelthon, A. O. (in press). A qualitative study of perceptions of dietary fat
intake in Pakistani women aged 42 to 70 years in Oslo. Abstract Book, 5th Asian Diabetes Conference.
Dhirad, A., Kumar, B. N., & Holmboe-Ottesen, G. (in press). Lifestyle and health among Pakistani
women in Oslo, Norway. Abstract Book, 5th Asian Diabetes Conference.
Fagerli, R., Wandel, M., Olsen, P. T., Ek, J., Thorstensen, K., Brekke, O.-L., & Borch-Iohnsen, B.
(1996). Iron status and diet at two years of age: A longitudinal study of healthy Norwegian and
immigrant children. Scandinavian Journal of Nutrition, 40: 58-63.
Fairweather-Tait, S. J. (1992). Iron deficiency in infancy; easy to prevent—Or is it? European Journal
of Clinical Nutrition, 46, 9-14.
Grantham-McGregor, S., & Ani, C. (2001). A review of studies on the effect of iron deficiency on cog-
nitive development in children. Journal of Nutrition, 131, 649S-668S.
Henriksen, C. (1995). Diet and vitamin D status among pregnant Pakistani women in Oslo. European
Journal of Clinical Nutrition, 49, 211-218.
Hercberg, S., Papoz, L., Galin, P., Guery, M. E, Farnier, M. A., & Rossignol, C. (1987). Iron status
and dietary pattern in young children. Nutrition Reports International, 35, 307-315.
Holick, M. F. (1994). Vitamin D. In M. Shils, J. A. Olson, & M. Shike (Eds.), Modern Nutrition in
Health and Disease (8th ed., pp. 308-325). Malvern, UK: Lea & Febiger.
Holvik, K., Meyer, H. E., Haug, E., & Brunvand, L. (2005). Prevalence and predictors of vitamin D
deficiency in five immigrant groups living in Oslo, Norway: The Oslo Immigrant Health Study.
European Journal of Clinical Nutrition, 59, 57-63.
Krieger, E. H., Claussen, A. H., & Scott, K. G. (1999). Early childhood anemia and mild or moderate
mental retardation. American Journal of Clinical Nutrition, 69, 115-119.
Kumar, B. N. (2001). Nutrition and Health of Immigrants from South Asia. Oslo, Norway.
Kumar, B. N. (2004). Food in a Multicultural Nordic perspective. Abstract Book, 8th Nordic Nutrition
Conference, 2004. Tønsberg, Norway: Norwegian Nutrition Society.
Kumar, B. N., Meyer, H. E., Wandel, M., Dalen, I., & Holmboe-Ottesen, G. (2005). Ethnic differences
in obesity among immigrants from developing countries, in Oslo, Norway. International Journal of
Obesity-Related Metabolic Disorders, __, 000-000.
Kumar, B. N., Wandel, M., & Holmboe-Ottesen, G. (2003). Factors influencing healthy eating habits
among ethnic minorities in Oslo, Norway. Annals of Nutrition and Metabolism, 47, 400-401.
Lande, B., Andersen, L. E, Bærug, A., Trygg, K. U., Lund-Larsen, K., Veierød, M. B., & Bjørnebo,
G.-E. (2003). Infant feeding practices and associated factors in the first six months of life: The
Norwegian Infant Nutrition Survey. Acta Pædiatrica, 92, 152-161.
Lie, B. (2002). Innvandring og innvandrere 2002. Oslo, Norway: Statistisk sentralbyrå.
Lozoff, B., Wolf, A. W, & Jimenez, E. (1996). Iron-deficiency anemia and infant development:
Effects of extended oral iron therapy. Journal of Pediatrics, 129, 382-389.
Madar, A. (1997). Kosthold og Jernstatus hos Somaliske Barn, 2-4 år i Osloregionen (Diet and Iron
Status Among Somalian Children, 2-4 Years of Age in the Oslo Region). Unpublished master's
thesis, Institute for Nutrition Research, University of Oslo, Norway.
Major, P. (1995-1996). Jernmangelanemi og spedbarns psykomotoriske utvikling (Iron deficiency
anemia and psychomotor development in infants). Tidsskrift for den norske lægeforeningen, 114,
1995-1996.
Mellin-Olsen, T. & Wandel, M. (2005). Changes in food habits among Pakistani immigrant women in
Oslo, Norway. Ethnicity and Health, 10(4): 311-339.
5. IMMIGRANT CHILDREN AND NUTRITION IN NORWAY 81
National Nutrition Council. (2001). Anbefalinger for Spedbarnsernæring (Recommendations for
Infant Nutrition). Oslo, Norway: Statens råd for Ernæring og Fysisk Aktivitet, (www.sef.no).
National Nutrition Council. (2005). NORSKE anbefalinger for Ernæring og Fysisk Aktivitet
(Norwegian Recommendations for Nutrition and Physical Activity). Oslo, Norway: Norwegian
Social and Health Directorate (www.sef.no).
Natland Sannan, S. T. (2003). Etniske Forskjeller i Kostvaner Blant 9-åringer og 15-åringer i Oslo
(Ethnic Differences in Dietary Habits Among 9-Year Olds and 15-Year Olds in Oslo). Unpublished
master's thesis, Institute for Nutrition Research, University of Oslo, Norway.
Politt, E. (2000). Developmental sequel from early nutritional deficiencies: Conclusive and probabil-
ity judgements. Journal of Nutrition, 130, 350S-353S.
Råberg, M. (2005). Kostholdsendringer Blant Voksne Innvandrere i Oslo i Relasjon til Integrering i
Det Norske Samfunnet (Dietary Changes Among Adult Immigrants in the Oslo Region in Relation
to Integration into the Norwegian Society). Unpublished master's thesis, Department of Nutrition,
University of Oslo, Norway.
Rao, M. S. A (1986) Conservatism and Change in Food Habits Among the Migrants in India: A Study
in Gastrodynamics. In R. S. Khare and M. S. A Rao (Eds.), Food, Society and Culture: Aspects in
South Asian Food Systems (pp. 121-140). Durham, NC: Carolina Academic Press.
Solem, I. H. (1982). Barnemat, Kultur og Samfunn. En Undersøkelse av Amming og Småbarns
Kosthold og Helse Blant Innvandrere i Oslo (Children's Food, Culture and Society. A Study of
Breast-Feeding and Children's Diet and Health Among Immigrants in Oslo). Unpublished master's
thesis, Institute for Nutrition Research, University of Oslo, Norway.
Walter, T. (1994). Effect of iron-deficiency anaemia on cognitive skills in infancy and childhood.
Baillieres Clinical Haematology, 7, 815-827.
Wandel, M., Fagerli, R., Olsen, P. T., Borch-Iohnsen, B., & Ek, J. (1996). Iron status and weaning
practices among Norwegian and immigrant infants. Nutrition Research, 16, 251-265.
Introduction to Part II
They Are Here: Newcomers
in the Schools
All over the world, teachers are encountering children different from themselves
in race, ethnicity, culture, language, and socioeconomic status. Although some
teachers have grown up surrounded by diversity, others lack experience with a
heterogeneous society. Many preservice teachers have not themselves attended
schools with people of another race or lived in cross-cultural neighborhoods, and
their understanding of racially diverse students may be vague (Ford, 1996;
Milner, 2003; Milner & Woolfolk Hoy, 2003). As a result, some teachers may rely
on stereotypical concepts of racially diverse students that in turn may cause them
consciously or unconsciously to think of their racially diverse students through
deficit models (Milner; Milner & Woolfolk Hoy). Few teachers are themselves
from diverse backgrounds. For example, in the United States, despite an increas-
ingly diverse student population, the teaching force continues to be predomi-
nantly European-American, middle-class, and female, with only 10% coming
from ethnic minorities (Taylor & Sobel, 2003; Ward & Ward, 2003).
The complex act of teaching requires that teachers understand individual dif-
ferences in their students as well as the sociocultural context in which they have
been raised and socialized (Barrere & Kramer, 1997). Children and youth in
immigrant families are the fastest-growing component of the child and youth pop-
ulation in the countries described in part II: Israel, the United States, and Greece.
It is expected that the trend for expansion of the population of children and youth
in these countries will be through immigrants and births to immigrants and their
descendants (Hernandez, 2004; Kasimis & Kassimi, 2004; Organization for
Economic Cooperation and Development [OECD], 2005). The studies in part II
explore a number of challenges faced by the immigrant and refugee children and
their families when they first encounter the school system in the host country.
Also described are the challenges faced by teachers in understanding and
supporting the complex needs of these children. As the three chapters demonstrate,
83
84 PART II
teachers often have multiple concerns about the students in their classes, including
their wide range of academic abilities and some with special learning and behav-
ioral needs. Reaching out to the newly arrived child, particularly when there are
language and cultural barriers, adds to what may already be a demanding situation
for the classroom teacher.
The study in chapter 3 in part I does not distinguish among immigrant students
based on their time of arrival in the host country or the degree to which a family
may continue to see itself as an immigrant family after arrival. However, chapter
6 in this part describes only newly arrived children and families and considers the
immediate adjustment needs of children who enroll in a school system shortly
after arrival. Regardless of how researchers define the immigrant student, teachers
must teach students from racially, culturally, linguistically, and religiously diverse
groups, as well as newly arrived students. This task however, is neither simple nor
easy. Chapter 6 shows the limitations of advanced teacher training in addressing
the needs of newly arrived students in the class and the need for teacher assistance
when the situation arises.
Immigrants have historically tended to cluster in particular destinations, and
countries around the world have communities that bear witness to past waves of
migration from China, Greece, Italy, and the Nordic nations. Israel and Greece
were two of many countries to receive a massive flow of immigrants from the
former Soviet Union (FSU) beginning in the late 1980s as a result of radical
changes in the Russian political system and its emigration policy (Shamai, Ilatov,
Psalti, & Deliyanni, 2002). Chapter 7 reports on the return of Jewish Russian and
Ethiopian immigrants to Israel. The authors describe the various levels of social
and economic integration of these two groups into Israeli society and the views
of fathers on the socialization of their children after immigration both at home
and in school. The authors state that despite these two immigrant populations
developing ties in their own cultural groups, they experience different levels of
social and economic integration into the Israeli system, with the Russian immi-
grants becoming more highly integrated and the Ethiopian immigrants generally
remaining segregated. A theoretical framework of an "adaptive adult" is consid-
ered in investigating the connection between the cultural ideologies of the child's
socializing agents and his or her performance in school. It is suggested that the
image of the adaptive adult helps educators understand the cultural basis of immi-
grant parents' expectations. When teachers recognize cultural differences and
understand the cultural lag and cultural logic, they are more likely to avoid the
sense of frustration they may otherwise experience in the light of what might
otherwise be considered parents' personalities or objections to the host culture's
educational approach. Thus, awareness of the differences that exist between cultures
helps bridge the gaps by reducing incidences of misjudgment, stereotyping, and
misunderstanding.
INTRODUCTION TO PART II 85
Shamai et al. (2002) reported that FSU immigrants have influenced how Israeli
society treats its minorities, allowing more space to ethnic groups than before
because of the cultural negotiation process initiated by the immigrants. Conversely,
FSU immigrants into Greece may be more interested in assimilation, which is in
keeping with Greek societal views, and many of the immigrants appear to prefer to
downplay the differences between themselves and the Greek host society.
The central theme in the Israeli national ethos of reunification of the Jewish
nation is reflected in a proactive endeavor to attract Jewish immigration to Israel.
However, in Greece, as in many countries, immigrants are kept in the back of
people's minds and excluded from the social milieu or even overtly excluded from
population statistics as if they did not exist (Fakiolas, 2003). The Greek government
has been forced to adopt a regularization procedure under often-contradictory pres-
sures (Kasimis & Kassimi, 2004). From one side, in an environment of growing
xenophobia, the public demanded registration of immigrants. From another side,
human rights and labor organizations sought more humanitarian and less exploita-
tive treatment. Chapter 8 describes how children of immigrants in northern Greece
start preschool and the implications for schools in easing the initial transition of
young children into a group setting. The adjustment of the entire immigrant family
bears consideration by the schools. Concerns about parents' involvement with their
children's education become more intense where there are language and cultural
barriers between the newly arrived families and the school personnel. Hernandez
(2004) pointed out that immigrant parents may be unfamiliar or uncomfortable with
participating in the schooling of their children, and many may have lower levels of
education than average parents in the host country. Parents participating in the
studies in this chapter echo these points, together with other problems that create
barriers between home and school.
A common issue explored in the chapters in part II is language and its role in
acculturation and school success. Research indicates that nearly all language-
minority children and adolescents are language brokers for their parents and other
family members (Tse, 1995). Children from diverse language backgrounds as
young as 8 or 9 years old perform difficult and demanding linguistic and com-
munication tasks normally done by adults, both related and unrelated to school
activities. Brokering itself exposes the children to more language and helps them
acquire better language skills. For immigrants and refugees, the brokering
process typically begins soon after arrival in the host country. Studies in the
United States also suggest that brokering helps students maintain native language
skills as well as develop skills in English. English-language skills achieved
through brokering are not always reflected in academic achievement, however,
suggesting that school settings do not always provide an accurate picture of
students' competence. Alternative assessment methods are usually needed to
measure the skills of newly immigrated students.
86 PART II
REFERENCES
Barrere, L., & Kramer, L. (1997). From monologues to skills dialogues: Teaching the process of craft-
ing culturally competent early childhood environments. In P. J. Winton, J. A. McCullum, & C. Catlett
(Eds.), Reforming Personnel Preparation in Early Intervention (pp. 217-251). Baltimore, MD: Paul
H. Brookes.
Fakiolas, R. (2003). Regularising undocumented immigrants in Greece: Procedures and effects.
Journal of Ethnic and Migration Studies, 29, 535-561.
Ford, D. Y. (1996). Reversing Underachievement Among Gifted Black Students: Promising Practices
and Programs. New York: Teachers College Press.
Hernandez, D. (2004). Children and Youth in Immigrant Families: Demographic, social, and educa-
tional issues. In J. A. Banks & C. A. McG. Banks, Handbook of Research on Multicultural
Education (pp. 404-419). San Francisco: Jossey-Bass.
Kasimis, C , & Kassimi, C. (2004). Greece: A History of Migration. Washington, DC: Migration
Policy Institute. Retrieved November 8, 2004, from http://www.migrationinformation.org/
Profiles/display.cfm?id=228
Milner, H. R. (2003). Reflection, racial competence, and critical pedagogy: How do we prepare
pre-service teachers to pose tough questions? Race, Ethnicity and Education, 6, 193-208.
Milner, H. R., & Woolfolk Hoy, A. (2003). A case study of an African American teachers' self-
efficacy, stereotype threat, and persistence. Teaching and Teacher Education, 19, 263-276.
Organization for Economic Cooperation and Development (OECD). (2005). Trends in International
Migration: Annual Report, SOPEMI, 2004 Edition. Retrieved August 19, 2005, from
http://www.databeuro.com/acatalog/sopemi_2004_TOC.pdf
Shamai, S., Ilatov, Z., Psalti, A., & Deliyanni, K. (2002). Acculturation of Soviet immigrant parents
in Israel and Greece. International Journal of Sociology of the Family, 30(1), 2 1 - 9 .
Taylor, S. V., & Sobel, D. M. (2003). Missing in action: Research on the accountability of multicul-
tural, inclusive teacher education. Essays in Education, 2(2), 1-23.
Tse, L. (1995). When students translate for parents: Effects of language brokering. San Diego, CA:
California Association for Bilingual Education. (ERIC Document Retrieval Service No.
ED402733).
Ward, M. J., & Ward, C. J. (2003). Promoting cross-cultural competence in pre-service teachers
through second language use. Education, 123, 532-536.
Chapter 6
Leah D. Adams
Eastern Michigan University, USA
Krista M. Shambleau
Michigan State University, USA
The increased mobility of families around the world influences schools and
challenges educators. Children in immigrant families are the fastest growing seg-
ment of the child population in the United States, with one of every five children
in the United States living in a household where one or both parents are foreign
born. (Hernandez, 2004). During the 1990s, more than 14 million immigrants
entered the United States, exceeding the flow in any decade in the nation's
history. Entry of another 14 million immigrants is expected between 2000 and
2010 (Fix & Passel, 2003). Friedlander (1991) wrote that the wave of immigra-
tion in the latter decades of the 20th century had such a profound effect on the
society that it could almost be regarded as the equivalent of a demographic revo-
lution. This impact is perhaps most obvious in the schools.
87
88 ADAMS AND SHAMBLEAU
While the ethnic profile of newly arrived children (NAC) is diverse, the effect
of the rapidly changing demographics in communities means that educators
across the land face a similar agenda of challenge and opportunity incorporating
the new arrivals into the schools. (Northwest Regional Educational Laboratory
[NWREL], 2001). NAC enroll with various degrees of preparation and educa-
tional competencies, and most present significant challenges to the educational
setting. Some of the needs include developing English language skills and under-
standing academic concepts that are required to function effectively in US
schools. In addition, some NAC have inadequate or missing academic prepara-
tion, which complicates their placement within age-appropriate classrooms.
Children may have missed critical years of classroom experience, often cannot
read or write in their own language, and have not mastered the basics of either
rote learning or the use of higher-level cognitive strategies (Suårez-Orozco &
Suårez-Orozco, 2001). Others have needs that go beyond academic concerns,
such as difficulties at home or personal traumas, which need attention along with
their education (NWREL, 2001).
School is the defined environment where the child comes in continuous, first-
hand contact with other cultures through the multiple interactions within that con-
text (Sam & Oppedal, 2002). At school, immigrant children are immediately and
vigorously challenged with the new culture. Even if the people within the school
context represent a variety of cultures, their activities within the school setting are
determined by a superimposed group culture of the majority. Success in the new
culture means establishing successful peer relations, learning the language, and
doing well in school (Kirova & Wu, 2002). The school context includes numer-
ous interactions with teachers and other children that may or may not support the
function of adaptation in cognitive and social development.
In American society, it is generally expected for school-age children to achieve
in school (academic competence); to get along with other children and develop
friendships (social competence); and to follow rules of behavior in the home,
school, and community (conduct) (Masten & Powell, 2003). Early intervention in
the education of immigrant children has been reported as being critical to later
well-being. (Beiser, Dion, Gotowiec, Hyman, & Vu, 1995; Hyman, Vu & Beiser,
2000). The implication is for educators to have the knowledge and skills that
allow them to support children with immigrant backgrounds through their transi-
tion and adjustment in both the cognitive and social domains.
The purpose of this study was to investigate a variety of elementary school
classroom strategies that support the transition and adjustment of NAC. The study
was based on the assumptions that the number of immigrant students is a signif-
icant factor in the schools, the diversity of cultures in the classroom affects the
teaching-learning process (Yale Center in Child Development and Social Policy,
2003), and the school is a primary resource for the adjustment of NAC and their
families (Suårez-Orozco & Suårez-Orozco, 2001).
6. NAC'S ADJUSTMENT TO ELEMENTARY SCHOOL 89
Sample
Administrators from four school districts in a Midwestern urban/suburban area
identified the schools in their districts with the highest percentage of newly immi-
grated students. A total of nine schools in the four districts were selected and 112
elementary teachers in those schools were surveyed about teaching strategies they
use in the classroom. The teachers were invited to participate in a more extensive
follow up interview, and 25 (22%) chose to be interviewed.
A summary of demographic information for the teacher sample used for this
study is presented in Table 1. The sample was a multiethnic group with consider-
able teaching experience (mean 12.8 years, SD = 9.3). The majority (83%)
reported having previous experience teaching NAC with an average of 6 years of
experience (SD = 5.5). They had an average of 24.41 students in their classrooms
(SD = 5.8), including an average of two NAC (SD = 2.2) at the time of the sur-
vey. Table 2 summarizes the number of NAC by region that the teachers had expe-
rience with in their classrooms. The demographics for the 25 teachers who
volunteered to be interviewed were almost identical to those for the total teacher
sample in terms of grades taught and race or ethnicity. The teachers who were
interviewed had an average of 14 years teaching experience (SD = 9).
In addition, 10 parents who had arrived in the United States within the past 3
years were interviewed along with 11 of their children. The families had been in
the United States for an average of 2 years at the time of the interview. Table 3
displays genders and native countries of the parents and children.
TABLE 1
Survey Teacher Ethnicity and Grade Levels
Ethnicity
African American 7 6%
Arab American 14 13%
Asian Pacific Islander 2 2%
Caucasian 84 77%
Native American 1 1%
Bi-Racial 1 1%
Current Grade Levels
Kindergarten 11 10%
1st grade 21 19%
2nd grade 20 18%
3rd grade 17 15%
4th grade 22 19%
5th grade 21 19%
TABLE 2
Newly Arrived Children by Region
Africa
Eastern Africa 2%
The Americas
Caribbean 4 2%
Central America 28 17%
South America 3 2%
Asia
Eastern Asia 43 26%
South-central Asia 10 6%
Western Asia 54 32%
Europe
Eastern Europe 1 1%
Southern Europe 16 10%
Western Europe 4 2%
6. NAC'S ADJUSTMENT TO ELEMENTARY SCHOOL
TABLE 3
Parent and Child Demographics
Characteristic Number Percent
Parent Gender
Male 1 10%
Female 9 90%
Parent Country
Pakistan 1 10%
India 1 10%
Turkey 1 10%
China 1 10%
Columbia 1 10%
Yemen 1 10%
Lebanon 2 20%
Mexico 2 20%
Child Gender
Male 7 64%
Female 4 36%
Child Country
Pakistan 1 9%
India 1 9%
Turkey 1 9%
China 1 9%
Columbia 2 18%
Yemen 1 9%
Lebanon 1 9%
Mexico 3 27%
children's school experiences. The child interview questions asked children about
their transnational migration, school experiences, and social relationships at
school. Some of the same questions were asked of both parents and children.
Analysis
The method of data collection allowed the project investigators to analyze school
experiences from multiple perspectives within the confines of qualitative analysis.
Qualitative data analysis was used to find patterns of congruence and incongruence
among teachers, children, and parents in terms of their understandings and misun-
derstandings of each other. Analysis of teacher, child, and parent interview responses
92 ADAMS AND SHAMBLEAU
RESULTS
TABLE 4
Social, Emotional, and Cognitive Support Strategies
Strategy Type Social/Emotional f Cognitive f
Teaching strategies 65 238
Social support strategies 138 35
Language 66 69
Cultural diversity 27 2
External support 21 13
showing a caring attitude (f= 38), such as smiling frequently, staying near the
newcomer so the teacher's proximity can be reassuring, and touching or hugging
the child, if appropriate to the child's culture. One teacher said in an interview
that she was fortunate that she always had at least 24 h notice before a NAC was
placed in her class. She could tell the class that a new classmate was joining them
and give them the child's name and home nation. She always prepared a name
card for the child's desk and discussed with the class what they could do to make
the newcomer feel welcome.
Using appropriate teaching strategies was cited as a way to help child feel at
home in the classroom (f = 65). The most frequent responses were to pair the
NAC with another student (f= 60), often referred to as a "buddy," and to put the
NAC in a small group of students for class work if = 23). Some teachers sug-
gested having work buddies, a lunch buddy, a playground buddy, and so forth to
show the new child different rooms throughout the school and to help the child
become more comfortable in the school environment. This enables the NAC to
form multiple connections with other students and avoids giving any one child
extensive responsibility for the newcomer.
Strategies used to address language barriers (f= 66) often included locating a
student, a sibling in the school, another teacher, or someone from outside the
school (f= 51) who could communicate with the newcomer and explain the class-
room routines and procedures. One teacher told how the school secretary located
a Polish-speaking high school student who came into the classroom to help a
Polish-speaking NAC for the day.
The need to reach out to families was reflected in every survey and interview
question. A frequent response was to invite the child or family to tell the class about
the home culture. The teachers said that helping the others in the classroom develop
an appreciation for the new child's culture is a high priority. A kindergarten teacher
said she gave some of her own money to a family so they could come and prepare
a typical meal from their home nation for the class. She found it was a turning point
for the new child in terms of feeling more confident and secure in school.
94 ADAMS AND SHAMBLEAU
TABLE 5
Experiences Helpful in Working With Newly Arrived Children (NAC)
Experience f
a
Personal Experience 102
Teaching experience 87
Personal experience (outside) 40
Personal experience (multicultural) 56
Formal Educationb 83
Classes before certification 55
In-service classes 75
Graduate classes 36
a
Refers to personal experience either related to teachers' own teaching experi-
ence, experience outside of the school setting, or within a multicultural setting.
b
Refers to formal education either related to teachers' classes taken before certi-
fication, in-service training, or graduate level classes.
TABLE 6
Influence on Strategies
Number of Respondents
Mentioning item as a "Higher Influence "
Higher Influences /
Child's response 104
Personal experience 100
Class size 96
Class composition 94
Time constraints 92
Support from school 90
Availability of information on child 79
Parent interest 71
Training 55
School policies 44
Note. "Higher Influence" was indicated as the two highest points on a 4-point scale.
On the survey, the teachers were asked to indicate how well prepared they felt. Twenty-
two teachers reported that they felt "well prepared," 66 teachers reported "somewhat
prepared," and 24 reported "not at all prepared." In addition, the teachers were asked
to rate the helpfulness of experiences for teaching NAC (Table 5) and to rate the level
of influence on their teaching strategies from a variety of sources (Table 6).
96 ADAMS AND SHAMBLEAU
TABLE 7
T-tests for Experienced and Not Experienced Teachers
Strategy Type df t p
Social/Emotional
Connecting with family 109 -1.2 .24
Cooperative learning 109 2.5* .02
Cognitive
Multiple teaching approaches 109 2.0* .05
Standard adjustments 109 2.7* .01
Visuals 109 -1.4 .17
*p<.05.
Teachers ranked their own personal experience more highly than formal edu-
cation completed before teaching. In-service training (formal or informal training
while on the job) was also ranked high and was considered more helpful than pre-
service training, indicating that professional development based on need is most
valuable. The strategies that experienced teachers use are significantly different
than those that nonexperienced teachers said they would use in three areas.
Experienced teachers use more cooperative learning strategies (t = 2.5, p = .02),
use more multiple teaching approaches (t = 2.0, p = .05), and adjust the standards
more often (t = 2.7, p = .01), compared with what the nonexperienced teachers'
projections of the strategies they would use (Table 7).
force in the classroom when interviewed about the beginning days of school, but
they did not express remorse. Joe, 9 years old from Columbia, brushed it off with
"I didn't know how to talk to the other kids and I couldn't understand the teacher."
When the interviewer asked if he still gets in trouble, he said he is better and his
mother "is happier now because she doesn't get so many phone calls and notes."
These comments were congruent with some teacher comments about the diffi-
culty of keeping the non-English speaking NAC engaged in positive behaviors in
the classroom. NAC also may be victims of bullying, as one boy reported and as
mentioned by two teachers as something they had to watch out for and prevent.
DISCUSSION
recognized the cultural gap and the need to reach out to parents and the parents wish
for close communication with the school. When teachers and families do not share
a spoken language there is a barrier to communication, even though it is desired by
all parties. It is not surprising that some teachers expressed disappointment that
more parents were not working harder to learn English and did not speak it in the
home. Their concern that the parents sometimes lacked the insight on how difficult
it was for the child to grasp the curriculum content and to prepare for the state man-
dated testing program without a proficiency in English was well founded. Research
studies show that when there is little or no English spoken in the home, it is less
likely the child will do well in school (Children Now, 2004).
Manning and Baruth (2004) suggested that individual and cultural differences can
provide an effective framework for teaching and learning experiences and can enrich
and contribute to individual teaching and learning situations. The elementary teach-
ers in this study were cognizant of the individuality of the students. While they
understood the impact of cultural differences, most responses related to getting to
know the individual child and there was a noticeable absence of responses related to
any cultural stereotypes. The teachers' responses showed a desire to help the NAC
become an integral part of the class and to learn to the best of his or her ability.
Teachers have varying degrees of preparation in supporting NAC and their
families. Takanishi (2004) reported that surveys of teachers at the prekindergarten
and K-12 educational levels indicated that teachers do not feel that they are ade-
quately trained to work with children and families diverse cultural and linguistic
backgrounds. 'To work well with immigrant children, educators must understand
immigrant, cultural, and ethnic diversity in communities in the United States,
examine and clarify their own racial and ethnic attitudes, and develop appropri-
ate pedagogical knowledge and skills" (Rong & Preissle, 1998, p. x.). The teach-
ers in this study felt, on an average, moderately well prepared. However, the
difference in responses between experienced and inexperienced teachers supports
the role of training, particularly when the teacher has NAC in the classroom.
Parents want teachers to be patient with their children, which is congruent with
the teachers' advice to other teachers and to families. However, being patient can
be incongruent with the teachers' need for children to become adjusted socially
and learn English so that they can progress more rapidly to grade-level academic
achievement. It also can be incongruent with the parents' wish for their children to
catch up with the other students. There are no easy or simple answers for teachers
or families when it comes to school success for NAC.
NAC in the classroom have distinctive needs that must be understood and addressed
by teachers to support their learning. All children have their own learning challenges,
but some NAC who may not have had previous schooling or who had interrupted
6. NAC S ADJUSTMENT TO ELEMENTARY SCHOOL 101
schooling may have had fewer or less refined skills than their peers. These new
arrivals may have lower literacy skills, lack of curriculum knowledge, lack of for-
mal learning skills, and possible emotional and behavioral problems caused by
stress and trauma. Teachers must be concerned about building on what strengths
children do posses through formative assessment and thoughtful planning.
Connecting with NAC and their families, while considering their distinctive
needs and the multifaceted issues that may be present (e.g., embarrassment about
language and literacy skills, unfamiliarity with school regulations and routines), calls
for teachers, schools, and districts to respond with understanding. Consideration for
the parents' transition to the United States and into the school context is also neces-
sary. Starting school can be traumatic for any child because of the uncertainties of
the new situation and the process of facing up to the new level of independence from
home. It is often stressful for parents also because of the introduction of new author-
ities and persons of influence in the child's life. When the additional factors of cul-
tural differences and tenuous ties with the new place of residence are present, we can
expect that school enrollment for the newly arrived immigrant child is not easy.
The implications that can be drawn from this study include the following:
1. Teachers, parents, and children all suggested that time and patience was
required for children's social adjustment and academic success during the
school transition.
2. Families and schools must work together, even with challenging language
barriers and cultural differences. The busy elementary school teacher, with
curriculum goals to be met and a classroom of students with a multiple needs
and learning styles, needs support. Other school personnel, the family, the
teacher, and those who can assist with language translation, if needed, must
form a coalition of stakeholders who care about the child's success in school.
3. Mentoring, in-service training and, to a more limited extent, preservice
education, will increase the likelihood teachers will use effective strate-
gies for offering social emotional support and will use the most salient
teaching strategies to reach the newly arrived child.
4. Support for the classroom teacher from other school personnel and provi-
sion of appropriate classroom instruction materials will enable the teacher
to more effectively work with the newly arrived child and the newly
arrived family.
5. NAC and families as well as experienced teachers have insight and many
suggestions for how to help NAC adjust to U.S. elementary schools. Their
voices must be heard, and their ideas must be considered.
6. Being an immigrant family is not easy. Being a newly arrived student is not
easy. Being the teacher of a newly arrived child presents multiple chal-
lenges. However, families, children, and teachers agree that the time and
effort required for a successful transition results in benefits for all, and
schools and communities are enriched by the integration of the newcomers.
102 ADAMS AND SHAMBLEAU
REFERENCES
Baumeister, R. F., & Leary, M. R. (1995). The need to belong: Desire for interpersonal attachments
as a fundamental human motivation. Psychological Bulletin, 117, 497-529.
Beiser, M., Dion, R., Gotowiec, Á., Hyman, I., & Vu, N. (1995). Immigrant and refugee children in
Canada. Canadian Journal of Psychiatry, 40(2), 67-72.
Children Now. (2004). California Report Card 2004: Focus on Children in Immigrant Families.
Oakland, CA: Author. Retrieved August 17, 2004 from http://publications.childrennow.org/
publications/invest/reportcard_2004.cfm
Clayton, J. (2003). One Classroom, Many Worlds: Teaching and Learning in the Cross-Cultural
Classroom. Portsmouth, NH: Heinemann.
Fix, M. & Passel, J. (2003, January). U.S. Immigration—Trends and Implications for Schools. Paper
presented at the National Association for Bilingual Education NCLB Implementation Institute,
New Orleans, LA.
Friedlander, M. (1991, Fall). The newcomer program: Helping immigrant students succeed in U.S.
schools. NCELA Program Information Guide Series, Number 8. Retrieved April 23, 2006, from
www.ncela.gwu.edu/pubs/pigs/pig8.htm
Hernandez, D. (2004). Children and Youth in Immigrant Families: Demographic, social, and educa-
tional issues. In Banks, J. A. & Banks C. A. McG. (Eds.), Handbook of Research on Multicultural
Education (pp. 404-419). San Francisco: Jossey-Bass.
Hyman, I., Vu, N., & Beiser, M. (2000). Post-migration stresses among Southeast Asian refugees
youth in Canada: A research note. Journal of Comparative Family Studies, 31(2), 281-293.
Igoa, C. (1995) The Inner World of the Immigrant Child. New York: St. Martin's Press.
Kirova, A. & Wu, J. (2002). Peer Acceptance, Learning English as a Second Language, and Identity
Formation in Children of Recent Chinese Immigrants. In M. Wyness & A. Richardson (Eds.).
Exploring Cultural Perspectives, Integration and Globalization (pp. 171-190.). Edmonton, ON:
ICRN Press.
Manning, M. L., & Baruth, L. (2004.) Multicultural Education of Children and Adolescents. Boston:
Pearson/Allyn & Bacon.
Masten, Á., & Powell, J. (2003). A resilience framework for research, policy, and practice. In Luthar,
S. (Ed.) Resilience and Vulnerability: Adaptation in the Context of Childhood Adversities
(pp. 000-000). New York: Cambridge University Press.
Northwest Regional Educational Laboratory (NWREL). (1998). Improving Education for Immigrant
Students: A Resource Guide for K-12 Educators in the Northwest and Alaska. Denver: Author.
Rong, X. L., & Preissle, J. (1998). Educating Immigrant Students: What We Need to Know to Meet
the Challenges. Thousand Oaks, CA: Corwin Press.
Sam, D. L., & Oppedal, B. (2002). Acculturation as a developmental pathway. In W. J. Lonner, D. L.
Dinnel, S. A. Hayes, & D. N. Sattler (Eds.), Online Readings in Psychology and Culture (Unit 8,
Chapter 6). Bellingham, Washington: Center for Cross-Cultural Research, Western Washington
University.
Suarez-Orozco, C. & Suarez-Orozco. M. (2001). Children of Immigration. Cambridge, MA: Harvard
University Press.
Takanishi, R. (2004) Leveling the playing field: Supporting immigrant children from birth to eight.
The Future of Children: Children of Immigrant Families, 14(2), 61-79.
Yale Center in Child Development and Social Policy. (2003). Portraits of Four Schools: Meeting the
Needs of Immigrant Students and Their Families. New Haven, CT: Author.
Chapter 7
Dorit Roer-Strier
The Hebrew University of Jerusalem, Israel
Roni Strier
Haifa University, Israel
Schooling is at the heart of how we can help immigrant children succeed in a host
culture without losing their own (Suarez-Orozco & Suarez-Orozco, 2001b).
Current discussions of immigrant children's education around the globe reflect
public concern about the extent of immigration and its meaning for a national
culture. Language proficiency is regarded in many countries as the vehicle for the
integration of immigrant children, a necessary part of belonging, of being a citi-
zen. However, "Equating language acquisition with acculturation is a constrained
view of nationalism. This limited view of culture that misses the great depth of
what culture is in terms of values, worldviews, and social practices" (p. 40).
According to Suarez-Orozco and Suarez-Orosco (2001a), the role of the
school is to accommodate, even embrace, the immigrants' expressive values (e.g.,
their worldview and patterns of interpersonal relationships) while teaching the
instrumental skills necessary for them to succeed in the host culture (e.g., com-
munication and technical skills and behaviors). In this chapter, we suggest that a
103
104 ROER-STRIER AND STRIER
Parents may not be totally aware of the Adaptive Adult image that influences their
own ideas and practices. They may also find it difficult to answer direct questions
about this image. However, the image of the Adaptive Adult clearly emerges in
their answers to questions about developmental expectation. Answers to ques-
tions such as "How do you envisage your child as a successful adult?" "What
traits would you like your child to have when he grows up?" (Buki, Ma, Strom,
& Strom, 2003; Frankel & Roer-Bornstein, 1982; Hess & Azuma, 1991; Ninio,
1988; Pomerleau, Malcuit, & Sabataier, 1991) clearly unfold the image. The
Adaptive Adult metaphor also may be deduced from an analysis of childrearing
customs and ceremonies, songs, and proverbs, especially in traditional societies.
The "cultural logic" is the reason socializing agents in a particular culture choose
to reinforce a specific trait in their children and regard it as adaptive. For exam-
ple, traits such as independence, autonomy, assertiveness, and self-sufficiency are
adaptive to Western technological and industrial societies and are reflected in
Israeli teachers' images of the Adaptive Adult (Roer-Strier, 2000), whereas inter-
dependence, respect for elders, good manners, and solidarity may be reinforced
by cultures that are more community-oriented (Roer-Strier & Rosenthal, 2003).
When parents emigrate, they do not leave this image behind. Parents tend to
preserve the Adaptive Adult image in times of cultural transition. Studies of
immigrant families suggest that parental social cognition, childrearing ideologies,
expectations, norms, rules, and beliefs tend to preserve meaningful elements of
7. HOME AND SCHOOL: FATHERS' VIEWS 105
their original cultures (Frankel & Roer-Bornstein, 1982; Greenfield & Cocking,
1994; Honig, 1989; Roer-Strier & Rosenthal, 2003). Parents' preservation of their
Adaptive Adult image aimed at preserving cultural cohesion produces what
Goldman (1993) called a "cultural lag"—a transient period during which immi-
grant parents hold onto the home culture traditions, sometimes resulting in
clashes with the educational system of the host culture.
It is, therefore, important to identify this image and assess its adaptability in
cultures undergoing transition (e.g., following immigration) in situations where
the cultural norms of home and school differ or in families where parents come
from two separate cultures. The immigrant child often faces different, sometimes
conflicting, images of Adaptive Adult: cultural and social values held by parents
on one hand and by the host country's educators on the other hand.
In many cases, neither the immigrant parents nor the educators of the host
culture are familiar with or even aware of the Adaptive Adult image held by the
other party. Therefore, they cannot appreciate the intrinsic cultural logic and
inherent advantages of that other image. For example, the image of the Israeli
Adaptive Adult held by many teachers in Israel promotes values, norms, and
expectations aimed at creating an independent, autonomous, assertive person.
Conversely, Adaptive Adult images held by Ethiopian immigrants to Israel stress
respect for authority and self-control in expressing emotions (Roer-Strier, 1996).
Conflicting images of the Adaptive Adult are often the source of cultural misun-
derstanding. For example, Israeli teachers often misinterpret the politeness of
Ethiopian children who avoid eye contact as their lacking an opinion or as being
dishonest (Ben Ezer, 1992). Several studies describe such misunderstandings
leading to conflicts in the triangular meeting of the parents-child-education
system of the new culture (Delgado-Gaitan, 2001; Dolev-Gindelman, 1989;
Menuchin-Isickson, 1989; Ramirez, 2003; Rosen, 1989). It was suggested that
these conflicts had long-term detrimental effects on family functioning (Cohen &
Yitzhak, 1989; Dolev-Gindelman, 1989; Weisner et al., 2001), on the success of
the child's integration into the education system (Hazan, 1987; Horowitz, 1984,
1986, 1989, 2005; Liebkind, Jasinskaja-Lahti, & Solheim, 2004; Lopez, 2001;
Orr, Mana, & Mana, 2003), and on the development of immigrant children's self-
identity (Gitelman, 1982; Gottesberg, 1988; Kahane, 1986; Kim, 2002).
In its 54 years of independence, Israel has absorbed more than 50% of its
population through immigration. Immigration to Israel came in waves, or migra-
tory movements, from common demographic origins. Two current waves are
from the former Soviet Union and Ethiopia.
In this chapter, the term Russian fathers is used for immigrants from the former
Soviet Union. The largest wave of Russian immigration began in 1989 and brought
1 million immigrants to Israel who currently represent more than one fifth of the
total population. Most Russian immigrants are professionals, highly educated, and
secular, and they have formed small nuclear families. Studies report high levels of
psychological stress related to issues of employment and social adjustment (Baider,
Ever-Hadani, & DeNour, 1996). However, this immigrant population maintained a
sense of accomplishment in achieving the goal of migration and a high degree of
satisfaction with the new situation (Al-Haj & Leshem, 2000). Russian immigrants
to Israel also were found to have a basic trust in their families but a deep distrust of
Israeli institutions and services (Leshem, 2001).
Ethiopian immigration to Israel formed two waves that arrived in the 1980s and
1990s, together consisting of approximately 80,000 people. The motivations for this
migration are structurally similar to the parallel migration from the former Soviet
Union, namely, acute economic distress, an unstable political climate, and a con-
comitant wish to live in a Jewish society. The traditional, mostly rural, and religious
Ethiopian Jewish families with relatively little formal education or professional
training faced dramatic transformations on immigration to Israel. Exposed to both
overt and covert manifestations of discrimination such as public questioning of the
legitimacy of their Judaism, remarks related to color, and concentration of commu-
nities in underdeveloped areas of Israel in "absorption centers," the Ethiopian com-
munity experienced deep feelings of exclusion (Ben Ezer, 1992; Itzhaky & Levy,
2002; Offer, 2004; Ojanuga, 1994). This situation has been adversely affected by
the paternalistic way this community is approached by the organizations and
bureaucracies responsible for immigrants' integration (Dolev-Gindelman, 1989;
Leshem, 2003). The traumatic vicissitudes of immigration, the culture shock of a
drastically different society, and a disturbing sense of discrimination engendered in
the community painful feelings of hopelessness and despair (Ben-David & Ben-
Ari, 1997; Ben-Eliezer, 2004). In this context, the Ethiopian community experi-
enced high levels of distress that resulted in a high suicide rate (Friedmann &
Santamaria, 1990) and an intense identity crisis (Weil, 1995; Zegeye, 2004).
Although these two migrant populations develop social ties within their own cul-
tural groups, they experience different levels of social and economic integration
7. HOME AND SCHOOL: FATHERS' VIEWS 107
into the Israeli system, the Russian immigrants being more highly integrated and
the Ethiopian immigrants generally being more segregated (Bar-Yosef, 2001;
Ben-David & Biderman, 1997; Benita & Noam, 1995; Lazin, 1997). Despite
extensive research by Israeli scholars on both cultural groups, studies have rarely
addressed or documented the perceptions of immigrant fathers and the meaning
they attribute to their role and to paternal involvement during the period of
cultural transition.
METHODOLOGY
Greenfield and Cocking (1994) called for a methodological paradigm for study-
ing minority and immigrant families based on methods of data collection that aim
to study participants' perceptions and attributions of meaning to the studied phe-
nomena. Following this model, focus group and in-depth interviews were chosen
as the primary source of data collection for this study. The Israeli portion of the
Canadian-Israeli study presented in this chapter was funded by the Israeli
Ministry of Science. The main purpose of the study was to develop an under-
standing of fathers' experiences, to enhance and promote programs that support
fathers and fathering, and to ensure that the specific needs of immigrants or
refugees are met by both specialized and mainstream welfare and educational
services for children and families. The objectives of the project were to identify
and understand the unique barriers to paternal engagement and participation that
may arise as a result of the immigrant or refugee experience in an international
cross-cultural context. The study also aimed to develop a series of training man-
uals and workshops for practitioners (e.g., teachers, social workers, and program
directors) that would provide guidelines and strategies for developing and imple-
menting culturally appropriate programs to support immigrant or refugee fathers.
Data Analysis
The analysis consisted of identifying key themes that emerged from the data.
Coding sheets were developed in the interview transcripts to enter quotations
made by the fathers on each theme. After relevant sections of the interviews were
entered on coding sheets; each of the authors and the research coordinator inde-
pendently rated the frequencies (Creswell, 1998 ). The team compared ratings
and reached consensus on differences. Attention was given to metaphors (Bogdan
& Biklen, 1992), proverbs, and common images frequently used by participants
(Huberman & Miles, 1994).
COMMON THEMES
Without exception, when responding to the question about values and beliefs that
parents would like to inculcate in their children, the participants told of beliefs
about honesty, integrity, and respect for others. Respect for families, with a par-
ticular emphasis on respecting adults and elders, was found in both cultural
groups, but most consistently in the Ethiopian group. In both groups, fathers
expressed a desire for their children to grow up educated, financially secure, and
with positive family relations.
able to endure life's struggles." Yet some included in their image a new element of
the host culture, the importance of formal education for future success:
I expect my child to be educated to know right and wrong. I want him to preserve
the religion. In Ethiopia a child could be a successful farmer, but here in Israel you
have push your kids to get education to go to high school or university.
In my son's school parents come to school all the time. They speak to teachers
freely. I did not know about that at the beginning since I never went. I did not speak
Hebrew well; for me the teacher is the one who has to know how to teach my son
and make him learn, not me telling the teacher how to do her work. The school
social worker came one day. She was angry. The teacher told her I am not coming
to school and not helping my child with homework. She said I was neglecting my
child.
My son reads and speaks Hebrew. He has social contacts. If he gets confused I don't
have the wisdom to guide him. The teacher invites the father, calls the boy and tells
him to translate. The child takes advantage of the father's inability to write or read
and translate other things, does not bring letters from the school. This causes much
disrespect for the father. He loses his power.
Whereas the Ethiopian image of Adaptive Adult emphasizes respect for elders,
the Israeli image involves assertiveness and equality. Israeli teachers encourage
110 ROER-STRIER AND STRIER
children to speak up, verbalize their ideas and feelings, and maintain eye contact.
Fathers in Ethiopia, however, encouraged their children to refrain from speaking
in front of adults and to lower their eyes when speaking to them.
An Ethiopian father noted,
I went to school and was shocked with the Israeli children's behavior. They were so
disrespectful. They talked back to teachers, looked them in the eye as if the teach-
ers were children and not elders. I am afraid to send my kids to this school.
Now I spend the afternoons with my children, I sit with them, I buy booklets in math
and reading to supplement what they do at school. They are so happy to do this with
me. They feel there is someone they can count on and that can help them. It gives
them courage and strength and happiness. To be a father in Israel you need to be a
genius with lots of good will.
Most of the Ethiopian fathers reported that they were willing to participate in
intervention programs, particularly those related to school: "When the school
invites me I usually come. There are children who do not have parents to protect
them at school, to encourage them." One father would participate only with the
prerequisite that programs must take into account the values and traditions of the
Ethiopian community and try to build a bridge between the host culture and that
of their country of origin. One father commented, "You need to consult the com-
munity when planning programs. You cannot continue based on our culture. You
need variations of both cultures."
a critical role in the family and a well-recognized status: "Fathers in Russia had an a
priori status." According to many Russian fathers, they were perceived as the
primary breadwinners in their country of origin: "Gender equality was on paper only.
In real life men earned more than women and his salary was the main source of
income." Nearly half the Russian participants reported that fathers in their culture
served as moral educators, authority figures, a source of wisdom, and contributors to
the cognitive and intellectual development of their children. "In Russia the father's
role was to educate to collectivism and excellence ... My father did not simply do
crossword puzzles with me: We were engaging in mathematical dilemmas."
The Russian father also was portrayed as distant and busy by some of the
participants, who stated that the Russian father was more involved in the world of
work than in the family sphere. Congruent with the view of Russian fathers as
busy and distant, some participants defined them as emotionally detached.
I wanted my father to spend more time with me; I dreamed that he would play with
me. One day I tried to argue with him and he told me, "Do not speak back to me, I
am not your friend." Is it so bad that a father is also a friend?
One third of the Russian fathers indicated that setting limits was a part of their
role: "I am what you may call a tough father, I set limits. However the same
limits I set for myself. It is like the Chinese wall, it limits but it also protects."
When the men were asked about their image of an Adaptive Adult, the values
of independence, intelligence, hard work, and achievement orientation surfaced.
As one father said, "As an adult, I want my children to be successful in their pro-
fession, to study hard, to be polite, know how to behave." Another said, "I want
my children to be responsible, to know how to achieve things, to be intelligent."
Some fathers said they had the same expectations that their own fathers had.
"Like my father I want my children to be 'cultured' to like literature to have
respect for their culture. I want them to do well in school to get high degrees and
to provide for their families."
I want my children to be cultured. I want them to read books in Russian. Now I read
to them and sing Russian songs. We see videos in Russian. I consciously do it for
112 ROER-STRIER AND STRIER
Israeli educators, however, did not necessarily see the importance of preserving
the Russian language and heritage as a part of the Israeli Adaptive Adult or as a
part of formal education. One of the fathers had the following story.
My daughter came crying from school. She wrote a book report on a book she read
in Russian. The teacher told her that this book will not be a part of the final exams
and thus she needs to read more books of Israeli writers instead. This teacher also
asked her not to speak Russian in school with the other Russian children.
In Israel, teachers encourage children to make their own decision. This is too much.
My 6-year-old daughter came one day from school and told me the teacher felt she
should not continue with her piano lessons, if my daughter decided not to play or
switch to another musical instrument. This is unheard of in Russia. I was 23 and my
parents still decided what I was going to study.
However, we also encountered fathers who said they were taking into considera-
tion Israeli society when thinking about what would be adaptive to their children
in the future.
When I think about my children growing up in Israel, it is different from what I would
say if you asked the same question in Russia. Here they need to be more independent
because they go to the army at 18. They need to make life-and-death decision on their
own. We cannot decide for them like my parents did in Russia. They cannot be too polite
because people will push them around. They need to know how to "grow elbows."
Immigration to Israel has affected me positively. I am sure that had I lived in another
country I would have reacted differently. My encounter with a different culture
helped me review my theories about life. I had my ideas on child socialization, but
when they tell me differently here I am willing to consider it, to negotiate, to be
more attentive to the views of other people.
7. HOME AND SCHOOL: FATHERS' VIEWS 113
In Russia everything is dictated, while in Israel children are given the freedom of
choice; grow up, do whatever you want as long as you are a good person. The same
freedom of choice is given to fathers.... You have the freedom in your personal
growth, in your profession, and in your role as a father.
Almost everything has a medical cause, so the first thing I would do is to go to a physi-
cian. For example, when a child cries at night. Then I will go wherever he sends me.
Unlike psychologists, doctors give a clear diagnosis and a clear treatment plan.
Although nearly half the Russian fathers preserved the cultural norm of asking for
help from friends and family, most had never participated in any intervention pro-
gram, saying that the primary reason for this was that they were not invited. Some
did express willingness to take part in programs (a) that provided information on
child development and guidance, (b) that included experts, (c) that were adapted
to fathers' work hours, (d) that enabled meetings with other fathers, (e) that
allowed intimacy and closeness with children, and (f) that supported empowering
images of fatherhood.
strong desire for their children to preserve the culture and traditions of their
countries of origin, the Ethiopian fathers' traditions were related to both religion
and Jewish cultural heritage, whereas the Russian fathers emphasized secular
elements of Russian culture such as literature, poetry, language, music, and so
forth. Although fathers from both cultures were interested in intervention
programs to support fathers and children, all had reservations about what they
perceived as the paternalistic attitudes of intervention programs and their coordi-
nators. In contrast to Ethiopian fathers who reported that they would turn to the
education system for guidance, most of the Russian fathers seemed to prefer the
guidance of other professionals such as physicians and specialists.
DISCUSSION
REFERENCES
Al-Haj, M , & Leshem, L. (2000). Immigrants from the Former Soviet Union in Israel: Ten Years
Later: A Research Report. Haifa, Israel: University of Haifa, Center for Multiculturalism and
Educational Research.
Baider, L., Ever-Hadani, P., & DeNour, A. (1996). Crossing new bridges: The process of adaptation
and psychological distress of Russian immigrants in Israel. Psychiatry, 59(2), 175-183.
Bar-Yosef, R. W. (2001). Children of two cultures: Immigrant children from Ethiopia in Israel.
Journal of Comparative Family Studies, 32(2), 231-246.
Ben-David, A., & Ben-Ari, A. T. (1997). The experience of being different: Black Jews in Israel.
Journal of Black Studies, 27(4), 510-527.
Ben-David, A., & Biderman, P. (1997). East meets west: A view from Soviet student newcomers to
Israeli society. International Journal of Group Tensions, 27(2), 99-108.
Ben-Eliezer, U. (2004). Becoming a Black Jew: Cultural racism and anti-racism in contemporary
Israel. Social Identities, 10(2), 245-266.
Ben Ezer, G. (1992). "Yegan Mevrat." Migration and absorption of Ethiopian Jews in Israel [in
Hebrew]. Jerusalem, Israel: Reuven Mass.
Benita, E., & Noam, G. (1995). The absorption of Ethiopian immigrants: Selected findings from local
surveys. Israeli Social Science Research, 10(2), 81-96.
Bogdan, R. C , & Biklen, S. K. (1992). Qualitative Research for Education: an Introduction to Theory
and Methods. Boston, MA: Allyn & Bacon.
Buki, L. P., Ma, T. C , Strom, R. D., & Strom, S. K. (2003). Chinese immigrant mothers of adoles-
cents: Self-perceptions of acculturation effects on parenting. Cultural Diversity and Ethnic
Minority Psychology, 9(2), 127-140.
Cohen, R., & Yitzhak, R. (1989). Bridging the old and the new: Constructing the parents' role for
Ethiopian immigrants. In R. Tokatli (Ed.), Lifelong learning in Israel values and practices
(pp. 143-149). Jerusalem, Israel: Ministry of Education.
Creswell, J. W. (1998). Qualitative Inquiry and Research Design: Choosing Among Five Traditions.
Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage.
Delgado-Gaitan, C. (2001). The Power of Community: Mobilizing for Family and Schooling. Lanham,
MD: Rowman & Littlefield.
Dolev-Gindelman, Z. (1989). Ethiopian Jews in Israel: Family Images, Multi-Dimensional Context [in
Hebrew]. Jerusalem, Israel: NCJW Research Institute for Innovation in Education, Hebrew University.
Frankel, D. G., & Roer-Bornstein, D. (1982). Traditional and modern contributions to changing
infant-rearing ideologies of two ethnic communities. Monographs of the Society for Research in
Child Development, 47(A) (No. 196), 1-51.
Friedmann, D., & Santamaria, U. (1990). Identity and change: The example of the Falashas, between
assimilation in Ethiopia and integration in Israel. Dialectical Anthropology, 75(1), 56-73.
Gitelman, Z. (1982). Becoming Israeli. New York: Praeger.
Goldman, L. (1993). Misconceptions of culture and perversions of multiculturalism. Interchange, 24,
397-108.
Gottesberg, M. (1988). Cultural Transition: the Case of Immigrant Youth. Jerusalem, Israel: Magnes
Press.
Greenfield, P. M., & Cocking, R. (1994). Cross Cultural Roots of Minority Child Development.
Hillsdale, NJ: Lawrence Erlbaum Associates, Inc.
Hazan, H. (1987). Educators and Environment Effecting the Education of Ethiopian Students [in
Hebrew]. Jerusalem, Israel: Ministry for Immigrants Absorption.
Hess, D. R., & Azuma, H. (1991). Cultural support for schooling: Contrasts between Japan and the
United States. Educational Researcher, 30(9), 2-8.
118 ROER-STRIER AND STRIER
Honig, A. S. (1989). Cross cultural aspects of parenting normal and at risk children. Early Child
Development, 50, 1-204.
Horowitz, R. T. (1984). Patterns of cultural transition: Soviet and American children in new environ-
ments. Journal of Cross-Cultural Psychology, 15, 399-416.
Horowitz, R. T. (1986). Between Two Worlds: Children from the Soviet Union in Israel. Lanham: MD:
University Press of America.
Horowitz, R. T. (1989). The Soviet Man in an Open Society. Lanham, MD: University Press of
America.
Horowitz, R. T. (2005). Integration of immigrants from the former Soviet Union. Israel Affairs, 77(1),
117-136.
Huberman, A. M., & Miles, M. B. (1994). Data management and analysis methods. In N. K. Denzin
& Y. S. Lincoln (Eds.). The Evaluation Handbook (pp. 428-44). Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage.
Itzhaky, H., & Levy, D. (2002). Source contributions of self-esteem and gender to the adaptation of
immigrant youth from Ethiopia: Differences between two mass immigrations. Journal of Social
Work Research and Evaluation, 3(1), 33-46.
Kahane, R. (1986). Informal agencies of socialization and the integration of immigrant youth into
society: An example from Israel. International Migration Review, 20, 210-239.
Kim, E. (2002). The relationship between parental involvement and children's educational achieve-
ment in the Korean immigrant family. Journal of Comparative Family Studies, 33(4), 529-540.
Lazin, F. A. (1997). The housing policies for Ethiopian immigrants in Israel: Spatial segregation,
economic feasibility and political acceptability. Nationalism and Ethnic Politics, 3(4), 39-68.
Leshem, E. (2001). Immigration from the former Soviet Union and the secular/religious fissure in the
Israeli society. In M. Lissak & L. Leshem. (Eds.), From Russia to Israel: Identity and Culture in
Transition (pp. 124-148) [in Hebrew]. Tel-Aviv, Israel: Hakibbutz Hameuchad.
Leshem, E. (2003). Israel as a multi-cultural state at the turn of the century. In E. Leshem & D. Roer-
Strier (Eds.), Cultural Diversity: A Challenge to Human Services [in Hebrew]. Jerusalem, Israel:
Magnes Press.
Liebkind, K., Jasinskaja-Lahti, I., & Solheim, E. (2004). Cultural identity, perceived discrimination,
and parental support as determinants of immigrants' school adjustments: Vietnamese youth in
Finland. Journal of Adolescent Research, 79(6), 635-656.
Lopez, G. R. ( 2001). The value of hard work: Lessons on parents' involvement from a migrant house-
hold. Harvard Educational Review, 71, 416-437.
Menuchin-Isickson, S. (1989). Anthropological description of the encounter between the Ethiopian
and the Israeli cultures [in Hebrew]. Alim, 15-21.
Ninio, A. (1988). The effects of cultural background, sex, and parenthood on beliefs about the
timetable of cognitive development in infancy. Merrill Palmer Quarterly, 34, 369-388.
Offer, S. (2004). The socio-economic integration of the Ethiopian community in Israel. International
Migration, 42(3), 29-55.
Ogbu, J. U. (1981). Origins of human competence: A cultural ecological perspective. Child
Development, 52, 4 1 3 - 2 9 .
Ojanuga, D. N. (1994). Absorption of Ethiopian Jews: A study of multiculturalism in Israel. Jewish
Social Work Forum, 30, 86-97.
Orr, E., Mana, A., & Mana, Y. (2003). Immigrant identity of Israeli adolescents from Ethiopia and the
former USSR: Culture-specific principles of organization. European Journal of Social Psychology,
33(\), 71-92.
Patton, M. (1990). Qualitative Evaluation and Research Methods. Newbury Park, CA: Sage.
Pomerleau, A., Malcuit, G., & Sabatier, C. (1991). Child-rearing practices and parental beliefs in three
cultural groups of Montreal: Quebecois, Vietnamese, Haitian. In M. H. Bornstein (Ed.), Cultural
Approaches to Parenting (pp. 45-67). Hillsdale, NJ: Lawrence Erlbaum Associates, Inc.
7. HOME AND SCHOOL: FATHERS' VIEWS 119
Ramirez, A. Y. (2003). Dismay and disappointment: Parental involvement of Latino parents. Urban
Review, 55(2), 93-110.
Roer-Strier, D. (1996). Coping strategies of immigrant parents: Directions for family therapy. Family
Process, 35, 363-376.
Roer-Strier, D. (2000). Socializing immigrant children: Coping with cultural differences at school and
at home. In New Vistas in Education and Society Series: Special Issue on Education,
Multiculturalism, Identity and Language Development (pp. 115-142). The NCJW Institute for
Innovation in Education, Hebrew University of Jerusalem. Jerusalem, Israel: Magnes Press.
Roer-Strier, D. (2001), Reducing risk for children in changing cultural contexts: Recommendations
for training and intervention. Child Abuse and Neglect, 25, 231-248.
Roer-Strier, D., & Rosenthal, M. K. (2003). Goals for human development: Images of an "Adaptive
Adult" in multicultural societies. In E. Leshem & D. Roer-Strier (Eds.), Cultural diversity: A chal-
lenge to human services (pp. 000-000). Jerusalem, Israel: Magnes Press.
Rosen, H. (1989). Ethiopian culture and behavior: keeping teachers in touch [in Hebrew]. Youth Aliya
Bulletin, 1-20.
Stainback, S., & Stainback, W. (1988). Educating students with severe disabilities in regular classes.
Teaching Exceptional Children, 21, 16-19.
Suårez-Orozco, M., & Suárez-Orosco, C (2001a). Children of Immigration. Cambridge, MA:
Harvard University Press.
Suárez-Orozco, M., & Suárez-Orozco, C. (2001b). Immigrant children and the American project.
Education Week, 20(21), 40-56.
Weil, S. (1995). Collective designations and collective identity among Ethiopian Jews. Israeli Social
Science Research, 10(2), 25-40.
Weisner, T, Ryan, G. W, Reese, L., Kroesen, K, Bernheimer, & Gallimore, L. R. (2001). Behavior
sampling and ethnography: Complementary methods for understanding home-school connections
among Latino immigrant families. Field Methods, 13, 20-46.
Zegeye, A. (2004). The Beta Israel: Return to the source? Africa Insight, 34(\), 69-75.
Chapter 8
A Challenge of Transnational
Migration: Young Children Start
School
Eva L. Vidali
Technological Educational Institute of Thessaloniki, Greece
Leah D. Adams
Eastern Michigan University, USA
Before 1980, the educational system in Greece reflected the national, cultural,
and linguistic homogeneity of the nation. The convergence between nationally
oriented education and local community control was generally accepted in the
Greek monocultural social context. In recent decades, however, economic and
cultural globalization has permanently altered the homogeneity of the Greek
educational system and society.
During the last 10 years, Greece has faced three major changes, which have
affected the educational system and created new conditions in the school context
and new challenges for all participants in the educational process. First, there has
been a major influx of immigrants. Greece, historically a labor-exporting coun-
try, began receiving each year hundreds of thousands of foreign immigrant work-
ers with their families. In proportion to its population among the countries of the
European Union, Greece has, in the past decade, accepted the largest number of
immigrants. Approximately 1 million legal and illegal immigrants constitute
approximately 9% of the overall population of the country (Lakasas, 2003).
121
122 VIDALI AND ADAMS
The immigrant population represents more than 150 nations, but the largest group
(75%) is from the Balkans. Nearly half (48.1 %) of the Balkan immigrants have a low
educational background, and only 17.2% have higher education (Katsikas & Politou,
2005). The immigrant population is on a whole younger than the native Greek pop-
ulation: 16.7% are aged 14 or younger, approximately 80% are 15-64 years old, and
only 3.5% are older than 65. By contrast, among the native-born population, 17% are
older than 65. Many of the immigrants from the United States, Canada, and Australia
are older than 65 years because they are primarily pensioner returnees of Greek
origin. Newly arrived Albanians, who are mainly married couples raising families, are
the youngest population group (Kasimis & Kassimi, 2004). Children of immigrants
face both educational and social challenges and have a direct effect on the composi-
tion of student populations in the schools (Psalti & Deliyanni-Kouimtzi, 2001).
The second major change is the large numbers of Greek emigrants who have
returned to Greece in recent years and who have often found repatriation difficult.
They may lack sufficient financial resources and find social adaptation difficult,
and psychological and personal problems make resettlement in Greek society all
the more difficult (Kotsionis, 1995; Psalti & Deliyanni-Kouimtzi, 2001).
Repatriation is a return to a motherland that could offer parents a new life and
a better job. Their children must adapt to a new social, cultural, and educational
setting. Furthermore, the returnees and their children are often unable to commu-
nicate in Greek, which affects not only the parents' careers but also their
children's progress in school. A case study of young students of Pontic-Greek
origin from the former Soviet Union carried out by Veikou (2004) highlighted the
struggle of returnee students to develop their identity and position in Greek
society. They described themselves as "Greek by ancestry, Pontic by origin and
Russian by birth," which makes them a minority in the school system.
The third major change is that native Greeks, who are used to living in a highly
homogeneous country with common language, religion, tradition, and culture,
have, in a short time, found themselves negotiating between maintaining their
cultural identity and adapting to the continual social change that surrounds them.
Galati (2004) stated that immigration in Greece can be described as an impetuous
torrent, continually in flood and creating growing pressure in an unprepared
society. The reality of cultural diversity in their everyday life has forced the native
population to adopt new behavioral patterns and attitudes toward a multicultural
society. The immense change in such a brief period has affected both newcomers
and native-born people (Vidali & Giangounidis, 2003).
Ethnographic studies have analyzed important issues about the transition from
child to student and the child's new role (Bourdieu, 1990; Pollard & Filer, 1996;
8. TRANSNATIONAL MIGRATION AND STARTING SCHOOL 123
Willes, 1983). However, little research has examined essential aspects of the
adaptation of young children of immigrant parents into early childhood settings
in the Greek context.
This research was inspired by university students who were practice teaching
in culturally diverse early childhood settings. The students noticed that although
many early childhood settings were friendly places for all, there were underlying
salient problems related to teachers' attitudes and to children's behaviors and
adaptation processes in the group setting. By exploring the issue further through
available research, we realized that although both theory and research on learn-
ing and instruction in early childhood education have advanced in recent years,
the educational needs of the young immigrant child barely have been studied.
Questions arose as to how early childhood educators understood the many com-
plex issues related to immigrant children's first experiences in schooling, which
may begin at 3 or 4 years of age. In the Greek context, we found that most rele-
vant research has tended to examine the problems of immigrant children in pri-
mary or secondary education, and minimal attention has been paid to preschool
factors that may have important effects on development and educational success.
The main hypothesis of this study was that the role of preprimary education is
instrumental in facilitating the adjustment process of immigrant students to Greek
schools. Questions such as whether such children are prepared for the new envi-
ronment, how they feel about school, and what factors may play a significant role
in their adjustment needed to be answered for educators to understand how immi-
grant children adjust to school.
Researchers agree that a child's first experience of school is an important passage
in life and has profound influences for his or her identity (Woods, Boyle, & Hubbard,
1999). The starting point for our research was the question of how immigrant
children, as well as their parents, experienced this passage and what variables might
affect their feelings, experiences, and adjustment to the new environment. We
believed that by exploring how children understand and interpret the new environ-
ment, as well as how they communicate feelings to their parents, would further our
understanding of the issues of transitional migration and intercultural education.
The theoretical framework used in this study was based on the ecological
approach (Bronfenbrenner, 1979; Knoff, 1986; Nuttall Romero, & Kalesnik, 1992).
Bronfenbrenner's ecological model of development explains the enabling variables
that influence the developmental process of a human being. His approach places the
educator, the diverse learner, and the parents in an ecological model that allows for
a broad understanding of many issues that affect them. Bronfenbrenner locates the
preschool setting or the microsystem (where the educator and the native-born
children constitute the new environment for the child) in the mesosystem (includ-
ing the network of settings such as family, neighborhood, and the like). This in turn
is located in the macrosystem (the broad sociocultural, economic, and political
context of the particular country). This is included in the exosystem (the global
124 VIDALI AND ADAMS
network) and identifies the importance of the various links that develop among
these systems during the child's development.
In his theory, Bronfenbrenner (1979) stressed the importance of supportive
links between the microsystems and the variables that affect a child's initial tran-
sition to a new setting. He argued, "Upon entering a new setting, the person's
development is enhanced to the extent that valid information, advice and experi-
ence relevant to one setting are made available, on a continuing basis to the other"
(p. 217). Children who experience a connection and continuity between school
and family settings have advantages, because there is an optimum developmental
context of "information-advice and experience" (Brooker, 2002). When this con-
text is missing and there are no natural ties between home and school, children
may experience difficulties that in most cases are easily noticeable from the start.
The challenge of globalization expands these links into new dimensions where
knowledge of language, others' culture, and communication codes is required
more frequently in the microsystem than before. Education gradually but steadily
tends increasingly to integrate the concepts of intercultural education. We wished
to learn more about how young children from immigrant families and their
parents develop the necessary supportive links with the first schooling experience
in preschool.
The purpose of this research was to explore the feelings, experiences, and
needs that underlie adjustment to the school environment by looking at immigrant
children's feelings about being new and how they form friendships. We also
wished to ask what advice they had for other (immigrant) children and parents in
their role in their child's adjustment and to find out how parents communicated
with their child and what advice they had for other (immigrant) parents.
METHOD
The research was conducted in the area of Thessaloniki, the second largest city in
Greece. The sample consisted of 88 immigrant families with preschool children
who attended local authority early childhood programs. The families came from
eight countries of origin, the largest number being from Albania (52.3%),
followed by Georgia (13.6%), Russia (11.4%), and Armenia (6.8%). There were
2.3% each from Abzcahzia, Germany, Turkey, and Czechia.
RESULTS
Children's Interviews
The children's interview protocol was designed to investigate feelings about
being new, the formation of friendships, and the advice children would give to
others who were moving to a new country. The 54 boys and 34 girls were between
4 and 7 years of age.
In response to the questions Do you want to say anything about your first day to
school? and What did you do?, 31.2% of the children showed a positive attitude
toward the experience, 27.9% showed a negative attitude, and 34.9% were neutral.
Positive attitudes included answers from children who were active and participated in
activities (7 was playing, I was drawing, I heard a story). Negative attitudes included
answers such as I was crying all the time, I couldn 't understand, and I didn 't know
where to go. Responses such as / was sitting or I was waiting were considered neu-
tral and may have reflected that they felt they were behaving as expected in the set-
ting or were possibly following parental instructions about how to behave in school.
All the children said that they remembered the first day of preschool, who
went to school with them, where they sat, and who first greeted him or her. For
68.2% of the children, one or both parents accompanied them on the first day, and
27.3% said that another family member had accompanied them. Only 4.5% said
they had gone to school alone on the first day. We made no attempt to check with
the parents for the accuracy of the children's responses.
126 VIDALI AND ADAMS
Assuming that their memories of the first day at school were accurate, more
than half (53.5%) of these immigrant children sat in the middle of the room.
Approximately one fifth (20.9%) said that they had sat at the first table, and the
rest (25.6%) remembered sitting somewhere in the back of the room. The teacher
was the first to greet them according to 75.6%, 22% said that someone else had
greeted them, and 2.4% could not remember being greeted.
The interviews were conducted 5 months into the school year so that we could
investigate the children's feelings about school after some time had passed,
although the time lapse may have affected the accuracy of their memories about
the beginning of the school year. Interviewers reported that the children answered
quickly, willingly, and with apparent sincerity and did not give the impression of
having memory gaps. When asked if they liked school, 76.3% of the children said
Yes, 5.3% said No, and 18.4% said they did not know. This was in marked
contrast to the 27.9% negative and 34.9% neutral responses about the first day of
school, which may indicate that the adaptation process had been somewhat
successful for these children. We were unable to identify whether the children
with the more negative or neutral attitudes were those who were still unable to
communicate readily in the classroom because of language barriers.
Friendships are of high importance in children's adaptation processes, and
95.5% said that they had friends in school, which indicates that the preschool envi-
ronment created opportunities for making friends. However, the neighborhood
plays a larger role in determining friendships, and 45.2% said that they were friends
with another child because he or she lived in the same neighborhood. Having a
friend in the classroom was next at 38.1%, and 16.7% of friendships were forged
because the children were from the same country and spoke the same language.
Because many immigrant families live in clusters, the neighborhood may have
some similarities with the home culture that they miss. It is noteworthy that 77.7%
of the children said that what they most missed about their home country was their
grandmother. The adaptation process is complex, and the emotional gap in the
family system may affect the speed of adaptation and level of satisfaction with the
new environment. Children's advice to other children who were moving to a new
place reflects the importance of friendships and play, the single highest number of
answers (25%) relating to play with other children. However, when the answers
about behavior patterns are added together, it can be seen that the children were
well aware of their parents' and the preschool's expectations about what is or is not
considered acceptable behavior and of the importance of classroom rules (Table 1.)
Parents' Interviews
Of the 70 mothers and 18 fathers interviewed, 34.1% had been in Greece more
than 6 years, 27.3% for 3 to 6 years, and 38.6% for fewer than 3 years. Most of
the parents could speak Greek but could not write it.
8. TRANSNATIONAL MIGRATION AND STARTING SCHOOL 127
TABLE 1
Acceptable and Unacceptable Behavior
Play with other children 25%
Be a good boy 24%
Listen to your teacher 13.5%
Be quiet 11%
Don't complain 9%
Don't fight (with children) 6.5%
Don't hit the children 4.5%
Don't be ashamed 4.5%
Don't cry 2%
TABLE 3
How Parents Prepared the Child for the Move
Nothing 47.6%
That you are going to a place with a better job and more income 23.8%
That you are going to a new place where he will make many friends 19%
Something else 9.5%
When asked for details about what they might have discussed with the child
before the move, the responses from 54% of the parents fell into the category of
a new life with different language and people. Only 38.1% said that they had dis-
cussed school with the child; 61.9% said they had not. In response to a question
about whether the child now felt better about the move than when they had first
arrived, 65.9% said Yes, 4.5% said No, and 29.5% believed that their child's atti-
tude toward the move was unchanged.
Parents were asked if they were to migrate to another country, if they would
do something different to prepare the child based on their experience with this
move. About one third (34.1%) said that they would do something different, but
65.9% said they would not. Of those who said they would do something differ-
ent, 93.3% said that they would provide more emotional support. The remainder
(6.7%) said they would do more (Greek) language preparation.
. The mother should learn first the new language and then teach it to her child,
thus helping him or her to communicate better.
. I would tell them a lot of things about this country.
. I would tell them to talk more with [their] children.
8. TRANSNATIONAL MIGRATION AND STARTING SCHOOL 129
TABLE 4
Pre-Immigration Preparation for the Child
A few days before 52.8%
Six months earlier 30.6%
A year earlier 17.7%
. I would tell them to show understanding to the difficulties of his child and
to provide emotional support for the child.
. I would tell them to discuss more with his child before leaving and to pre-
pare her child for the experience.
. I would tell them to show to her child how much she loves (the child).
. I would tell them to decide to leave while the child is young.
. I would tell them to discuss more about the way of living (in the new
country).
. I would tell them to have patience and to help the child with adjustment.
DISCUSSION
The importance of the early years in child development gives early education a
vital role to make certain that children develop as successfully as possible. For
most young children, entering preschool is their first exposure to a group experi-
ence. Teachers and the school environment play a vital role in the development of
positive or negative attitudes toward learning, the self-identity of the children, and
the development of social skills. Starting school is a major transition in the life of
a child, and children approach school with diverse individual experiences, atti-
tudes, and expectations (Fabian, 2002). A successful start in preschool can have
long-term benefits for future learning. Studies have highlighted the importance of
children's experiences of transition to a preschool environment and the poten-
tially detrimental effects if it is not a positive experience (Barrett, 1986).
Uncertainties about being in preschool may be matched by the parents' own feel-
ings about having the child enrolled in preschool, especially when there are cultural
and language differences between home and school. Ethnographic studies show
that children from minority groups experience more difficulties than majority-
group children because of a number of frustrations, including the language and the
educational establishment (Gregory & Biarnes, 1994; Woods et al., 1999).
If the reported memories are correct for the young immigrant children in this
study, most had positive feelings during their first day in the preschool, mainly
because they were engaged in play or felt that they were not causing a disturbance
130 VIDALI AND ADAMS
in the classroom. The role of the teacher is also important and supportive during
the first days in the school environment. Although no formal data were collected
from the teachers, they told us that behavior problems of the immigrant children
at the beginning of the school year (e.g., crying, displaying other signs of unhap-
piness, or noncompliance with rules) were not perceived as any worse than those
of native-born children.
The neighborhood and the school are two important environments where
children from immigrant families come to terms with various experiences as they
develop their sense of self. Both environments play a role in establishing emo-
tional security. Feelings about being new are associated with the kind of interac-
tions young children have with significant adults and other children
(Kirova-Petrova, 2000). Interactive contexts appear to be highly significant and
are related to the formation of friendships as substantiated by the interview
results. Both parents and their children pay particular attention to interpersonal
relations in their neighborhood, and the need for peer interaction to develop
positive peer relationships needs to be a concern for parents and teachers. The
nature of interactions of young children from immigrant families with others in
the neighborhood can either support or negate their interactions in school. If the
neighborhood does not support development of the host country's language
(Greek) and acculturation and social relationships beyond the immediate neigh-
bors, it may be more difficult for the child to adapt to the culture of the school
(Paleologou, 2004). This study highlights the need for further investigation of ties
not only between school and home but also with neighborhood.
During the research project, it became evident to both of us and to the teachers
that most of the immigrant parents functioned with a sense of low self-efficacy,
because they demonstrated higher rates of depression, negative affect, and greater
perceptions of their child's difficulties. Certainly, immigration is a stressful life tran-
sition, because unfamiliarity with the new country, difficulties in securing satisfac-
tory employment, and the cultural adjustments all affect feelings of self-efficacy.
Parents perceived their role as disappointingly low in their responses about their
children's adaptation. Our findings showed minimum preparation for children at
home, and it appears that the parents had high expectations that the school would
take care of most aspects of the children's adaptation process. In reality,
school-home connections were minimal because of language differences and teach-
ers' limited time for making more contact with the children's families outside school.
There was little or no opportunity for parents to find out about how to enhance their
children's readiness for school and to contribute to their smooth transition.
Communication skills and collaboration between teachers and parents of new-
comer children is a matter of great importance. Theories about school-home rela-
tions such as those of Bernstein (1990), Bronfenbrenner (1979), and Epstein and
Dauber (1991), recognize the essential links between both microsystems for the
subsequent development of the child.
8. TRANSNATIONAL MIGRATION AND STARTING SCHOOL 131
In Greek early childhood settings, language problems are the main factor that
gives rise to inadequate communication between teachers and children and par-
ents from minority groups. Inability to communicate with the child and the family
can in turn affect the level of professionals' effective teaching. Professionals who
are confident about the efficacy of their teaching instruction and pedagogical dis-
course usually have good relations and collaborate successfully with minority
parents (Giangounidis & Vidali, 2004).
Most of the teachers who served as interviewers took this as an opportunity to
develop closer relationships with parents. It was the first time they had had the
chance to discuss such important issues with them. One teacher said, "I never
thought that this family had such [unfortunate] experiences." We hope that the
parents found it equally useful and that the interviews served as a key to better
communication and further collaboration between parents and school personnel.
Statistical analysis using chi-square for the pairing of some of the questions—
such as what the child remembered about the first day of school and how the child
responded to how he or she felt about school—revealed few significant differences.
No differences were found based on the gender or age of the children and their
responses to interview questions. Response patterns from the data indicate a possi-
ble relationship between children's reporting of how they felt about school, who
had greeted them on the first day, and whether they felt positive about school 5
months later (p » .01). Similar links were determined between how children felt
about the first day, where they sat, and whether they formed friendships with class-
mates. This, of course, does not imply that a teacher's greeting on the first day of
school makes a difference in the child's overall school adjustment and comfort in
the classroom. However, it does suggest that if a child has made good adjustment
to school, he or she is more likely to view the beginning as positive and would have
been comfortable in the school setting from the beginning. In other words, the child
who makes a good start is more likely to feel positive about the school experience
in general. Welcoming the child, helping the child to feel comfortable anywhere in
the room, and helping the child to form friendships are all important.
The limited extent to which parents reported that they had prepared their child
for the move was a disappointing finding. In addition, there was a significant dif-
ference between what parents said and what children reported about how he or
she felt about the first week of school. Parents were more likely to report that the
child was fine at school, whereas the child was more likely to say that he or she
was not happy (p >> .01). Whether this difference emerged because of poor
communication between parent and child, parents' reluctance to tell the teacher
that the child had not been completely happy at the beginning of school, or the
children's inaccurate memory is impossible to determine. Regardless of the rea-
son, the difference suggests that it might be worthwhile investigating whether
parents' perceptions of a child's adjustment to preschool are accurate and whether
additional communication is needed between parents and the school. Children
132 VIDALI AND ADAMS
may not share feelings at home because they are reluctant to speak or lack
opportunities to share feelings with their parents or because of cultural behavior
patterns of adult-child interaction. In any case, the school personnel could alert par-
ents to the need to offer emotional support if this appears warranted. It also points
to the need for the school, with or without assistance from the home, to provide as
much support as possible to assist the child in the transition to school. Considera-
tion of how children are welcomed to the group setting, seating arrangements in the
classroom, and formation of friendships in school are all in the realm of what good
teachers do to create a high-quality preschool environment.
Because our data are qualitative, the question of the reliability of a child's
memory, even when the time has been only 5 months, and the hesitancy of some
of the immigrant parents to express their feelings openly, mean that few conclu-
sions can be confidently drawn. It is more appropriate to suggest potential direc-
tions for further research to seek answers to the questions raised.
IMPLICATIONS
Starting school is a time of psychological and social change not only for the
child but also for the family (Fabian, 2002). The interviews with children and
parents reported in this study showed that there is room for improvement in
preparing children for the school experience and providing support for them until
they reach a level of adaptation to the school setting. The results suggest that
further study is needed about how newly immigrated families can become more
aware of their role in helping the child make the transition to school, including
how to use neighborhood social contacts mentioned by many of the parents to
gain such knowledge.
The results also clearly show a need to educate and support teachers in their
efforts to incorporate immigrant children smoothly into the classroom.
REFERENCES
Barrett G. (1986). Starting School: An Evaluation of the Experience. London: Assistant Masters and
Mistresses Association.
Bernstein B. (1990). Class, Codes and Control. Volume IV: The Structuring of Pedagogic Discourse.
London: Routledge.
Bourdieu, P. (1990). The logic of practice. Cambridge, UK: Polity Press.
Bronfenbrenner, U. (1979). The Ecology of Human Development. Cambridge, MA: Harvard
University Press.
Brooker, L. (2002). Starting School. Milton Keynes, UK: Open University Press
Dimakos, I., & Tasiopoulou, K. (2003). Attitudes towards migrants: What do Greek students think
about their immigrant classmates? Intercultural Education, 14, 307-316.
Epstein J., & Dauber, S. (1991). School programs and teacher practices of parent involvement in
inner-city elementary and middle schools. Elementary School Journal, 91, 289-303.
Fabian, H. (2002). Children Starting School: A Guide to Successful Transitions and Transfers for
Teachers and Assistants. London: David Fulton.
Galati P. (2004, November 21). The profile of immigrants in Greece. Kathemerine, p. 30.
Giangounidis, P., & Vidali, L. E. (2004). Language differences in preschool education: Views of early
childhood teachers. In Kuriakido Brothers (Eds.), Proceedings of 4th Pan-Hellenic conference of
Pedagogical Society (pp. 535-545). Alexandroupolis, Greece: Kuroalodp Brothers.
Gregory E., & Biarnes, J. (1994). Tony and Jean-Francois: Looking for sense in the strangeness at
home and at school. In H. Dombey & M. M. Spencer (Eds.), First steps together (pp. 17-29).
Stoke-on-Trent, UK: Trentham.
Hatziprokopiou, P. (2003). Albanian immigrants in Thessaloniki, Greece: Process of economic and
social incorporation. Journal of Ethnic and Migration Studies, 29, 1033-1057.
Kasimis, C , & Kassimi, C. (2004). Greece: A History of Migration. Washington, DC: Migration
Policy Institute. Retrieved November 8, 2004, from http://www.migrationinformation.org/
Profiles/display.cfm?id=228
Katsikas, C , & Politou, E. (2005). Repatriates and Immigrants in the Greek School. Outside the
Classroom the Different? Athens, Greece: Gutenberg.
Kirova-Petrova, A. (2000). Researching young children's lived experiences of loneliness: Pedagogical
implications for language minority students. Alberta Journal of Educational Research, 46, 99-116.
Knoff, H. (1986). The Assessment of Child and Adolescent Personality. New York: Guilford.
134 VIDALI AND ADAMS
Kotsionis, P. (1995). The historical-cultural identity and the educational tradition of repatriate Pontic
Greeks as a prerequisite for their children's adaptation. Ta Ekpedeftika, 39-40, 33-45.
Lakasas, A. (2003, November 6). Institute for the Greek Diaspora Education and Intercultural Studies
(IPODE) October 2003. Kathimerini, p. 3.
Nuttall, E. V., Romero, I., & Kaiesnik, J. (1992). Assessing and Screening Preschoolers.
Psychological and Educational Dimensions. Needham Heights, MA: Allyn & Bacon.
Paleologou, N. (2004). Intercultural education and practice in Greece: Need for bilingual intercultural
programmes. Intercultural Education, 75(3), 317-329.
Pollard, A., & Filer A. (1996). The Social World of Children's Learning: Case Studies of Pupils from
Four to Seven. London: Cassell.
Psalti, A., & Deliyanni-Kouimtzi, V. (2001). The education of students from the former Soviet Union
and Albania in the context of the cultural-ecological approach. In V. Deliyanni-Kouimtzi & A. Psalti
(Eds.), Scientific Annals of the School of Philosophy (vol. 4, pp. 287-316). Thessaloniki, Greece:
Art of Text.
Veikou, C. (2004). Cultural differences in Greek education: A negotiation of identities. In N. Terzis
(Ed.), Intercultural Education in the Balkan Countries (pp. 107-114). Thessaloniki, Greece:
Kyriakidis Brothers.
Vidali, L. E., & Giangounidis, P. (2003). Multicultural perspectives in early childhood education:
A study on early childhood teachers' views and their problems in Greece. In N. Terzis (Ed.),
Intercultural Education in the Balkan Countries (pp. 221-237). Thessaloniki, Greece: Kyriakidis
Brothers.
Willes, M. (1983). Children into Pupils. London: Routledge & Kegan Paul.
Woods, P., Boyle, M., & Hubbard, N. (1999). Multicultural Children in the Early Years. Clevedon,
UK: Multilingual Matters.
Introduction to Part III
Views and Voices of
Immigrant Children
135
136 PART III
Learning does not happen only in the classroom; learning context goes beyond
the school and the home to include not only the larger community but also the
reality created by the mass media in the globalized world. Chapter 11 explores (a)
how the popular television shows provide "space" for children of all cultures to
have shared experiences and to communicate and build social relationships with
other children and (b) how the content of the programs and the conversations
about them allow children to develop their own identities. Even when language
fluency was not present, acting out a scene from a television program allowed
access and acceptance into a peer group.
According to Cushner et al. (2003), the media and the school curriculum may be
similar in the eyes of the immigrant student: blurring information with entertain-
ment, chaotic, inconsistent, and laden with conflicting messages. However, the
author of chapter 11 points out that people use media to maintain past connections
and to build new social relations and sense of place in the process of migration.
Media assists them to develop new skills to live different places and identities and to
learn to be multidomestic. Globalized media allows children to view the same pro-
grams in different languages and in different places as they move around in search
of a place that they can call home. On the one hand, this provides a sense of conti-
nuity in children's lives. On the other hand, television played a significant role build-
ing autobiographical memories and histories. Through the use of media, children
were active agents in the creation of their new lives rather than passive victims.
Immigrant children's sense of agency in making their new countries their homes
and feeling at home in the host country's language are discussed in chapter 12. The
author argues that the experience of immigration invites children to ask, "In what
relation do I live to the language I speak?" The opportunity that immigration opens
for asking this question is of the utmost importance in awakening children's aware-
ness of their relation to language, both the language of home and the home of lan-
guage. This investigation showed that for young children the creative and active
relation-making processes are not limited to language. Rather it is young children's
ability to engage with the world both nonlinguistically and linguistically, as in play,
that allows them not only to live between languages but also to develop their rela-
tion to the language of home and the home of language. Thus chapter 12 challenges
the traditional assumptions about immigrant children as lacking agency, compe-
tence, and knowledge by opening up considerable pedagogical possibilities as it
emphasis young immigrant children's capacity to perceive and construct new relat-
edness through what is dissimilar rather than to deduct from what is known.
By providing rich first-hand accounts of immigrant children's experiences
of immigration, all four chapters in this part allow the reader to gain deeper
understanding of the role of informal learning experiences in which immigrant
children exercise their agency, competence, and knowledge and to construct their
relationships to the cultures they live in and build bridges between them.
138 PART III
REFERENCES
Bandura, A. (1977). Social Learning Theory. New York: Holt, Rinhart & Winston.
Corson, D. (1998). Changing Education for Diversity. Buckingham, UK: Open University Press.
Cushner, K., McClelland, A. & Safford, P. L. (Eds.). (2003). Human Diversity in Education: An
Integrative Approach (4th ed.). Boston: McGraw-Hill.
Duran, B. J., & Weffer, R. E. (1992). Immigrant aspirations, high school process & academic out-
comes. American Educational Research Journal, 29, 163-181.
Feldman, R. S., Philippot, P., & Custrini, R. J. (1991). Social competence and nonverbal behavior. In
R. Feldman & B. Rime (Eds.), Fundamentals of Nonverbal Behavior (pp. 329-350). Cambridge,
UK: Cambridge University Press.
Gonzalez-Ramos, G., & Sanches-Nester, M. (2001). Responding to Immigrant Children's Mental
Health Needs in the Schools: Project Mi Tierra/My Country. Children and Schools, 23(1), 49-63.
Hanna, J. L. (1984). Black/white non-verbal differences, dance and dissonance: Implications for
desegregation. In A. Wolfgang (Ed.), Nonverbal Behavior: Perspectives, Applications, Intercultural
Insights (pp. 373-409). Toronto, ON: C. J. Hogrefe.
Kanno, Y (2003). Negotiating Bilingual and Bicultural Identities: Japanese Returnees Betwixt Two
Worlds. Mahwah, NJ: Lawrence Erlbaum Associates.
Kirova-Petrova, A. (2000). Researching Young Children's Lived Experiences of Loneliness:
Pedagogical Implications for Language Minority Students. Alberta Journal of Educational
Research, XLVI(2), 99-116.
Kirova-Petrova, A., & Wu, J. (2002). Peer Acceptance, Learning English as a Second Language, and
Identity Formation in Children of Recent Chinese Immigrants. In A. Richardson, M. Wyness & A.
Halvorsen (Eds.), Exploring Cultural Perspectives, Integration and Globalization (pp. 171-190).
Edmonton, AB: ICRN Press.
McBrien, J. L. (2005). Educational needs and barriers for refugee students in the United States: A
review of the literature. Review of Educational Research, 75(3), 329-364.
Norton, B. (2000) Identity and Language Learning: Gender, Ethnicity and Educational Change.
Harlow, England: Pearson Education.
Norton Peirce, B. (1995). Social identity, investment, and language learning. TESOL Quarterly, 29(1),
9-29.
Suårez-Orozco, C , & Suárez-Orozco, M. M. (2001). Children of Immigrants. Cambridge, MA:
Harvard University Press.
Toohey, K. (2000). Learning English in School. Clevedon, UK: Multilingual Matters.
Trueba, E. T., & Bartolome, L. I. (Eds.) (2000). Immigrant Voices: In Search of Educational Equity.
Boston: Rowman & Littlefield Publishers Inc.
Chapter 9
Hong Kong, a former British colony, has a unique situation with regard to
school-aged immigrants. Before 1997, children from 6 to 14 years could not legally
immigrate from mainland China. Only after Hong Kong's reunification with the
Chinese mainland in 1997 could dependent children of a Hong Kong resident
and a mainland Chinese spouse be permitted entry into Hong Kong. Therefore, the
educational and psychological needs of immigrant children are a relatively recent
concern. Table 1 shows the number of children from mainland China admitted to
primary schools between 1998 and 2003. The number peaked in 1998 at 17,988,
and now more than 6,000 school-aged immigrants from mainland China attend
primary schools in Hong Kong every academic year (Hong Kong Government,
2004). The need to provide appropriate educational support for young immigrants
has presented challenges both to the government and to nongovernmental
organizations.
The term new arrivals is used in all government documents to refer to people
who have immigrated from mainland China and lived in Hong Kong for less than
1 year. Youth younger than 20 years of age are considered new arrival children
139
140 RAO AND YUEN
TABLE 1
Number of Children From the Chinese Mainland Admitted Into Primary Schools in
Hong Kong and Repetition Rate (1998-2003)
No. of NAC admitted Number % of children
Year to Primary Schools Who Had to Repeat a Grade
1998 17,988 n.a.
1999 17,518 10,379(59.2)
2000 11,630 7,302(62.8)
2001 8,775 4,276 (48.7)
2002 6,549 2,781 (42.5)
2003 6,989 2,881 (41.2)
Source. Hong Kong government (2004, p. 20), Appendix
(NAC). These children perhaps have different experiences from those of their
counterparts in other parts of the world because of their proximity to their place
of origin before immigration and because of their ethnicity. For example, some
school-aged children continue to reside in mainland China and commute to Hong
Kong every day to attend school. Ethnically, the new immigrants are indistin-
guishable from those in the host territory. Indeed, Hong Kong itself is a land of
immigrants; most originate from southern China.
and so must remain in mainland China. Chan and colleagues (1996) found that
19% of the mothers of NAC in the Sham Shui Po district were still living in main-
land China.
Research suggests that schools that adopt a holistic approach to meeting the
developmental needs of immigrant children are more effective in reaching them
and their families than schools that provide academic instruction without other
support. Schools that provide structured opportunities for children to interact
socially, overcome their loneliness, develop close friendships, and deal with aca-
demic challenges (Bhavnagri, 2001) promote the adjustment of newly arrived
children and enable them to reach their full potential.
There is little research on immigrant children's feelings of loneliness and isola-
tion in school (Kirova, 2001; Rubin & Bhavnagri, 2001). This is disturbing because
children's thoughts affect their perceptions of everyday experiences in school. It has
been argued that "only when educators understand how immigrant children's expe-
riences affect their quality of life and learning at school can they take pedagogically
sensitive actions to help the children develop higher self-esteem and become
successful members of the school community" (Kirova, 2001, p. 250).
In this chapter, we present the results of an empirical study that had the
following objectives: (a) to gain an understanding of the social and academic
challenges that children who have immigrated from the Chinese mainland to
Hong Kong experience in their school setting and (b) to make recommendations
on how schools can better meet the social and academic needs of these children.
METHODOLOGY
Participants
We selected three schools known to have admitted many NAC from mainland
China. These schools were located in each of Hong Kong's three main regions:
Hong Kong Island, Kowloon, and the New Territories. We approached the princi-
pals of these schools, informed them of the objectives of our study, and asked
them to allow us to write to parents requesting permission for their children to be
interviewed. All three principals agreed, and 37 primary schoolchildren enrolled
in these three schools were interviewed in individual sessions.
We interviewed 21,9, and 7 students in schools Y, H, and F respectively. The
sample included 21 girls and 16 boys ranging in age from 9 to 14 years. Twenty-
two children were enrolled in Primary 3 or 4, and 15 were enrolled in Primary
9. MAINLAND CHINESE CHILDREN IN HONG KONG 143
5 or 6. Guidance teachers in the three schools helped to identify children who had
lived in Hong Kong for fewer than 2 years, and then we contacted the parents to
obtain permission to interview their children.
Most of these students had come from Guangdong province (92% of the
mothers and 87% of the fathers were from Guangdong). This is significant, because
55% of the children reported using Cantonese in their places of origin, and 65%
reported using Cantonese in their home in Hong Kong.
Mothers ranged in age from 30 to 46 years, and fathers ranged from 30 to 74
years. Of the mothers, 30% had completed only primary education, whereas 57%
had finished junior secondary and 10% had completed senior secondary school.
Among the fathers, 5% had no education; 30%, 41%, and 19% had completed
primary, junior secondary, and senior secondary education, respectively.
Approximately 25% of the participants were only children, and 51% had one to
two siblings.
Procedure
Three female graduate students in a faculty of education in a university in Hong
Kong were trained to administer the interview. All were fluent in English and
Cantonese, and two also spoke Putonghua. They practiced interviewing and cod-
ing transcripts with children not included in the study until they achieved an inter-
rater reliability of 95%.
The three graduate students interviewed the children in their schools in
individual sessions. The interviews, which took place in November 2003, were
conducted in Cantonese, but children were asked if they preferred to speak
Putonghua. All interview sessions were tape-recorded and transcribed by the
interviewers. Interrater reliability for the transcription of the data was determined
by asking one of the graduate students to listen to an interview conducted by a
colleague. Interrater reliability was approximately 95%.
We repeatedly read the interview transcripts and identified ideas and themes in
the answers related to our research objectives, that is, to determine the main
academic and social challenges faces by NAC.
144 RAO AND YUEN
School Issues
Seventeen of the 37 children said that they were apprehensive on the first day of
school but were well adjusted by the time of the interview. A typical response
was, "I felt nervous and scared on the first day because of the unfamiliar envi-
ronment, but I am not nervous or scared any more." The following is an atypical
response:
It is still very difficult to get used to the school life here. Sometimes I feel like cry-
ing. Especially when I ask them for help, they all say they do not know. The teacher
does not know that I am unhappy and the teacher cannot help me with my studies.
A consistent picture emerged of the school and the attitudes of the principal, staff,
and students toward NAC in school Y. When asked about what they liked about
school Y, 10 of the 21 respondents said that they liked the principal, teachers, and
classmates because they were very welcoming of NAC. The principal and teach-
ers made extra efforts to talk to the NAC and understand their needs and provided
some children with extra academic tutoring after school. Six of the children men-
tioned that they liked the extracurricular activities provided by the school, and
four said that they liked the physical environment.
Six of the seven children from the school F mentioned that they liked the
better facilities, equipment (e.g., computers), and teaching in this school; two also
reported liking the teachers and classmates. Among those in school H, five of the
nine children mentioned that they liked the better facilities, teaching, and school
environment; three said that they liked their teachers or classmates. A common
response was, "I like the school because the school has lot of computers and
audiovisual equipment such as overhead projectors and TV sets. The equipment
is outdated and old in my previous school in the Chinese mainland."
It is clear that teachers' actions have an important effect on the feelings of
immigrant children. The principal and teachers in school Y made a concerted
effort to welcome NAC and support them. In this school, approximately half the
children particularly mentioned their fondness for the principal and teachers.
Only 2 of 7 in school F and 3 of 9 in school H mentioned this. In the other
schools, 5 of 21 children mentioned that they liked the school facilities and phys-
ical environment the best. Public schools in Hong Kong have better facilities than
their counterparts in the China mainland, and the three schools in Hong Kong are
comparable in terms of resources for learning. Responses suggested that children
of this age appreciate psychological support for learning. In the school where
children perceived this the most, it was noted as the characteristic they most liked
about the school. This suggests that schools catering to NAC should place as
much emphasis on psychological support as on support for academic learning.
9. MAINLAND CHINESE CHILDREN IN HONG KONG 145
China and visited them in Hong Kong. Two lived with their fathers in Hong Kong,
because their mothers did not have the right of abode in Hong Kong. Four lived
in the Chinese mainland and commuted to Hong Kong (approximately 4 h every
day) to attend school. This was probably because of the higher cost of living in
Hong Kong and because parents believed that children who were educated in
Hong Kong would have better prospects later in life. In general, children were not
well integrated into their neighborhoods and typically played only with siblings.
Although 10 children mentioned community centers, they were not aware of the
social services available to new immigrants.
Ten of the 37 children were positive about living in Hong Kong, and some
were still becoming adjusted. They were aware of the opportunities that being
educated in Hong Kong would provide. Many said they liked the parks and the
Hong Kong environment generally. Responses to questions about their feelings
about living in Hong Kong included "I feel good about the move to Hong Kong
because there are lots of things to do in Hong Kong such as going to the play-
grounds" (boy in Primary 3); "I feel good about the move to Hong Kong because
there are lots of places to play in Hong Kong. Sometimes my mum will take me
to the parks or swimming pools" (girl in Primary 3); and "The place is cleaner
than my hometown. The social order is better. People here queue up for buses"
(girl in Primary 3).
Others who came from rural areas in China missed their larger living quarters.
When asked what they missed the most about living in the mainland, most said
that they missed their grandparents, cousins, friends, or pets. For example, a girl
in Primary 4 said, "I miss my grandpa because he is very good. I can go back to
visit my homeland once a few months."
Eight of the 37 children had not yet returned to the mainland, some still lived
there, and the rest visited the mainland monthly or during holidays. The proxim-
ity of their place of origin to Hong Kong enabled frequent visits, which is some-
thing that may not be possible for immigrants in other countries.
CONCLUSIONS
The voices of young immigrants suggest that they have generally adjusted well to
living in Hong Kong. This is consistent with other studies using quantitative
methods (Chan et al., 2003; Cheung & Hui, 2003). Our study has enabled a more
in-depth understanding of how children experience the acculturation process
(Schmitz, 2003). At first, children were apprehensive about moving to Hong
Kong and studying there, but most said that they are happy now. The findings also
reveal individual differences among children. Clearly some were not happy, and
certain factors such as not living with both parents caused distress. Our interviews
also suggested that school staff may play a crucial role in the adjustment process.
Children in one school particularly appreciated the role played by the principal
and teachers. Responses to interview questions suggested that children missed
their extended families and friends in the mainland and that they were not gener-
ally well integrated into their neighborhoods.
Children's responses to interview questions reflected the value placed by Chinese
parents on academic achievement. Immigrants from mainland China clearly share a
strong cultural connection with Hong Kong Chinese people. However, there are still
subcultural variations and distinctions between the two groups and children must
adjust to a new educational system. Rubin and Bhavnagri (2001) argued that it is
important for educators to have an insider's perspective to enable them to devise
the most effective strategies for supporting these children. Indeed, in a survey of
1,680 newly arrived children from the Chinese mainland, Chan (2002) found that
feeling lonely was the best predictor of acculturation of these young immigrants.
148 RAO AND YUEN
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
This project was partly funded by the Sik Sik Yuen Education Research Fund. We
thank Eve Chen, Ellen Zhang, Marine Yeung, and Candace Zhang for their help with
the data collection and analyses and Leah Adams for suggestions for interview items.
REFERENCES
Bhavnagri, N. P. (2001). The global village: Migration and education. Childhood Education, 77(5),
256-259.
Chan, M. C , lp, K.-Y., & Yuen, M. (1996). Adaptation and Needs of Young New Arrivals from
Mainland China in the Sham Shui Po District. Hong Kong: 3A Printing.
Chan, R. M.-C. (2002). Acculturation of young new arrivals from Mainland China to Hong Kong.
Dissertation Abstracts International, 63(1-B), 584.
Chan, R. M.-C, Yuen, M., Lau, P. S.-Y, Wu, S.-W., & Ip, K.-Y. (2003). Acculturation of Young
Arrivals from the Mainland. Hong Kong: Hong Kong Baptist University Center for Educational
Development.
Chan, S., Yuen, M., & Lau, P. (2003). The effects of a group guidance programme on the self-esteem
of newly arrived children from Chinese Mainland to Hong Kong. Asia Pacific Journal of Education,
23(2), 171-182.
Cheung, H. Y, & Hui, S. K. F. (2003). Mainland immigrant and Hong Kong local students' psycho-
logical sense of school membership. Asia Pacific Education Review, 4(1), 61-14.
Hong Kong Government. (2004). Survey on Children From the Mainland Newly Admitted to Schools
October 2002 to September 2003. Hong Kong: Author, Statistics Section, Education and Manpower
Bureau.
Kirova, A. (2001). Loneliness in immigrant children: Implications for classroom practice. Childhood
Education, 77(5), 260-267.
Rao, N., & Yuen, M. (2001). Accommodations for assimilation: Supporting newly arrived children
from the Chinese Mainland in Hong Kong. Childhood Education, 77(5), 313-318.
Rubin, L., & Bhavnagri, N. P. (2001). Voices of recent Chaldean adolescent immigrants. Childhood
Education, 77(5), 308-312.
Schmitz, P. G. (2003). Psychological factors of immigration and emigration: An introduction. In
L. Loeb Adler & U. P. Gielen (Eds.), Migration: Immigration and Emigration in International
Perspective (pp. 23-50) London: Praeger.
9. MAINLAND CHINESE CHILDREN IN HONG KONG 149
APPENDIX I
School Issues
When did you start attending this school?
Was this the first school you attended in Hong Kong?
Did you attend any special programs in the People's Republic of China or
in Hong Kong for children who will be coming to schools in Hong Kong
before you started school?
How long did you have to wait before you were admitted to school?
Tell me what you dislike about this school.
Tell me what you like about this school.
Do you find the studies difficult?
What is your most favorite/least favorite subject?
Tell me about your first day of school. What did you do? How did you
feel?
How do you feel about school now? Why?
If I were to ask your mother/father how you feel about school, what do
you think he/she would tell me?
Was it easy for you to make friends here? Why or Why not?
Who are your friends now?
Find out about social group—does he or she mix with only immigrant
children?
What has been helpful to your adjustment in this school in Hong Kong?
Tell us about your worries in the past three months
Tell us about your hopes for the coming year.
Family Issues
Where were you born?
Which city/province in China does your family originally come from?
How often did you come to Hong Kong before you moved?
When did you get your papers to move to Hong Kong?
Is your mother in Hong Kong? Is your whole family in Hong Kong? How
many brothers and sisters do you have? What are their ages? Do they
attend school in Hong Kong?
What about grandparents? Extended family?
How often do you go to the mainland for holidays?
Do you think you will stay in Hong Kong for a long time?
Who helps you with your homework at home? English homework?
150 RAO AND YUEN
Neighborhood Issues
How many people are in the household? Name and relationship to target
child.
Who plays with you in the household? In the neighborhood? Where do
you go for leisure time?
Are there many people from the mainland in your district?
Community centre/support?
Feelings About Hong Kong
Have you heard the word immigrant? What does immigrant mean?
What is something good about moving here? Can you tell me something
else that is good (about the move)?
What is something that is not so good about moving here?
Can you tell me something else that is not so good (about the move)?
What do you miss the most from (homeland)?
What else do you miss?
If another boy/girl were going to move to a new country, what advice
would you give him/her?
What would you tell them about making friends?
Chapter 10
Immigrant Children's
Understandings of Nonverbal Peer
Interactions Through the
Development of Visual Narratives
Data from the 2001 Census show that the foreign-born population of Canada is at
its highest level in 70 years (Statistics Canada, 2003a). The Conference Board of
Canada projected that by 2025 immigration will account for all population growth
in the country. Because of greater diversity of ancestry and countries of origins
among immigrant families, the number of visible minorities has tripled since 1981.
In the large city in western Canada where our study took place, the most common
10 source countries were Philippines, India, China, Hong Kong, Vietnam, Poland,
United Kingdom, United States, Bosnia or Herzegovina, and Lebanon. According
to the 2001 Census, 17% of the 1.8 million immigrants who arrived in Canada dur-
ing the 1990s were children aged 5 and 16 years. Currently in urban centers, nearly
one of every five children has immigrated within the past 10 years (Statistics
Canada, 2003b).
Immigrant children and youth are diverse in their educational backgrounds.
Immigrant children with an English as a second language (ESL) background are
often at risk in terms of literacy, academic achievement, and dropout. In Alberta,
151
152 KIROVA AND EMME
the province in which the study took place, high school ESL students have over-
all noncompletion rates between 61% and 74% compared with 30% for all
Alberta high school students (Alberta Learning, 2001; Derwing, DeCorby,
Ichikawa, & Jamieson, 1999; Watt & Roessingh, 1994). These numbers indicate
that although many success stories illustrate the high levels of adaptability and
integration of immigrant children into Canadian society, a significant number
struggle to adjust to the Canadian school system.
Peer relationships have been found to be a predictor of more general school
adjustment (Pelligrini & Blatchford, 2000; Pelligrini, Kentaro, Blatchford, &
Baines, 2002). School peers are prime contributors to positive and negative expe-
riences in school (Deegan, 1996), and they play a key role in the process of cul-
tural reproduction (James, Jenks, & Prout, 1998). Positive social interactions with
school peers contribute to the development of a strong sense of belonging among
immigrant children (van Ngo, 2004). However, interactions with school peers are
not without problems (Deegan, 1996). In earlier research (Kirova-Petrova, 2000),
Kirova (2001) showed that social isolation and loneliness are common experi-
ences among immigrant children, regardless of their racial, ethnic, or linguistic
backgrounds. Children reported that because they were unable to be accepted as
members of their peer group, they experienced the loneliness of being excluded,
unwanted, and disliked. Other studies (Osterman, 2001) also showed that being
excluded or ignored leads to intense feelings of anxiety, depression, grief, envy,
and loneliness.
The problems associated with loneliness and isolation acquire even greater
significance when viewed from the hypothesis that the need to belong is a funda-
mental human motivation (Baumeister & Leary, 1995). Immigrant children's
inability to satisfy this need may result in personal difficulties such as negative
feelings about oneself and others. The relationship between oneself and others
affects children's capacity for integration into the school culture (Winicott, 1971).
Among the barriers faced by immigrant children in gaining the acceptance
of their peers are unfamiliarity with Canadian patterns of oral, written, and
nonverbal communication and social rules; differences in communication styles;
and misinterpretation of cultural behaviors (van Ngo, 2004). A study of recent
Chinese immigrants in elementary school (Kirova-Petrova & Wu, 2002), for
example, suggested the possibility that miscommunication during their integra-
tion into the school culture might be caused largely by their misinterpretation of
the nonverbal cues of their classmates. Peer conflicts were about misunderstand-
ings on the part of both the newcomers and their peers from the majority (non-
Chinese) culture. In most reported cases, these misunderstandings occurred at a
nonverbal level, and in all instances, the non-Chinese peers' behaviors were per-
ceived by the newcomers as overt rejection and evoked either an aggressive
response or hurt feelings, sadness, isolation, and loneliness.
Because nonverbal behavior (NVB) is the product of a continuing process of
socialization in a given culture (Archer, 1997; Kendon, 1984; Pearce & Cronen,
10. NONVERBAL INTERACTION AND VISUAL NARRATIVE 153
METHODOLOGY
for communicating the feelings of the characters in the scene to other children
who had not taken part in its creation. "Getting into Basketball" was shown to
children in Grades 4 and 5 who had not taken part in developing the visual
narrative, and they were invited to respond to the story as they perceived and
made sense of it.
Other data-gathering methods used were semistructured and unstructured indi-
vidual and group interviews conducted with the children on an ongoing basis.
These focused on children's experiences of schooling in Canada and took place
during the lunch hour as part of the photo club. All but two children were fluent
in spoken English and so could be interviewed in English; a bilingual research
assistant interviewed the two Mandarin-speaking children in their native tongue.
Consent forms for parents and children were translated into seven languages and
sent home. Although all children who wished to participate in the photo club
became members and participated more or less regularly in its activities, data
were gathered only from the children whose parents consented to their participa-
tion in the study.
At recess, the school playground provides a rich but underused venue for the study
of school-aged children's peer interactions (Boulton & Smith, 1993; Hart, 1993;
Pelligrini et al., 2002). Researchers agree that recess is one of the few opportunities
for children in the strictly structured school to interact and engage in both games
and free play with their peers. However, interactions among peers on the school
playground appear only on the surface to be free. A growing body of literature on
children's geographies (Holloway & Valentine, 2000) indicates that school play-
grounds have become institutionalized spaces where adults attempt to control
children and where differences between children have been reinscribed (Aitken,
1994). Researchers of peer interactions (Waters & Sroufe, 1983) suggest that inter-
actions with peers at recess are both motivating and demanding for children.
Engaging in games such as basketball, for example, requires a fair level of social
and cognitive sophistication (Sutton-Smith, 1975), including knowing the rules of
the game and being able to subordinate one's personal views and desires to those
rules and to the positions of one's peers (Pelligrini et al., 2002). Research suggests
(Kirova-Petrova, 1996) that games with rules may facilitate immigrant children's
interactions with peers. Games such as basketball, in which the roles and rules are
universally recognized and followed, may provide immigrant children who know
and follow these rules a greater chance of acceptance by their peers than in games
with loose or childmade rules that are context specific. However, in this study, the
major challenge facing immigrant children was not following the rules but getting
into the game itself.
Getting into basketball as the topic of the fotonovela emerged from an explo-
ration of a larger topic, Life on the Playground, undertaken by the participants in
the photo club. After their initial open-ended visual documentation of the play-
ground, the Grade 4 and 5 children generated a checklist of ideas about the various
activities of the playground. These were games, playing with equipment, listening,
talking, being alone, leading, following, being together, following children's rules,
and following grownups' rules. To explore these ideas, the children were sent in
pairs to the playground to take documentary photographs of each of the categories
on the list. The members of the research team supervised the activity but made no
suggestions to the children about which shots to take or what to focus on.
The photographs taken by each pair were then printed, and the photographers
were asked to examine them and color code how each photograph represented
one or more categories on the checklist.
The topic of getting into basketball arose when one of the research assistants
drew two girls into a world of make-believe. She told them of her imaginary niece
who was coming to their school from a foreign country with no knowledge of school
or city life. She enlisted them to help her to prepare her niece for the experience.
10. NONVERBAL INTERACTION AND VISUAL NARRATIVE 157
Margaret and Veronica, who were immigrant ESL students themselves, were eager
to help the new girl (named Amy). In conversations, the girls began to tell the
researcher about some of the unspoken rules of the playground and the etiquette
that governed children in play and their outdoor behavior. The most animated
discussions were about the basketball area. Here the children followed a strict code
of conduct that would need to be explained to a newcomer. The girls gave the
following advice to the imaginary new student: 'Amy, if someone's shooting, don't
go by." "If the ball rolls to you, don't take it." "Ask if you can play." Inspired by the
girls' thoughtful engagement in the activity, the researcher suggested that they make
a fotonovela of one such playground place and send it to Amy.
The next step was to use a storyboard to divide the story into frames that could
be separately acted out and photographed. The children chose the basketball court
as the setting for their story and suggested that Amy and a girl from the school
should act in a scenario of what to do and what not to do there. The story was
about a new girl trying to join in a basketball game and was told effortlessly by
Margaret as if she had experienced it herself. Speech bubbles and thought
balloons on sticky notes were used to record the dialogue.
The dialogue and the performance of the episode according to the already-
developed storyboard required the children to examine the real world of a new
child in the school. With the help of the researchers, the girls were led in a
creative process of self-exploration that involved entering the world of the new
girl. As a result of this process, the two girls were able to imagine and articulate
Amy's probable reactions during her first day at school. They recognized that
Amy would be interested in playing with everyone and that she would probably
not be aggressive. However, they also realized that the friendship of their charac-
ters transcended anything else in the school.
When a third girl, Shannon, who wished to join Margaret and Veronica in
acting out the story, was asked to take the role of Amy, she decided to portray her
character's frustration nonverbally by raising her arms. The researchers were
convinced that this gesture was so powerfully eloquent that anyone could fill in
her unspoken words. The act of surrender portrayed a rejected child who had no
alternative than to step away from the terrible experience.
The series of six photos presented in Figure 1 are a fotonovela that depicts a
simple and common playground scenario. Because of the every dayness of the
fotonovela, and because the girls' representation and performance of their story
was credibly done, it could be shared with everyone in the school.
The fotonovela, "Getting into Basketball," was shared with two groups of
children for different reasons and at different times. Because two of the girls who
158 KIROVA AND EMME
participated in developing the fotonovela were in Grade 5, it was first shared with
the rest of the Grade 5 students during their regular class time: a total of 15
children. The research objective was to observe how the children who had not
participated in the development of the visual narrative would respond. The
fotonovela was presented to the class by the creators, and it included both the title
and the text as originally written by them. The children in the class were imme-
diately drawn to its content. The characters' speech and gestures were readable
and personal for the children in a story about their own playground community.
The part about the new girl's exclusion, disappointment, and loneliness on the
basketball court was well portrayed in the fotonovela. Although the comic was
short, the children revisited the images and dialogue several times and agreed
among themselves that this was "what happens the first recess when you don't
know anyone in the school."
The fotonovela was shown a second time to some Grade 4 students 4 months
later. Based on the first experience of presenting the fotonovela, the research
objective was to learn how children who had not participated in developing the
fotonovela would interpret the scenario based solely on their reading of the
participants' body language. Therefore, this time the black-and-white copies of
the fotonovela given individually to each child in the class were without titles,
speech, or thought balloons. The title was left blank, and separate pages of blank
speech and thought balloons were provided or the children to cut out and place
as they saw fit. The sharing took place during regular class time, and 13 children
were present that day.
The first sharing of the visual narrative gave us a general sense of how read-
able the visual narrative was for the children; the second experience provided a
detailed understanding of the meanings assigned by the individual children to
10. NONVERBAL INTERACTION AND VISUAL NARRATIVE 159
each frame. Analysis of these meanings provided some insights into how the
children's understanding and interpretation of the nonverbal behavior of their
peers varied. The analysis presented in the following section is based on the
content of text provided by the individual children for each of the six frames of
the fotonovela. Some commonalties and differences also are described.
The most interesting part of the analysis of the text for Frame 1 is that all the
children identified the new child. The general intention of the new child—to play
with the other two girls—also was generally understood. Of 11 children who
ascribed text to this image, 8 ascribed an active role to the new child. It was she who
initiated the contact and asked if she could play. The other 3 children had a differ-
ent view of this. One drew a picture of the new child imagining that 1 of the girls
was passing the ball to her; another drew a sad face in a thought balloon; the third
had the new child telling the other 2 that she was "open" by saying so orally.
Interestingly, the new child's gesture, which the researchers interpreted as surren-
der to the power of the two peers who did not allow her to get in to the game, was
not read as such by the children. The text bubbles indicate that most of the children
interpreted the gesture as a request. Examples included "Can I play?" (2 children)
and "Pass the ball/Give the ball to me/Can I please have the ball?" (5 children). One
child interpreted it as an indication of being open to passes from the other basket-
ball players ("I am open!") and another as an indication of resistance to the peer
pressure to leave the basketball court ("You are mean but I am not going away").
The children were consistent in how they interpreted the intentions of the other
two characters in the story. None interpreted the verbal exchange among the three
characters as positive. According to the texts in this frame, the reply to the new
child's request to play was clearly a rejection (e.g., "What are you looking at? You
can't play!" "I am never gonna pass it to that freak," "No way, girl! You little
wimp," "Don't make me take out my cap gun!"). These few examples demon-
strate not only rejection of the new child's plea but also an attempt to hurt her
feelings by using insulting language and threats. One child wrote a number of
lines about this exchange as follows.
In this case, it appeared that the new child already had a "bad history" with Cindy
and was being punished for something she did not remember doing. The variety
in the verbal exchanges suggest that in writing the text to this fotonovela the
children were probably drawing on their own experiences as newcomers.
160 KIROVA AND EMME
Frame 1
In Frame 2, the children saw the role of the new child as being much less
active. Only two of the children had her initiate a verbal exchange. Two of the
children thought she was still trying to get the ball by complaining that they never
being passed it to her ("You never pass it to me," and "Come on!!"). In both
instances, these attempts were rejected ("I am passing it to Cindy," and "NO! Get
out of here!"). The text for another fotonovela indicated that the new child was
asking if the line "Then take that!!" from one of the girls was a threat ("Are you
threatening me?"). The overall tone of the exchange was still negative: the two
girls were either engaged in an exchange that excluded the new girl ("I am open.
Pass the ball," "I am not passing it to you"), or they made remarks about her like
"She is such a crybaby." One child even wrote "Go die!" as a comment from one
of the girls to the new child.
Five of the 13 children ascribed no text to Frame 3. Those who did, however,
depicted a momentary shift in power. It appeared to them that for a moment the
new child had possession of the ball and was trying to keep it. This was evident
in the text of several fotonovelas. For example, 1 child wrote that the new girl was
thinking to herself, "I got to run. Run!!" Four children wrote that the other girl in
the scene was trying to get the ball back from the new child (e.g., "Hey, give me
back the ball. That's not yours," "Give me that ball," and "Pass me the ball"). It
was interesting that one child interpreted the events in this frame such that the
new child not only had possession of the ball but also was not giving it up easily.
10. NONVERBAL INTERACTION AND VISUAL NARRATIVE 161
Frame 2
Her ability to resist peer pressure and to exercise agency was evident in 1 child's
text, which clearly indicated the new girl's determination to keep the upper hand,
"You are mean and I am not giving it to you."
One child had a unique perspective of the events depicted in this frame.
According to the text of the fotonovela, the new girl attempted to use her momen-
tary advantage to suggest a new game that the 3 of them could play together. She
said, "Let's play 'Monkey in the middle.'" The response from the other girl was
a clear rejection as expressed in a thought balloon, "We won't let her play!"
Once again, fewer children ascribed text to this Frame 4. However, the seven
children who did write for the scene were consistent in their interpretations. They
saw it as a loss for the new child (e.g., a thought balloon "She got me, I thought
that I could get it") and a victory for the other girl (e.g., "Ha, ha, ha, I got it!" "Ha,
ha. I got the ball," "What a baby," and "I told her she can't get my ball!").
The fact that Frame 5 was similar to the first frame made analysis of the mean-
ing of the positions and gestures of the characters assigned by the individual
children interesting in relation to the main research question. Once again, the new
girl was seen as being an active player. Although her position in relation to the
other girls and her gesture were almost identical in the two frames, the interpre-
tation of her role was quite different. Whereas in the first frame the new girl
pleaded for acceptance into the game, the text for the fifth frame indicated that
she had, to some extent, lost hope that this would happen.
162 KIROVA AND EMME
Frame 3
The text indicated some children's desire to explain her action in getting the
ball as shown in the previous frame. She sounded almost apologetic in "I just
wanted to play" and "I really wanted to play." According to other children, the
new child was not sure what had happened and why the other two girls would not
let her play (e.g., "What did I do? Even if I did something, she should have told
me"). Others indicated her frustration with the situation by drawing her dream-
ing about her big brother coming to rescue her or by saying, "I am going to cry
if you are not going to let me play." Three children interpreted her gesture as
indicating her growing sense of agency by resisting the other two girls' comments
to her (e.g., "You are rude," and "Stop being greedy") or by openly saying that
she had changed her mind and no longer wanted to play (e.g., "You know what,
I don't want to play, so buzz off!").
The overall tone of the exchange among all players was negative, reinforcing
the two girls' decision not to let the new child play. One of the girls said to the
new child, "Be quiet, shrimp!" and the other said, "You'll never play with us.
Never, never, never!"
Analysis of the text for Frame 6 suggests that all the children but one inter-
preted the new child's position and body language to indicate hurt feelings (e.g.,
"Oh that hurts," "Stop it, that hurts") or that she was crying (e.g., "You made me
cry"). Several children also drew crying faces in thought balloons. Only one
10. NONVERBAL INTERACTION AND VISUAL NARRATIVE 163
Frame 4
speech bubble indicated that the new child forgave the other two for what they
had done: "I forgive you." The responses from the other two girls to having made
the new child cry or at least having upset her were different in all fotonovelas.
These ranged from showing no compassion or regret as in, "Yeah! Go home!" and
"Don't make me pull a trigger to your head," to feeling apologetic and accepting
her as a partner in the game as in, "I am sorry I never passed the ball to you," "Oh
no, sorry," and "Come and play." Two children thought that the other girls were
apologizing for making her cry, and only one ended the story with the new girl
being accepted as a partner in the game.
Analysis of the fotonovelas clearly demonstrates that the playground is more than
a recreational space. It is a pedagogical space full of "performers" who form,
negotiate, and practice inclusive or exclusive interactions. Understanding the
nature and meaning of these interactions depends on one's familiarity with
the larger cultural context in which they occur and on one's earlier experiences.
In the case of immigrant children, earlier experiences of interacting with school
peers may not be helpful, as now they must interact with peers from a different
164 KIROVA AND EMME
Frame 5
Frame 6
10. NONVERBAL INTERACTION AND VISUAL NARRATIVE 165
cultural background from their own. The study reported here suggests that the
understanding of the intentions and meaning of school peer interactions is not
uniform, and it can be a challenge not only for the immigrant children but also for
all children in multicultural contexts. The fotonovelas show that ways of express-
ing and understanding meanings, feelings, and emotions through body language
appear to be quite different not only from culture to culture but also from one
individual to another. However, we concur in Feldman and colleague's (1991)
conclusion that nonverbal behavioral skills are primary aspects of social compe-
tence as they affect and control to a large extent exchanges in social interactions.
Our finding suggest that children, regardless of their cultural backgrounds,
have varying interpretations of the nature and meaning of interactions among
peers, especially if they rely solely on observations rather than language. Thus
social learning through observations (Bandura, 1977) may not be sufficient to
allow newcomers to navigate their school social environment. Learning to under-
stand the observed behaviors presents a distinct set of challenges for newcomers
who wish to engage in and maintain peer relationships in multicultural and
multilingual school contexts. Other studies (Hanna, 1984) have suggested that
nonverbal translation is a recognized remedy for potential intercultural misun-
derstanding. However, teaching children nonverbal communication has been
largely neglected because of "the pre-eminent status of the word in technologi-
cally advanced societies" (p. 400). The method developed and used in this study
provides an avenue for children to explore their own and their peers' understand-
ings of the various ways that intentions, desires, feelings, and emotions can be
expressed and interpreted. Unlike Feldman et al. (1991), who suggested formal
training to improve the accuracy of decoding for students in Grades 5 and 6, we
suggest that developing and sharing visual narratives in the form of fotonovelas
that depict life in school can promote understanding of peer interaction between
children from varying cultural and linguistic backgrounds.
The results of the study indicate advantages in having the students both create
fotonovelas and read those created by others. Fotonovelas created by children for
immigrant children can be used as a tool to help them decode body language and
meaning. The reader benefits from the use of both photography and words as
presented in sequence. This format can offer clues about the cultural workings of
the world they have entered. The nuances of body language and social structure can
be seen through the photographs and through the accompanying written language.
Similarly, a fotonovela format can provide cultural clues to help understand unspo-
ken conventions of language, informal communication, and social roles.
The creation of fotonovelas by immigrant students who also are second-
language learners offers them an opportunity for expression otherwise inhibited
by traditional methods. The visual narrative is quickly produced, and the dialogue
is not complicated. The visual literacy of photography can span cultural barriers
166 KIROVA AND EMME
and help the child to be understood and thus be less isolated. The visual format
of the fotonovela appeals to children for whom comics are a part of their personal
culture and reading community. As evidenced by the work presented here,
which represents only a beginning, the form offers the possibility of "polyvocal"
narrative inquiry that can embrace word, gesture, image, time, and space.
REFERENCES
Aitken, S. C. (1994). Putting Children in Their Place. Washington, DC: Association of American
Geographers.
Alberta Education. (2001). Removing Barriers to High School Completion—Final Report. Retrieved
Sept. 10, 2004 from www.education.gov.ab.ca
Archer, D. (1997). Unspoken diversity: Cultural differences in gestures. Qualitative Sociology, 20(1),
79-105.
Bandura, A. (1977). Social Learning Theory. New York: Holt, Rinehart & Winston.
Baumeister, R. F., & Leary, M. R. (1995). The need to belong: Desire for interpersonal attachment as
a fundamental human motivation. Psychological Bulletin, 117, 497-529.
Berman H., Ford-Gilboe M., Moutrey B., & Cekic S. (2001). Portraits of pain and promise: A photo-
graphic study of Bosnian youth. Canadian Journal of Nursing Research, 32(4) 21-41.
Boulton, M., & Smith, P. K. (1993). Ethnic, gender partner, and activity preferences in mixed-race
children's social competence develop in the context of interacting with their peers in the UK:
Playground observations. In C. Hart (Ed.), Children on Playgrounds (pp. 210-238). Albany, NY:
SUNY Press.
Class, A., Stead, J., Arshad, R., & Norris, C. (2001). School peer relationships of minority children in
Scotland. Child: Care, Health and Development, 27(2), 133-148.
Conrad, D. (2004). Exploring risky youth experiences: Popular theatre as a participatory, performa-
tive research method. International Journal of Qualitative Methods, 3(\). Retrieved April 6, 2005,
from http://www.ualberta.ca/~iiqm/backissues/3_l/pdf/conrad.pdf
Curiel, F. (2001). Fotonovela rosa, fotonovela roja. México: Coordination de Difusion Cultural,
Direction de Literaturea/UNAM.
Deegan, J. (1996). Children's friendships in culturally diverse classrooms. London: Falmer.
Derwing, M. T., DeCorby, E., Ichikawa, J., & Jamieson, K. (1999). Some factors that affect the
success of ESL high school students. Canadian Modern Language Review, 55, 532-547.
Efron, D. (1941). Gesture, Race and Culture. The Hague, The Netherlands: Mouton.
Ekman, P. (1983). Three classes of non-verbal behavior. In W. von Raffler-Engel (Ed.), Aspects of
Nonverbal Communication (pp. 89-102). Lisse, The Netherlands: Swets & Zeitlinger.
Ells, H. (2001). Talking pictures in working school lunches: Investigating food choice with children
and adolescents. British Food Journal, 103, 374-382.
Emme, M. (1989). The meaning(s) of lens meaning. Journal of Social Theory and Art Education,
9, 26-35.
Emme, M., & Kirova, A. (2005). Photoshop semiotics: Research in the age of digital manipulation.
Visual Art Research, 37(1) 145-153.
Emme, M., Kirova, A., Kamau, O., & Kosanovich, S. (in press). Ensemble research: Immigrant children's
exploration of peer relationships through fotonovela. Alberta Journal of Educational Research.
Feldman, R. S., Philippot, P., & Custrini, R. J. (1991). Social competence and nonverbal behavior. In
R. Feldman & B. Rime (Eds.), Fundamentals of Nonverbal Behavior (pp. 329-350). Cambridge,
UK: Cambridge University Press.
10. NONVERBAL INTERACTION AND VISUAL NARRATIVE 167
Hall, E. (1976). Beyond Culture. New York: Doubleday.
Hall, J. A. (1984). Non-Verbal Sex Differences: Communication Accuracy and Expressive Style.
Baltimore, MD: Johns Hopkins University Press.
Hanna, J. L. (1984). Black/white non-verbal differences, dance and dissonance: Implications for
desegregation. In A. Wolfgang (Ed.), Nonverbal Behavior: Perspectives, Applications, Intercultural
Insights (pp. 373-109). Toronto, ON: C. J. Hogrefe.
Hart, C. H. (Ed.) (1993). Children on Playgrounds: Research Perspectives and Applications. Albany,
NY: SUNY Press.
Heslin, R., & Patterson, M. L. (1982). Non-Verbal Behavior and Social Psychology. New York:
Plenum.
Holloway, S., & Valentine, G. (2000). Children's geographies and the new social studies of childhood.
In S. Holloway & G. Valentine (Eds.), Children's Geographies: Playing, Living, Learning
(pp. 1-28). London: Routledge.
James, A., Jenks, C , & Prout, A. (1998). Theorizing childhood. New York: Teachers College Press.
Kendon, A. (1984). Did gesture have the happiness to escape the curse of the confusion of Babel?
In A. Wolfgang (Ed.), Nonverbal Behavior: Perspectives, Applications, Intercultural Insights
(pp. 75-114). Toronto, ON: C. J. Hogrefe.
Kirova, A. (2001). Loneliness in immigrant children: Implications for classroom practice. Childhood
Education, 77, 260-268.
Kirova-Petrova, A. (1996). Toward pedagogical understanding of children's feelings of loneliness.
Early Childhood Education, 29(2), 9-15.
Kirova-Petrova, A. (2000). Researching young children's lived experiences of loneliness: Pedagogical
implications for linguistically diverse students. Alberta Journal of Educational Research, 56,
99-116.
Kirova-Petrova, A., & Wu, J. (2002). Peer acceptance, learning English as a second language, and
identity formation in children of recent Chinese Immigrants. In A. Richardson, M. Wyness, &
A. Halvorsen (Eds.), Exploring Cultural Perspectives, Integration and Globalization
(pp. 171-190). Edmonton, AB: ICRN Press.
Leach, E. (1972). The influence of cultural context on non-verbal communication in man. In R. Hinde
(Ed.), Non-Verbal Communication (pp. 315-347). Cambridge, UK: Cambridge University Press.
Mehrabian, A. (1971). Silent Messages. Belmont, CA: Wadsworth.
Mehrabian, A., & Weiner, M. (1967). Decoding of inconsistent communications. Journal of Personality
and Social Psychology, 6, 109-114.
Osterman, K. F. (2001). Students' need for belonging in the school community. Review of Educational
Research, 70, 323-367.
Pearce, W. B., & Cronen, V E. (1980). Communication Action and Meaning—the Creation of Social
Realities. New York: Praeger.
Pelligrini, A. D., & Blatchford, P. (2000). The Child at School: Interactions With Peers and Teachers.
New York: Oxford University Press.
Pelligrini, A. D., Kentaro, K., Blatchford, P., & Baines, E. (2002). A short-term longitudinal study of
children's playground games across the first year of school: Implications for social competence and
adjustment to school. American Educational Research Journal, 39, 991-1015.
Poyatos, F. (1984). Linguistic fluency and verbal-nonverbal cultural fluency. In A. Wolfgang (Ed.),
Nonverbal Behaviour: Perspectives, Applications, Intercultural Insights (pp. 431-459). Toronto,
ON: C. J. Hogrefe.
Poyatos, F. (1999). Non-verbal communication and translation. University of Toronto Quarterly,
69(1), 119-120.
Reed, J. L. (1998). The fotonovela. Camerawork: A Journal of Photographic Arts, 25(2), 4-5.
Schneller, R. (1985). Heritage and changes in the non-verbal language of Ethiopian newcomers.
Israeli Social Science Research, 3(1/2), 33-54.
168 KIROVA AND EMME
Schneller, R. (1988). The Israeli experience of cross-cultural misunderstanding: Insights and lessons.
In F. Poyatos (Ed.), Cross-Cultural Perspectives in Non-Verbal Communication (pp. 153-193).
Toronto, ON: C. J. Hogrefe.
Statistics Canada. (2003a). 2001 Census Analysis Series—Canada's Ethnocultural Portrait: the
Changing Mosaic. Ottawa, ON: Author. Retrieved July 14, 2004 from http://wwwl2.statcan.ca./
english/census0l/products/analytic/companion/etoimn/pdf/96F0030XIE2001008.pdf
Statistics Canada. (2003b). Ethnic Diversity Survey: Portrait of a Multicultural Society. Retrieved
September 30, 2003, from http://www.statcan.ca/english/freepub/89-593-XIE/free.htm
Sutton-Smith, B. (1975). The Study of Games: An Anthropological Approach. New York: Teachers
College Press.
van Ngo, H. (2004). Immigrant Children in Focus: a Map of Needs, Strategies and Resources.
Calgary, AB: Coalition for Equal Access to Education.
von Raffler-Engel, W. (Ed.). (1980). Aspects of Non-Verbal Behavior. Lisse, The Netherlands:
Swets & Zeitlinger.
Wang, C , & Burris, M. A. (1994). Empowerment through photonovella: Portraits of participation.
Health Education Quarterly, 21, 171-186.
Waters, E., & Sroufe, L. A. (1983). Social competence as a developmental construct. Developmental
Review, 3, 79-97.
Watt, D., & Roessingh, H. (2001). The dynamics of ESL dropout: Plus ça change ... Canadian
Modern Language Review, 58, 203-223. Retrieved Nov. 5, 2004 from http://utpjournals.com/
product/cmlr/582/582-Watt.html
Watzlawick, P., Beavin, J. H., & Jackson, D. D. (1967). Pragmatics in Human Communication. New
York: Norton.
Winicott, D. W. (1971). Playing and Reality. Harmondsworth, UK: Penguin.
Chapter 11
Liesbeth de Block
Institute of Education, University of London, United Kingdom
There is still a tendency in many schools to equate multicultural diversity with the
need to keep children's sense of origins alive. The multicultural events that arise
from this approach—such as international food evenings, national costume days,
or even the celebration of various religious festivals—can often involve immi-
grant communities in performances of their difference rather than promoting real
interaction with one another and those from other cultures. This then further
others them, promoting an essentialist view of culture as unchanging and always
impenetrable. The danger is that we do not acknowledge how children themselves
prioritize fitting into their current local environments rather than holding an
attachment to the past. Connected to this is the need to recognize how the meet-
ing of cultures is a dynamic process of negotiation and change, both for the arriv-
ing and the receiving people and communities. This means that we should be
focusing on what children already do to facilitate their entry into new places of
residence and what resources they use to allow them to communicate and build
social relationships with other children. It means that we should become more
aware of where the meeting points are, where children have shared experiences,
rather than focusing only on the differences and where their lives are separated.
We need to learn more about the processes of change and what resources children
draw on in negotiating new identities and new belongings.
169
170 DE BLOCK
Television has long been seen as one of the institutions that can create what
Anderson (1983) termed "the imagined community," which promotes a sense of
national belonging. Globalizing media have changed this, and although there is
still a demand for local media (mainly radio and newspapers), in the main media
are increasingly globalized (Morley & Robins, 1995). We no longer all watch the
same program at the same time, but with satellite and cable, we can select from a
range of national, regional, transnational, diasporic, and global broadcasts
according to language, religion, culture, and special interests. By using the term
mediascapes to describe globalizing communications systems, Appadurai (1990)
illustrated the cross-flows of imagination and connection that are central to the
experience of migration. Migration is no longer unidirectional, nor are the com-
munication flows that accompany migration. Appadurai stressed that we now
draw on an array of media in varying ways at varying times and in various social
formations. It is the social contexts of viewing, using, and discussing media that
are arguably the strongest force in our media choices. In terms of television, we
might choose to watch certain programs with friends, others with siblings, still
others with each parent or other adults, and still others alone. Children and young
people also choose what they watch according to social needs and contexts
(Buckingham, 1996; Gillespie, 1995).
For migrant and refugee children, such choices are more diverse (de Block,
2002). Family viewing might revolve around satellite television from their
country or region of origin in their own language, or it might equally center on a
national soap opera in their new country of residence. It also could include a pro-
gram they used to watch before migration that was a global product from the
United States or Brazil or a Hindi film (CHICAM, 2004). It is now possible for
immigrant families to watch only culturally specific broadcasts and to ignore
national programming. Where schools and classes are culturally mixed and where
children have access to a range of television broadcasts, they might watch quite
different programs from their friends in the home country. Despite this, there is
usually a core of shared programs that each friendship group will watch, talk
about, and use in their negotiations of inclusion, exclusion, and identity. Thus,
their viewing will reflect both their local and international interests and connec-
tions. It is neither purely nostalgic nor solely concerned with their current loca-
tion. Rather, it demonstrates the complex mix of past allegiances and memory
while also acknowledging that those places of origin have changed and that their
present and future are not always tied to their places of origin. It is the details
of how media, or in this case television programs in particular, become resources
for building and maintaining social relations across and within cultures that I
concentrate on here.
11. TALKING TELEVISION ACROSS CULTURES 171
Study
The discussion in this chapter is based on an ethnographic study involving 18 months
offieldwork,that I carried out as a single researcher with a small group of refugee and
migrant children and their friends in a primary school in north London. Children from
long-standing local and immigrant communities, as well as children who had recently
arrived from many parts of the world, attended the school. More than 30 languages
were represented. I used ethnographic design in the study. Based on participant obser-
vations, I kept an extensive field diary of observations, drawings, notes of conversa-
tions, and thoughts. I conducted semistructured and unstructured interviews with both
individuals and groups, sometimes using an interpreter. During the fieldwork, I "hung
out" on the playground; spent time with the children in their neighborhoods; and
observed in classrooms, lunchrooms, and corridors. As the fieldwork progressed, I
moved to making short animations with the children about aspects of their lives and
gave them video cameras to use in their neighborhoods. I interviewed the children,
teachers and parents several times over the course of thefieldworkand gradually built
a picture of the children's varied and full media lives and the role that media played
in building social relationships in their new places of residence.
Participants
I focused on two friendship groups. Both groups were mixed in their countries of
origins, immigration status, and social class. The first was a group of four 8-year-
old girls; the second was a group of four 11-year-old boys.
Girls' Group:
. Rhaxma: Somalia, refugee, living with her mother who was at home with
younger children and a stepfather who was studying. Had previously lived
in Italy. Muslim.
. Nyota: Democratic Republic of the Congo. Both parents had previously
been employed in high-status jobs as asylum seekers; they were now not
allowed to protestant.
. Morwen: Born in London of Welsh and Grenadian parents. Father a bus driver.
. Juba: Born in London. Parents from Ghana. Father setting up businesses
between the United Kingdom and Ghana. The family aspiring to moving out
of central London to a more suburban setting.
Boys' Group. The following is a description of the boys in the boys' group:
Others. I also followed several children who were on the edges of these main
groups. These included children from Turkey (Kurdish), Kosovo, Palestine,
Somalia, Bangladesh, and several children born in London both of White English
families and of families who had settled in the United Kingdom one or two gen-
erations before.
The Simpsons is about a U.S. nuclear family: father, mother, older son,
younger daughter, and baby. They live the good suburban life, and yet this dream
is betrayed. Wells (2002) compared the father figure in The Flintstones with
Homer Simpson. Both are portrayals of white, blue-collar workers. The differ-
ence is that although one remains in an establishment that appears to promote
social aspiration while at the same time confirming the status quo, the other sets
out to be a self-conscious critic of this status quo. Homer parodies Fred
Flintstone. He is often distant or out of control; more often than not, he does the
wrong thing, but on many occasions, he manages to muddle through and do the
right thing. Jozajtis (2002) described Homer as an essentially moral man, a good
father with human flaws. He carries much of the emotional charge of the pro-
gram. Meanwhile, Marge, the mother, is the sensible and more intelligent person
who holds the family together and acts as the community's social conscience.
However, she too has her failures, as when she develops a gambling habit that
threatens to undermine the family as a functioning unit. Bart, the son, is the
naughty boy and also often the stupid boy. His focus is his friends and his local-
ity. He is frequently in trouble, but this is usually despite himself. His predomi-
nant motivation is to please. When he wears his "genius" T-shirt, the ironic humor
is clear. Lisa, conversely, is declared a genius, but is still the annoying little sister.
The baby, Maggie, is the foil over whom many family conflicts are enacted. We
feel superior, yet at the same time, we sympathize and identify with the family.
Despite the cultural specificity, the locations of home, school, and local land-
marks such as shops, playground, street, and neighbors (both troublesome and
friendly) are familiar to most children in varying forms. These are places of dan-
ger and of safety.
Several aspects of the program both frame and facilitate TV talk. First, its sub-
ject matter is the everyday life and events of one family, which allows the children
to discuss both the faults and successes of this family and their own. In many
respects, it is subversive. The show is peopled by stereotypical characters (and
behaviors) that can be matched by people in the children's own lives. For exam-
ple, Samuel recognized the grandfather in one episode who is so deaf one cannot
communicate with him and compared him to his own profoundly deaf grand-
father who was visiting from Kenya. Jima, who often watched the show with his
father, often described himself as Bart and his father in terms of his similarity to
Homer.
Jima: A Young Ethiopian Asylum Seeker. One of the boys, Jima (11), who
had come with his father from Ethiopia as an asylum seeker, never mentioned
learning the language as the most important factor in making friends when he
arrived. He focused on learning how children behaved and particularly what they
talked about. He said that he became interested in television when he realized to
what extent it formed a focus of social relations.
174 DE BLOCK
When I asked him why it was important to have a television, his instant reply
was that then you had something to talk about with your friends. His priority was
clear. Television was not a route to escape, but an important aspect of his social life.
Jima aimed to develop a group of friends, so it was important that his interests
and knowledge facilitate this. He developed an interest in wrestling so that he
could talk about World Wrestling Federation broadcasts, and his second passion
was The Simpsons and South Park. TV talk about these programs facilitated this
sense of group togetherness that he and his friends sought. Second, for Jima in
particular, being the expert and being called on to demonstrate this knowledge
gave him a status in the group that other activities did not. It gave him access to
the group and therefore to friendship and inclusion. He was also adept at using
TV references to promote a connection and sense of togetherness. Often, after ini-
tiating a topic, he would sit back and let the discussion flow, only intervening
either to keep it on track or to take it in a new direction. All these programs
allowed him and his friends to gossip and act out. More than other programs, The
Simpsons allowed a wide range of discussions about family, friendship, and social
conventions. Jima and his group adopted certain episodes to cement and symbol-
ize their friendship and to include or exclude other children who wished to join.
Jima's family life was troubled. He lived alone with his father, who was deeply
depressed that they were still, several years after their arrival in the United
Kingdom, living temporarily from day to day awaiting a final decision on their
asylum application, unable to build any permanence into their lives. Just as Jima
said that he watched television so that he could make friends, he also said that he
learned about family life from shows like The Fresh Prince of Bel Air and The
Simpsons. Bachmair (1990) argued that the subjective experiences and preoccu-
pations that constitute children's personal themas and that motivate them individ-
ually are acted out and interpreted through their friendships. Television has a
symbolic resonance in this interpretative play between the social and the per-
sonal. Particular programs carry particular resonance for certain children or
friendship groups according to their personal experiences and psychological
needs. Certainly, for Jima, his favorite programs and how he drew on them in his
personal relations reflected his personal thema of family and belonging. He used
TV talk to promote his own social inclusion while also using it to protect his
privacy and to survive the difficulties in which he and his father found them-
selves. Television gave him access to experiences that he felt were lacking in his
own family life and helped him find solutions to problems or to come to terms
with his difficult circumstances.
language. She said that it had traveled with them and given them an instant point
of contact. Indeed, this contact did not need spoken language. Others spoke of
similar experiences with this and other programs. On a weekend away with the
upper school, the whole group watched The Simpsons in their separate shared
rooms. Half way through the program when they were called to dinner, they all
emerged from the chalet rooms buzzing with Simpsons talk. In one of the scenes,
Homer had shown his buttocks, and many of the children were acting this out.
Veton (11), a Kosovan boy who had fairly recently arrived in the United Kingdom
as a result of the war and was still finding his place in the class, was the most
exaggerated and persistent in his gestures, trying to gain the attention of the
group. He succeeded, and they all went to dinner together. So the acting out of a
questionable scene allowed Veton to be accepted into the group without the need
for language fluency.
The Simpsons combined both a lightness of touch and subversive humor with
the raising of serious issues that directly concerned the boys: various family
lifestyles, belonging in your neighborhood, negotiating friendships, and learning
about social institutions. The boys saw aspects of their lives and their personal
options presented in a way that was subversive and funny and therefore possible
to talk about. These examples that illustrate some of the ways the children in the
study used a particular program could apply to any children, not only to refugees
or migrants. However, these children's experiences and uses of media are differ-
ent in several ways. TV talk can overcome some language barriers, thus becom-
ing an early means of making contact. Global media products facilitate an instant
shared space through which children can participate in playground humor, narra-
tive, and character. Significant is the focus and energy that these children invested
in acquiring their knowledge and how through talking about The Simpsons, they
negotiated their differences and learned about one another. This was a safe,
shared space where they could be the same, while at the same time acknowledge
and negotiate some of their differences.
Creating Playground Games That Build Shared Histories. It was Opie and
Opie's (1959) study that first brought the drama and hidden histories of the school
playground to adults' attention. As Blatchford (1998) stated, this was a romantic
vision of creative and situated play and games. The other side of Opie and Opie's
study are those that focused on bullying and other bad behavior in the play-
ground. What happens in the playground and how children themselves perceive
it has taken on more importance as children's freedom of movement becomes
more restricted and they have fewer opportunities for social interaction. There is
also a growing realization of the importance of this peer social interaction in the
development of social skills, cultural transmission (Grugeon, 1993; Sluckin,
1981), and identity formation. Some studies have focused on specific aspects of
identity formation, particularly in relation to gender (Thorne, 1993) and sexuality
176 DE BLOCK
(Epstein, 1999). Yet there has been remarkably little focus on the role of media in
these playground interactions.
Playground games build a shared history, as do shared media memories.
Together these can become a powerful bonding force. Often the children referred
to programs they had watched when they were younger. This was generally as
part of the process of claiming greater maturity than that of younger children, but
it also served to reinforce a shared history. In the boys' group, children's (and
girls') programs such as Power Puff Girls, Rug Rats, and Teenage Ninja Turtles
were mentioned and ridiculed, although the boys did often watch them. For the
girls there was almost hysterical excitement when they remembered watching
programs such as The Tweenies or Rosie and Jim. Similarly, playground games
also performed the function of building a group memory on which they could
draw in times of tension. Many of the games had been played so often and many
of the television stories had been told so many times over long periods that they
formed a resource that the children could draw on for security to overcome cur-
rent arguments.
Rhaxma and Juba: Playing Together. Both in the family and with friends in
and out of school, television played a significant role in building autobiographical
memories or histories. Television appeared to be able to locate the children in time
and place almost as family photos or stories can (Kuhn, 1985; Spence & Holland,
1991). Some of the refugee and migrant children mentioned programs that they had
watched before they came to the United Kingdom. Rhaxma still enjoyed watching
an Italian program she had watched as a toddler although she no longer understood
much Italian. It provided her with a personal historic reference point. She had no
photos from that time, but the television program kept the memory alive. Estava and
Denis (from the boys' group, aged 11, from Portugal) often talked about what they
watched when they visited Portugal, enjoying the fact that these memories felt
unique. However, many children were reluctant to mention these " home" programs
in school, preferring to keep them as private histories.
The games formed the core of group histories. The children often played them
repeatedly over a long period, and the cumulative effect of these shared televi-
sion-based interactions formed the basis of many friendships. Many games had
set forms that were repeated day after day. One was what I called the Titanic
game, although the children made no direct reference to the film. The following
is Rhaxma's (an 8-year-old girl from Somalia) telling me again what was happen-
ing as we watched others in her class playing on the main climbing structure from
the other side of the playground.
We get trapped.
We can't open the door.
Someone, George, comes and opens the door.
He starts killing people; we want to climb up but get stuck on the tires [the play
structure is surrounded by tires].
We fall down sometimes.
We climb up and get stuck on the black things in the water.
George runs after us.
It ends when we all swim to the surface and the helicopter comes.
This was told without hesitation. Although she was not herself playing on this
occasion, she identified with the players, using we in the description. She had
played it often before, and George, acting as the master of ceremonies, played a
similar role in several of the games owned by the girls. Several weeks later when
I was making a video animation with the group about their playground games,
they talked a lot about this game, drawing the climbing frame and the figures and
discussing various occasions when they had played and various versions of the
game. It was clearly part of their group repertoire. They took varying roles, which
they all understood and which often spilled over into other games. Partly because
of the continual nature of the games, but also because of their intimacy, certain
games were reserved for certain players, as with George, and specific locations.
Juba (11) loved witch games both at home and at school, but she was clear that
the games she played at home were different and were based on other programs. In
an individual interview, she talked about how she and her home friends always
watched and played Hocus Pocus together. (Hocus Pocus, 1993, is a film about
three witches from Salem who return on Halloween. The girls' games were based
on this film). Each took the part of a particular character from the film. They played
games based on this program over a long period, but they demanded the same play-
ers. This game was not transferable to school because not all members of this group
attended the same school. The games Juba played at school also continued over a
long period. She described another witch theme game based on another program
and yet another that was based on sisters, but had a heavily school-oriented theme
of teachers who needed slaves because they could not do everything themselves.
Therefore, her relationships with both groups of friends involved either the close or
long-distance sharing of specific TV shows. It depended not only on location but
also on the playing of games that evolved over time from these TV series that they
all knew intimately. Knowledge of specific episodes was the ticket to entry, and if
a child failed this test, he or she risked exclusion.
Depending on their home circumstances, children had more or less access to
the programs. Several of the children in the study needed to invest much energy
at home in negotiating access to television. Sometimes parents regulated their
viewing and banned certain shows such as South Park, something the children
178 DE BLOCK
often found it necessary to hide from their friends. For Rhaxma, the issue was
very much related to her being a girl and a Muslim. She was not allowed to watch,
and indeed did not wish to watch, scenes with any sexual acts, yet she did wish to
be able to talk about them at school. Soap operas were often problematic, as were
some music videos, but she watched what she could and became adept at filling
in the gaps. Often it was knowledge of the genre rather than of a specific title that
allowed children to join in television-related games. The hospital drama was often
played in a particular part of the playground where the playground furniture
served as operating rooms and beds. Several programs would be combined into
one game, everyone drawing on his or her separate knowledge of the form to be
included in the action. However, some genres were less acceptable than others.
Several of the Bengali children said that they talked about the Hindi films they
watched at home only among themselves or with one of the classroom assistants
who was also Bengali. This was not only because other children would not have
seen the films but also because the form and content would be considered too
other by the children and they would risk opening themselves to ridicule. It was
safer to keep some home viewing private.
The talk brought them together and created a shared space that they could both
enjoy without explanation. They used their environment to trigger other shared
memories. The exchange also allowed other, more private topics to be broached.
Samuel (line 6) mentioned how his father enjoys the show. It also introduced the
question of cost (line 15) and expenses. As asylum seekers, both boys shared the
experience of economic hardship, a fact they generally avoided talking about
when in the company of their other friends. However, during this afternoon they
returned to this topic several times. This exchange also provided Jima with the
opportunity to show off his television expertise, to score status points, and to
locate himself firmly in his neighborhood.
I gained a sense that the national UK TV news was not enough, that there was not
enough news from their parts of the world. For example, many watched CNN
news, because it was seen to be more international. It was almost as if receiving
news from beyond the national borders in which they now lived was a necessary
part of their identities as migrants, as non-British. In addition, national and
Western news is often seen as presenting a point of view that maintains the cur-
rent world order (Boyd-Barrett, 1997). In seeking other news channels, these
families were also seeking different analyses of news events. This was so during
the Gulf War (Gillespie, 1995), it increased during the events of September 11,
2001, and it increased again during the more recent (and current) Afghan and
Iraqi wars (Al-Ghabban & Banaji, 2005).
While "connecting" and creating continuities for these families, the news also
had other powerful influences, especially on the children. I was struck by how often
groups of children would talk to one another about the international news. The
school lunchroom was often where major news items were discussed. I was spend-
ing much time in the school at the time of the war in Kosovo (1999), and a lot of
the news conversation in the lunchroom was about this topic. Veton (11), a Kosovan
boy who had recently come into Year 6, was clearly preoccupied at this time and
looked tired and pale. He was up late most nights watching CNN news with his
father. One lunchtime, a group of his class were sitting together, and one of the girls
came and joined them. She cut across all the previous conversation and started talk-
ing about the bombing that had begun the previous day. The group rapidly joined
in. Veton struggled to participate, but found this difficult because of the general
noise in the room and the language. Despite the difficulties he persisted.
All the children were interested. They made connections between what Veton
was saying and the reports they had all watched on television. He described talk-
ing to his grandparents on the telephone and what they had told his family: many
houses in their area had been burned down; they could hear shooting nearby;
people had come to their house for shelter. The group conversation moved on, but
Veton continued talking to me. He asked me for more details about the shooting
down of a helicopter, because he had not understood everything on the news. His
interpretation was that the Russians were to blame as only they had supported
Milosovec in refusing peace talks. At this point Jima came to the table and imme-
diately joined in the conversation, saying that he had been watching the news and
agreed with Veton that the Russians and the Yugoslavs were to blame. He made a
connection with what was happening at that time with the new fighting between
Eritrea and Ethiopia and with what had happened in the past.
appeared to be no forum for him to talk elsewhere outside the home. It also
allowed him to find connections with the experiences of other refugee children
and to realize that he was not alone. This was the development of a simple and
effective public space where new and old identities and relationships were being
formed. This relates directly to the arguments made by Buckingham (1996, 2000)
about participation, news, and citizenship, but it adds an international dimension.
The news sometimes had direct emotional effects on the children (and on the
research). During my fieldwork, two major items of news directly affected the
Turkish/Kurdish children. First was the capture of Abdullah Ocalan, the Kurdish
leader, in 1999, and second was a major earthquake that followed shortly afterward.
On one of my visits to Leyla (11) and Selve's (9) home, the atmosphere was clearly
tense. I could not understand why the children kept telling me about men in masks
with guns. I assumed it was a film they had been watching, but I could not under-
stand why in that case their mother was so agitated. Only later, when I reached
home and heard the news that Ocalan had been captured did I begin to understand.
The capture of Ocalan spurred intense activity in the Kurdish community in
London: Leyla and Selve's father was a part of this. They themselves attended
several events. Suddenly they felt threatened by the capture, which, although far
away, had been so vividly depicted in their living rooms. Ocalan was not captured
in Turkey, but in Kenya, so this clearly told them that they were not safe
anywhere. The world becomes a small place, and one cannot escape danger. The
atmosphere was clearly tense at home, but also in their community. There was a
police presence at some of the events they attended and they were suddenly on
the outside, unwelcome and unsafe.
Over the next few weeks, this developed for Leyla into a reworking of her
memories of Turkey. Previously she had painted life there as a golden age of
friendship and freedom, but she now described Turkey to me as a bad and dan-
gerous place. This was confirmed when the earthquake followed so soon after the
capture of Ocalan and pictures of destruction were on the screens. She now
described it as sad and said that she did not want to return there. She was having
a particularly difficult time in school, and this was clearly linked to all these
events. She must have felt that she had no home, no secure place. Selve too said
that she was crying a lot at school, although she clearly did have friends and was
coping better than her sister. Leyla described having nightmares of being chased
and captured but she did not go to her mother for comfort but into her sister's bed.
She told me that she did not talk to her mother about what was happening. This
kind of situation is described by Richman (1998) in her teacher's manual about
working with refugee children. It describes how refugee children often do not
wish to add to their parents' worries and so keep their own fears to themselves.
In a later interview, both children confirmed that they now did not wish to
return to Turkey and that although they had good memories, Turkey was really a
bad place. The complications of living with contradictory emotions about their
182 DE BLOCK
birthplace, to which they still had strong emotional connections even though they
no longer lived there, appeared to be brought into sharp focus by news items such
as these. Visual images of a place one knows can be more powerful reminders
than written or spoken words and rather than creating connections, these can
exacerbate feelings of separation, especially in times of crisis when one feels far
away and powerless. Dearly held memories come into stark opposition with the
media-portrayed realities and must make both those memories and what one has
today in one's new life feel insecure. For other children who have moved to the
United Kingdom as a result of other types of conflicts, news items can also pro-
voke profound memories, emotions, and tensions.
The main and simple point is that news events reported from and about one's
country of origin have direct effects on one's life in the new country. Children
who have direct experience of war, trauma, and forced migration are affected by
similar events elsewhere, and this will revive memories. Children who experi-
enced migration will often see world events as closely connected to their lives and
see themselves not as only part of the local environment, but, in a personal way,
part of the global environment. This was not reflected in the everyday life of the
formal school, but children needed, and often managed to find, informal spaces
where they could share these events.
Direct news events can create feelings of separation and isolation, which can
be exacerbated by how refugees and migrants are portrayed by the press of the
receiving country. Conversely, TV talk about world events, sports, and the kinds
of diasporic TV described in this chapter allow children to develop a working
understanding of the interrelationships between the local and the global. These
are opportunities to work through the multiple places of belonging and home that
are essential to the experience of migration.
Both Brah (1996) and Srebreny (2000) in different ways stressed that the experi-
ence of migration is one of parting, as well as one of new beginnings. Morley
(2000) described how people use media to maintain past connections and to build
new social relations and a sense of place in the processes of migration and how
this helps them to develop the skills they need to live in different places with dif-
ferent identities: how they learn to be multidomestic. In this chapter, I focused on
how children from varying backgrounds use and talk about television to build and
maintain social interaction and contact across cultures. I stressed how these
children are active agents in the creation of their new lives rather than passive
victims (de Block, in press). School is one of the few places where children and
young people are in continual contact with peers from other cultures and with
other beliefs. It is the most important place where young people can learn about
11. TALKING TELEVISION ACROSS CULTURES 183
each other and about other lives and beliefs. They need to find how to communicate
and socialize with one another and to do this, they draw on resources that are
readily available to them. Television and increasingly other media (particularly
the Internet and mobile telephones) facilitate such communication.
Global (US) media products such as The Simpsons may not fit easily into our
idea of a suitable vehicle for cross-cultural communication, yet they form an impor-
tant basis for much creative play and discussion between children in their social
interactions. News events may appear to be more traditionally educational, and I
described the important role these play in children's lives—both migrant and long
settled. Yet they rarely form part of classroom discussions. The informal chats that
the children engaged in about the news included revelations about their own lives
and knowledge. Yet none of these "activities" is considered to be a part of a multi-
cultural curriculum. Rather than encouraging children to present themselves and
their lives through formal demonstrations of their foreignness, such communica-
tions allow children to talk about how they are the same as and different from each
other from a basis of shared (media and other) experience. These informal pleasures
that in schools form part of playground culture have important educational impli-
cations for multicultural education.
The challenge underlying the discussion here is perhaps one of place. If we see
our schools as still promulgating a national or local identity and education for
incoming children simply in terms of a process of induction into the ways of the
receiving country, then we fail to see how all children are already moving beyond
this. They lead local lives while still maintaining global connections. How they
use media and how I described their use of television to form social relations and
build new multiple identities challenges how we have historically viewed multi-
culturalism. Schools are rarely seen as international centers of communication,
learning, and cultural exchange. This has been reserved for universities, and even
there this concept has been contradictory. Yet there is an increasing need to
respond to the global lives of all the children attending our schools and to learn
from how they are already negotiating their new status.
REFERENCES
Al-Ghabban, A., & Banaji, S. (in press). "Neutrality comes from inside us": Indian and British-Asian
perspectives on television news "After September 11." Journal of Ethnic and Migration Studies.
Anderson, B. (1983). Imagined Communities: Reflections on the Origins and Spread of Nationalism.
London: Verso.
Appadurai, A. (1990). Disjuncture and difference in the global cultural economy. In M. Featherstone
(Ed.), Global Culture: Nationalism, Globalization and Modernity (pp. 295-311). London: Sage.
Bachmair, B. (1990). Everyday life as the subject of television research. In M. Charlton &
B. Bachmair (Eds.), Communication Research and Broadcasting No. 9. (pp. 45-59). Munich,
Germany: KG Saur.
184 DE BLOCK
Blatchford, P. (1998). Social Life in School: Pupils' Experience of Breaktime and Recess from 7-16
Years. London: Falmer Press.
de Block, L. (2002). Television as a Shared Space in the Intercultural Lives of Primary Aged Children.
Unpublished doctoral dissertation, Institute of Education, University of London.
de Block, L. (in press). The place to be? Making media with young refugees. In J. Hart (Ed.), Years
of Conflict: Adolescents, Armed Conflict and Forced Migration. Oxford, UK: Berghahn Books.
Boyd-Barrett, O. (1997). Global News wholesalers as agents of globalization. In A. Sreberny-
Mohammadi, D. Winseck, J. McKenna, & O. Boyd-Barrett (Eds.), Media in Global Context: a
Reader (pp. 131-144). London: Arnold.
Brah, A. (1996). Cartographies of Diaspora: Contesting Identities. London: Routledge.
Buckingham, D. (1996). Moving Images: Understanding Children's Emotional Responses to
Television. Manchester, UK: Manchester University Press.
Buckingham, D. (2000). The Making of Citizens: Young People, News and Politics. London:
Routledge.
CHICAM. (2004). Visions Across Cultures: Migrant Children Using Visual Images to Communicate.
Report to the European Commission. Retrieved April 25, 2006, from http://www.chicam.net/
reports/download/visions_across_cultures.pdf
Epstein, D., & Steinberg, D. (1997). Love's labour: Playing it straight on the Oprah Winfrey Show. In
D. Epstein, D. Steinberg, & R. Johnson, Border Patrols: Policing the Boundaries of Heterosexuality
(pp. 32-65). London: Cassell.
Epstein, D. (1999). Sex play: Romantic significations, sexism and silences in the schoolyard. In
D. Epstein & J. Sears (Eds.), A Dangerous Knowing: Sexuality, Pedagogy and Popular Culture
(pp. 25-42). London: Cassell.
Gillespie, M. (1995). Television, Ethnicity and Cultural Change. London: Routledge.
Grugeon, E. (1993). Gender implications of playground culture. In P. Woods & M. Hammersley
(Eds.), Gender and Ethnicity in Schools: Ethnographic Accounts (pp. 11-33). London: Sage.
Jozajtis, K. (2002, February 4). Homer Simpson: The new television evangelist. The Independent, p. 4.
Kuhn, A. (1985). The Power of the Image: Essays on Representation and Sexuality. London:
Routledge.
Morley, D. (2000). Home Territories: Media, Mobility and Identity. London: Routledge.
Morley, D., & Robins, K. (1995). Spaces of Identity: Global Media, Electronic Landscapes and
Cultural Boundaries. London: Routledge.
Opie, I., & Opie, P. (1959). The Lore and Language of Schoolchildren. Oxford, UK: Clarendon Press.
Richman, N. (1998). In the Midst of the Whirlwind: A Manual for Helping Refugee Children. Stoke
on Trent, UK: Trentham Books.
Sluckin, A. (1981). Growing Up in the Playground: The Social Development of Children. London:
Routledge & Kegan Paul.
Spence, J., & Holland, P. (1991). Family Snaps: the Meaning of Domestic Photography. London:
Virago.
Sreberny, A. (2000). Media and diasporic consciousness: An exploration among Iranians in London.
In S. Cottle (Ed.), Ethnic Minorities and the Media (pp. 000-000). Milton Keynes, UK: Open
University Press.
Thorne, B. (1993). Gender Play: Girls and Boys in School. Milton Keynes, UK: Open University
Press.
Wells, P. (2002). "Tell me about your Id, when you was a Kid, Yah!" Animation and Children's
Television Culture. In D. Buckingham (Ed.), Small Screens: Television for Children (pp. 61-95).
Leicester, UK: Leicester University Press.
Chapter 12
Anna Kirova
University of Alberta, Canada
For adults, voluntary migration is a conscious decision, a choice they make in the
name of a better, brighter, and more secure future. International migration
research indicates (e.g., Ackers, 1998) that within the European Union, for exam-
ple, the majority of moves (67%) were motivated by parental (and mainly pater-
nal) employment consideration. To the extent to which teenage children were
permitted to engage in migration decision-making, it was usually within a
restricted framework of choices including the choice to remain physically located
within the family unit, or the choice of developing some independence outside of
the family. As for the younger children, it was assumed they want what their par-
ents want, and even if they express disagreement, they are expected to obey their
parents. "In no cases were children permitted any influence on decisions guiding
the family as a whole" (Ackers & Stalford, 2004, p. 123). Yet do adults under-
stand what life is like for a child whose entire universe has changed overnight?
What is the lived experience of a child when his or her home is replaced by a
185
186 KIROVA
space to live and when the new language does not serve as a guide to the world?
What are the lived experiences of immigrant children in their day-to-day living
between languages and cultures?
In this chapter I argue that the experience of immigration invites children to
ask, "In what relation do I live to the language I speak?" The opportunity that
immigration opens for asking this question is of the utmost importance in awak-
ening children's awareness of their relation to language, both the language of
home and the home of language. If language is one way of being in the world for
humankind that has an immediate presence in the world, and it is one form of dis-
course, as Heidegger (1982) suggested, then what is it to learn another language?
What is the relation of the new language to the first way of being in the world? Is
beginning to feel at home in the new country an essential aspect of feeling at
home in a "language-ing" way?
METHODOLOGY
Hermeneutic Phenomenology
The methodological framework for the investigation presented in this chapter was
hermeneutic phenomenology as a human science research methodology (van
Manen, 1990). This methodology uses questions of meaning to gain understand-
ing of the significance of lived experience. Phenomenology emphasizes lived
phenomena precisely as they are lived, because it "affirms the primacy of the life-
world as a point of departure for research over scientific explanations of the same
phenomena" (Giorgi, Fisher, & Murray, 1975, p. 99). By the life-world, phenom-
enologists mean "the everyday world as it is lived by all of us prior to explana-
tions and theoretical interpretations of any kind" (p. 99). Life-world, however, is
fundamentally intersubjective; it is a social world (Schutz & Lukmann, 1973).
Our knowledge of the world and how we understand it is not derived from the
world as it is but from daily interactions between people. These interactions are
mediated through language (Cattanach, 1997), which is the main means of com-
munication, and phenomenology tries to make this universal means more rigorous
by providing adequate contexts for all descriptions (Giorgi et al., 1975).
BETWEEN HOMES
At the beginning when we moved here we rented a house and I didn't like it.
Everything was strange ... my posters, even my toys were somehow different in my
new room. They almost didn't look like mine. I just didn't feel at home, I guess. I
knew that the house was not bad, but I missed my old house back home. (Kirova,
2001, p. 262)
other members of the family, are those who have shown the child what objects at
home are and how they are used and cared for. Home is where we can feel
together with people. What we see is commonly understood. Through the objects
we observe and how they are visible to us, we can be together with others (Van
Den Berg, 1955). One's identity includes life experiences and knowledge, which
have shaped the way the world is understood. How does one understand the
world? How does a child understand that something is? "Only where the word for
the thing has been found is the thing a thing. Only thus is it. The word alone gives
being to the thing" (Heidegger, 1982, p. 62). Thus Heidegger says, "Something is
only where the appropriate and therefore competent word names a thing as being,
and so establishes the given being as a being" (p. 63). Home, then, is where
language gives being to the things at home.
Whereas for a child everything at home is, as it has been appropriately named,
what is the world like outside home where things are nameless or where other
people's words are not understood? "Where word breaks off no thing may be" the
poet said (George in Heidegger, 1982, p. 60). What is the child's experience of a
world where the new language no longer shows the essential being of things?
Does the new language ever serve the same purpose as the mother tongue?
BETWEEN LANGUAGES
All immigrants experience not understanding what others say if they do not speak
the language of the new country. Yet if the "being of anything that is resides in
the word," and as a result, "language is the House of Being," as Heidegger (1982)
suggested, then losing one's ability to name things in the new world is more than
an inconvenience. DeSaussure argued that words achieve their meaning not just
from the things they refer to but from associations created in the mind (quoted in
Loomba, 1998). Perhaps it was this lack of associations in the new language that
made Roxanne, an 8-year-old Chinese girl who had immigrated 2 months before
her first interview, view life as meaningless. She said during her first interview,
"I have no friends here. Life has no meaning. I can't understand the teacher. I
don't know how to ask for help. I want to go home."
Learning a new language is more than learning another linguistic code. To
learn the language, says Paulo Freire (1972), is a mode of "cultural empower-
ment" and development of self-identity. Through language, all immigrants,
including children, come to understand their new world. The new language can
help them to know how best to become what they may become in the new country.
However, if Language is the House of Being, then different cultures live in differ-
ent houses. Is dialogue from house to house possible? How does a child live
between these two houses?
190 KIROVA
It was like I couldn't control what was going to come out of my mouth. It was in
my head, I could hear the appropriate sounds but when I opened my mouth, the
sounds were very different from the ones I thought they would be. I was really
embarrassed and didn't want to talk at all. It was like I couldn't trust myself any-
more. I felt so stupid. Sometimes it was very difficult for me to find the word I
needed, so I would replace it with another English or Bulgarian word. Nobody
seemed to make sense of what I was trying to say so they just ignored me or even
worse, laughed at me. It was lonely, you know. (Kirova, 2001, p. 263)
when we cannot find therightword for something that concerns us, carries us away,
oppresses or encourages us. Then we leave unspoken what we have in mind and,
withoutrightlygiving it a thought, undergo moments in which language itself has
distantly and fleetingly touched us with its essential being. (Heidegger, 1982, p. 59)
Heidegger suggested that an experience we have with language draws our attention
to our relation to language so that we may then remember this relation. So we can
ask, "In what relation do I live to the language I speak?" In speaking their mother
tongue, children, like adults, talk about many topics: a set of facts, an occurrence, a
question, a matter of concern. For example, young children's curiosity about the
world is expressed in their questions. "What is this?" "How does it work?" "Who
made it?" "Where did you get it from?" are questions that we all hear when we are
with children. Their purpose is to find out about the things in the world. "Only
because in everyday speaking language does not bring itself to language but holds
back, are we able simply to go ahead and speak a language, and so to deal with
something and negotiate something by speaking" (Heidegger, 1982, p. 59). Thus
there is an "essential self-forgetfulness" (Gadamer, 1976, p. 64) to language.
However, as the experiential accounts provided by the children show, this self-
forgetfulness does not apply to those who are learning to speak another language,
especially when this language is the only language spoken by the others outside
of their homes. In fact, immigrant children are conscious not only of what they
say, but also how they say it. An 8-year-old child, Roxanne, said this during her
third interview, only 4 months after her family came to Canada from China:
12. BETWEEN LANGUAGES AND CULTURES 191
I speak English in school now. [But] sometimes I just... ah ... I can't... and I think
hard but I can't think it out. Sometimes I can say it, sometimes I can't, and some-
times I dare not ... When I dare not express myself, I just, I just sit there, I just
stand ... I just ... stand aside. I wish my English is better.
As a new language learner, Roxanne tried to choose the right word and to think how
to say it. Sometimes she was successful; other times she was not. Native speakers,
on the other hand, rarely have to concentrate much on what to say. When we are at
home in a language, the words seem to choose us. In a self-forgetful mode of think-
ing and speaking, the interaction is truly conversational or dialogic. The mode for
using a new language implies a particular type of reflective thinking rather than
prereflective living with language. This way of speaking, of choosing the right
words, implies a reflective approach to language: an approach that involves sus-
pension from an immediate stance and results in more self-consciousness, "making
normal social interaction uncomfortable" (van Manen, 1991, p. 13). Thus the act of
speaking the new language becomes thoughtful in that "it requires that one dis-
tances oneself from the situation and contemplates the way in which to act before
acting" (van Manen, 1991, p. 17). For immigrant children, speaking the new
language is a thoughtful and distancing act that requires extracting oneself from the
immediacy of the situation. Winning (1991) suggested that in contrast, when one is
at home in a language, speaking is a "thought-less" way of being: thoughtless not
because it does not require thought, but because the thought is an incorporated in-
tuneness with the dialogic situation.
Unlike learning one's native language, learning a new language is a conscious,
purposeful activity. This is how Jennifer, a 9-year-old recent Chinese immigrant to
Canada, recalled this activity: "So every day I go home and memorize new words.
This becomes my homework. I am now working hard to learn new vocabulary." To
come to dwell in the language, however, is to come to a different level of experi-
ence. Like dwelling in a new space, dwelling in a new language requires more than
memorizing the meaning or the position of the words in a sentence to know how
use them. Learning a new language does not mean learning a corresponding system
of signs for what one already knows. This aspect is only part of the story. Rather,
"to learn a language is to increase the extent of what one can learn" (Gadamer,
1989, p. 442). Gadamer showed that language comes into being as language
through dialogue and therefore comes to an understanding through conversation:
Coming to an understanding is not a mere action, a purposeful activity, a setting up
of signs through which I transmit my will to others. Coming to an understanding as
such, rather, does not need any tools, in the proper sense of the word. It is a life
process in which a community of life is lived out. (p. 446)
How does this life process look to an immigrant child? What community of life
must he or she live out in the new world for the new language to come to being
through genuine dialogue?
192 KIROVA
However, not all making and creating in play requires naming. There is also
silence, a pause for observing the others, looking for other children to join, gather-
ing one's thoughts, or pondering ideas. "The silence that precedes and surrounds
speech is not void, but a silence with a promise of speech, a silence pregnant with
meaning, like a pause in a conversation or a gap between each ring of the tele-
phone" (Spurling, 1977, p. 51). In this silence, all speakers, both native and non-
native, are equally engaged in the "symbolic understanding" of the life world.
Perhaps this is why in play the possibility is open for "wandering back and forth
between different language realities" where a child may sense that the source of
reality is the same from which arise the fundamentally different languages of his
or her home and the language of the new home. Thus in play it becomes possible
to learn to understand the language of the others.
PEDAGOGICAL CONSIDERATIONS
To consider the pedagogical possibilities for ensuring an "equitable and just treat-
ment" (Soto & Inces, 2002) of immigrant children, we need to ask, "What are the
human possibilities—other than equal access to education, information, and
political process of a nation—of which they are deprived if their first language no
longer opens a region of relatedness for their dwelling?" Furthermore, we need to
ask, "What are the new possibilities that are open when the language of home
fades away and children are thrown into unfamiliar status of being?"
Lost Possibilities
If language is the house of being, and humans dwell in language Heidegger,
(1982), then as the experimental accounts provided by immigrant children show,
while learning of the host country, the possibility of dwelling genuinely in this
new language is absent. For example, the fact that Jennifer learned English as
homework and that for my son and for Roxanne it was difficult to find the words
they wished to use in a conversation with the others suggests that the new lan-
guage was something "out there," something they still needed to grasp. Language
was experienced as a skill yet to be acquired. Many of the children I interviewed
said that they felt inferior because of their language abilities. Mustafa, a boy from
Iran, for example, felt that he had "something less than anyone else" (Kirova,
2002). Feelings of inferiority and fear of being laughed at silenced many children
during their initial acquisition of the new language. This is how Mustafa
described his experience.
I just sat on the hill and watched the others but I couldn't even enjoy watching the
game they were playing because I didn't know what they were trying to do. I felt
like there was a hole in my chest. (Kirova, 2001, p. 264)
194 KIROVA
Feeling lonely and isolated from the rest of their peers was a common experience
among immigrant children (Kirova, 2001). Losing their sense of being at ease in
social interactions and the difficulties of finding the "right" word led children to
lose the ability to express their own personalities appropriately. They felt like
strangers, who, regardless of what they did or said, were not understood.
"Nobody understood me and nobody really cared," said Luka. Speaking their own
language and speaking another still-unfamiliar language were for immigrant
children two modes of existence in the world.
Not being at ease in the new language was experienced as being unable to
share jokes with their peers. Sharing humor creates a sense of "we-ness" in any
classroom. To share this experience with her classmates, Jenny was willing to do
"as the rest of the students do" even without understanding why they did it. This
is how she described her participation in shared activities in her second interview.
Sometimes ... sometimes the whole class is engaged in telling small jokes. Well, not
really small jokes but little something to make the others laugh. Then I would per-
form with them. I don't even know what it is about but I just follow them. I just
jump and jump, and jump there and someone falls, and gets picked up, and some-
one says something, and he laughs really loud ... They asked me to jump. They
jumped and asked me to follow. (Kirova-Petrova & Wu, 2002, p. 177)
Being unaware of the language that accompanied the physical portion of the joke,
she was just "performing with them." For a joke to be understood, there must be
a common meeting ground, which does not exist for an immigrant child. Thus
participating only physically in the world of the others did not bring a sense of
belonging or satisfaction. When asked, "Is there anything that you are happy
about in school?" Val replied, "Happy? I don't have any."
To think in one language and speak in another is somewhat like trying to make a
motel room into a home. When one is thinking in one language but speaking
another, it is the spoken language that is in a way being borrowed for a purpose; it
is not where one is "living" (Winning, 1991, p. 153).
To think in one language and have to translate this into another language in
speech means that a different mode of thinking is activated. In one's own lan-
guage, thought is accompanied by the unfolding of speech. The way of thinking
is different when that thought is not accompanied by an unfolding speech. This
can change some new language learners' mode of thinking, which was interpreted
by many of the interviewed children as being stupid. Roxanne, for example,
recalled her first month at school as follows. "I just listened in class, dumb and
foolish." This account also revealed that Roxanne felt that in school silence was
seen as a lack of knowledge or even intelligence. "Silence as a lack of something
reflects Western ways of thinking and viewing the world" (Viruru, 2001, p. 40).
12. BETWEEN LANGUAGES AND CULTURES 195
In a school system that does not honor immigrant children's first languages, these
children are always the "receivers of knowledge" (Belenky, Clinchy, Goldberger,
& Tarule, 1986), which may lead them to believe that their own way of thinking
has little or no value.
Gained Possibilities
Do new possibilities open when the first language fades away and a new one is
learned? People become able to speak genuinely and creatively once they "are
presented and together with those with whom they speak, in whose neighbor-
hoods they dwell because it is what happens to concern them at the moment"
(Heidegger, 1982, p.120); and when they listen to the accompanying opening
field of human possibilities. A person cannot remain the same after learning
another language: "A person learns a new language and, as we say, gets a new
soul ... [he] becomes in that sense a different individual" (Mead, 1934, p. 156).
Learning a language involves coming together with people in understanding a
new way of looking at things in the world. Words have a propensity to call forth
a world.
A similar self-discovery and the de-absolutization takes place in those who directly
relate with the stranger and so insert themselves into a situation analogous to the
Stranger's. When the natural attitude's blinders to Otherness fall from our eyes, we
can recognize some of our own intentionalities, including relevances, through which
196 KIROVA
the world is given to us, as never before, as well as recognizing that other
intentionalities are possible and that our own are not absolute. (p. 125)
REFERENCES
Ackers, H. L. (1998). Shifting Spaces: Women, Citizenship and Migration Within the European Union,
Bristol, UK: Policy Press.
Ackers, H. L., Stalford, H. (2004). A Community for Children? Children, Citizenship and International
Migration in the EU. Hampshire, UK: Ashgate.
Alexander, R. (1984). What are children doing when they create? Language Arts, 61(5), 4 7 8 - 7 9 .
Bakhtin, M. (1984). Problems of Dostoevsky's Poetics (C. Emerson, Trans.). Minneapolis, MN:
University of Minnesota Press.
Bakhtin, M. (1986). Speech Genres and Other Late Essays (V. W. McGee, Trans.). Austin, TX: Texas
University Press.
Barber, M. (1989). Otherness as attending to the other. In A. Dallery & C. Scott (Eds.), The Question
of the Other: Essays in Contemporary Continental Philosophy (pp. 119-126). Albany, NY: SUNY
Press.
Beekman, T. (1983). Human science as a dialogue with children. Phenomenology + Pedagogy, 1,
36-44.
Belenky, M., Clinchy, B., Goldberger, N., & Tarule, J. (1986). Women's Ways of Knowing: the
Development of Self, Voice and Mind. New York: Basic Books.
Berger, P., & Luckmann, T. (1971). The Social Construction of Reality. Harmondsworth, UK:
Penguin.
Capra, F. (2002). The Hidden Connections: Integrating the Biological, Cognitive, and Social
Dimensions into a Science of Sustainability. New York: Doubleday
Cattanach, A. (1997). Children's Stories in Play Therapy. London: Kingsley.
Freire, P. (1972). Pedagogy of the Oppressed. New York: Herder and Herder.
Gadamer, H. (1976). Philosophical Hermeneutics. Berkeley, CA: University of California Press.
Gadamer, H. (1989). Truth and Method (2nd ed.). New York: Crossroads.
Giorgi, A., Fisher, C. T., & Murray, E. (1975). An application of phenomenological method in
psychology. Duquesne Studies in Phenomenological Psychology (Vols. 1, 2). Pittsburgh, PA:
Duquesne University Press.
Godkin, M. A. (1985). Phenomenology and Psychological Research. Pittsburgh, PA: Dusquesne
University Press.
Heidegger, M. (1964). Basic Writings. New York: Harper & Row.
Heidegger, M. (1971). Poetry, Language, Thought. New York: Harper & Row.
Heidegger, M. (1982). On the Way to Language. New York: Harper & Row.
Heidegger, M. (1996). Being and Time. New York: SUNY Press.
Holland, D., Lachicotte Jr., W, Skinner, D., & Cain, C. (1998). Identity and Agency in Cultural
Worlds. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press.
Kirova, A. (2001). Loneliness in immigrant children: Implications for classroom practice. Childhood
Education, 77(5), 260-268.
Kirova, A. (2002, November). Non-verbal behaviour, coping strategies and peer acceptance in young
immigrant children: A case study. Paper presented at the National Association for the Education of
Young Children (NAEYC) Annual Conference, New York.
Kirova-Petrova, A. (1996). Exploring Children's Loneliness Feelings. Unpublished doctoral disserta-
tion, University of Alberta, Edmonton, Canada.
Kirova-Petrova, A., & Wu, J. (2002). Peer acceptance, learning English as a second language, and
identity formation in children of recent Chinese immigrants. In M. Wyness & A. Richardson (Eds.),
Exploring Cultural Perspectives, Integration and Globalization. (pp. 171-190). Edmonton, AB:
ICRN Press.
198 KIROVA
Langeveld, M. (1984). How does the child experience the world of things? Phenomenology +
Pedagogy, 2, 215-223.
Loomba, A. (1998). Colonialism/Postcolonialism. London: Routledge.
Mandell, N. (1988). The least-adult role in studying children. Journal of Contemporary Ethnography,
16, 433-467.
Mead, G. H. (1934). Mind, Self and Society. Chicago: University of Chicago Press.
Merleau-Ponty, M. (1999). Phenomenology of Perception. London: Routeledge & Kegan Paul.
Schutz, A., & Lukmann, T. (1973). The Structure of the Life-World. (R. Zaner & H. T. Engelhardt, Jr.,
Trans.). Evanston, IL: Northwestern University Press.
Searless, H. F. (1960). The Nonhuman Environment. New York: International University Press.
Soto, L. D., & Inces, R. Q. (2002). Children's linguistic/cultural human rights. In G. Cannella &
J. Kincheloe (Eds.) Kidworld: Childhood Studies, Global Perspectives, and Education
(pp. 181-197). New York: Lang.
Spurling, L. (1977). Phenomenology and the social world. London: Routledge and Kegan Paul.
Van den Berg, J. H. (1955). The phenomenological approach to psychiatry. Springfield, IL: Thomas.
van Manen, M. (1986). The Tone of Teaching. Toronto, ON: Scholastic.
van Manen, M. (1990). Researching Lived Experiences: Human Science for an Action Sensitive
Pedagogy. London, ON: Althouse Press.
van Manen, M. (1991). The Tact of Teaching: The Meaning of Pedagogical Thoughtfulness. London,
ON: Althouse Press.
Viruru, R. (2001). Colonized through language: The case of early childhood education. Contemporary
Issues in Early Childhood, 2(1), 31-46.
Wenkart, A. (1961). Regaining identity through relatedness. American Journal of Psychoanalysis. 21,
227-233.
Winning, A. (1991). The Language of Home and the Home of Language: Pedagogical Considerations
for ESL Practice. Unpublished doctoral dissertation, University of Alberta, Edmonton, Canada.
Introduction to Part IV
Far From Home With
Fluctuating Hopes
199
200 PART IV
by families and children who are involuntary or forced migrants. Forced migration
refers to a person or family being coerced to move away from home or the home
region. It often connotes violent coercion and is used interchangeably with the
terms displacement or forced displacement. If the displaced person has crossed an
international border and falls under one of the relevant international legal instru-
ments, he of she is considered a refugee. Convention refugees are defined as
people who leave their country because of a well-founded belief that they will be
persecuted because of their religious beliefs, race, nationality, political opinion,
or membership in a given group. Humanitarian-designated refugees are defined
as people who are personally affected by situations including civil war and armed
conflict. Asylum seekers is another term used to define people who are compelled
to leave their home countries because of external aggression or domination or by
events that seriously undermine public order (United Nations High Commissioner
for Refugees [UNHCR], 2005).
According to the author of chapter 13, Australia is the only Western country to
enforce a policy of mandatory detention of asylum seekers who arrive in the
country without documents, irrespective of their age or family situation. Although
changes were made to the system in 2002 so that now approximately half the
children can attend local schools outside the detention compound, other children
are still living and attending school in the detention centers and are isolated from
mainstream culture. The author recommends that education be pursued as a pro-
tective factor for displaced children and their families.
The other three chapters in part IV focus on the experiences of refugee families
and children who struggle to understand and adjust to mainstream education sys-
tems in the host countries of the United States and Canada. The apparent physical
differences in the educational setting experienced by these two groups of refugee
children become less salient when one reads the authors' description of the diffi-
culties that the children face in these settings. Lack of adequate psychological sup-
port for the children who have experienced trauma, insufficient funding for learning
the new language, inappropriateness of the curriculum, and lack of appropriate cur-
riculum resources are common challenges faced by the refugee children who par-
ticipated in the studies presented in part IV. In addition to the major adaptation
barrier of discrimination, refugee children may have negative memories that stall
their adjustment. Refugee children between 3 and 10 years of age on arrival in the
new host nation will remember their country, the war, and the long, difficult trip. It
may take time, but they will learn English, and their experiences of trauma and
change can be dealt with orally. Asher (1984) suggested that for refugee students,
school personnel must be particularly careful to be gentle and soft spoken because
of the experiences refugee children bring with them and because the children may
not be prepared for the directness found in the new culture.
Chapter 14 points to the difficulties faced by school personnel in addressing
the needs of refugee children, partly because by law teachers and school districts
INTRODUCTION TO PART IV 201
in the United States are not allowed to ask for immigrant status. This lack of
information creates challenges in developing a support system to deal with
refugee children's experiences of trauma. Unfortunately, this information is not
readily obtainable through parents, who, out of fear of deportation or other legal
consequences, may not always wish to tell about their child's experiences. The
authors of this chapter provide a number of strategies that schools can use to sup-
port the adjustment of refugee children to schools in the United States.
It is not only children who struggle with the inadequacy of education systems.
Parents also struggle to help their children meet their hopes and aspirations for
education in the host countries. The need for changes in educational policy and
practice to meet the unique needs of refugee children and their families is stressed
by all authors in part IV. The role of the school in helping parents become advo-
cates for their children is emphasized in chapter 15. The study presented in this
chapter indicates that minority parents who are marginalized in society are often
powerless to change programs in the schools their children attend and are
excluded from the process of making decisions about their children's education.
The author suggests that schools need to consider the students' and parents'
opinions about the structure of ESL programs and their cultural and linguistic
backgrounds.
There are many sources of stress for refugee families undergoing accultura-
tion, and these may include anxiety about family and friends left behind, under-
employment and unemployment, cultural conflict, and changing family roles.
Chapter 16 presents a study conducted with parents of preschool children from
seven refugee communities now living in large city in western Canada, including
Afghan, African French-speaking, Cambodian, Eritrean, Kurdish, Somali, and
Sudanese parents. Each ethnocultural group offered information about resettle-
ment issues that affect refugee families in the process of adjusting to a new cul-
ture. The conflicting values and beliefs that newcomer parents face are revealed
through first-person narrative. A strong theme running through parents' com-
ments is a desire to see their children receive a "good" education.
The chapters in part IV do not differentiate between the experiences of male
and female refugees in general and refugee children in particular with regard to
their adjustment to the host culture. However, it is worth noting the suggestion
from Corson (1998) that the least visible groups in pluralist societies are girls
from certain immigrant and refugee cultures. They may be doubly marginalized:
first as members of different cultures and then as females in those cultures. He
also points out that their invisibility in education is increased by their marginal
place in research and practice.
Although schools may not be responsible for such interventions, school per-
sonnel need to be aware of the possibility of symptoms of posttraumatic stress
disorder in refugee children and help the family to find appropriate support
services. Migration Watch UK (2003) stated that coordinated assistance of various
202 PART IV
REFERENCES
Ascher, C. (1984). The social and psychological adjustment of Southeast Asian refugees. ERIC/CUE
Digest, 21, 1-4. Accession No. ED252638. New York: ERIC Clearinghouse on Urban Education.
Retrieved April 25, 2006, from http://www.ericdigests.org/pre-921/asian.htm
Corson, D. (1998). Changing Education for Diversity. Milton Keynes, UK: Open University Press.
Global Commission on International Migration (GCIM). (2005). Migration at a glanct. Retrieved
October 21, 2005, from http://www.gcim.org/attachements/Migration%20at%20a%20glance.pdf
Jaycox, L. H., Stein, B. D., Kataoka, S. I. H., Wong, M., Fink, A., Escudero, R, & Zaragoza, C.
(2002). Violence exposure, posttraumatic stress disorder, and depressive symptoms among recent
immigrant schoolchildren. Journal of the American Academy of Child and Adolescent Psychiatry,
41, 1104-1110.
Migration Watch UK. (2003). Education: The Impact ofAsylum Seekers, 28 February 2003. Retrieved
September 17, 2005, from http://www.migrationwatchuk.co.uk/frameset.asp?menu=publica-
tions&page=publications.asp
Rong, X. L., & Preissle, J. (1998). Educating Immigrant Students: What We Need to Know to Meet
the Challenges. Thousand Oaks, CA: Corwin Press.
Segal, A. (1993). An Atlas of International Migration. New Providence, NJ: Hans Zell.
United Nations High Commissioner for Refugees (UNHCR). (2005). Definitions and Obligations.
Retrieved October 21, 2005, from http://www.unhcr.org.au/basicdef.shtml
Chapter 13
Transnational Displacement of
Children: An Australian Perspective
Ann Farrell
Queensland University of Technology, Australia
203
204 FARRELL
BACKGROUND
While flows of people and goods have take place across history, it is the changed
intensity and speed of such flows which present challenges for social relations in the
current period ... some flows are perceived and experienced as smooth and benign,
and others as turbulent and disruptive. (Christie & Sidhu, 2002, pp. 1-2)
Children are seen as at particular risk (Danby & Farrell, 2004) in the new
global order, although none more so than children experiencing transnational
displacement.
Early childhood services are often at the frontline of educating and caring for
these children and their families. These services have the potential to improve
resilience and to ameliorate the negative consequences of displacement by devel-
oping a sense of community, social integration, and social engagement. In this
chapter, I focus on the important work of early childhood professionals with one
group of displaced persons, that is, refugee children in Australia.
REFUGEE CHILDREN
Refugees are defined broadly as people who have fled or been driven from their
countries of origin and cannot return for fear of persecution, war, or oppression.
Ironically, although the Australian government makes an annual contribution to
the UNHCR, Australia ranked 17th of 21 industrialized countries receiving
refugees (HREOC, 2003). In recent years, Australia has earned the reputation as
the only Western country to enforce a policy of mandatory detention of asylum
seekers who arrive without entry documents irrespective of their age or family sit-
uation (Mares, Newman, Dudley, & Gale, 2002; Silove, Steel, & Watters, 2000).
Amnesty International (2001) indicated that 1,103 children were held in immi-
gration detention centers in Australia in 2000-2001 with no legal limit placed on
the duration of their detention. Most unauthorized-arrival children and families
13. RESETTLEMENT OF CHILDREN IN AUSTRALIA 205
detained under Australia's mandatory detention laws have been held in secure
immigration detention facilities such as Woomera, Port Hedland, Curtin, and
Baxter (Human Rights and Equal Opportunity Commission [HREOC], 2004).
These children often arrive in Australia having experienced war, natural disaster,
genocide, or poverty and may also have experienced people-smuggling, currently
one of the most lucrative global criminal activities (Szwarc, 2001).
Australian Human Rights lawyer Rayner (2001) referred to this new class of "ille-
gitimate" children, whom she argues Australia has treated badly and unethically.
A child, who, from her dress and appearance, belongs to a despised and feared reli-
gion, presents to an Australian immigration official. She has no travel documents or
identity papers. She may be with someone who says she is her mother or, perhaps,
she arrives on her own. She doesn't speak English. She doesn't say much at all. She
seems jumpy. Where she came from has been in upheaval, poor, divided, disturbed.
Law and order has broken down: there are arbitrary arrests and detention, possibly
torture and/or executions or even war. She has probably seen terrible things ... so
we lock her up. (p. 1)
The centre where this family have been detained for at least eight months was
indeed totally barren, the only small area of grass and shrubs being around the
offices, an area not accessible to detainees. The compounds are barren, harsh areas
of dust and stones with no shade, surrounded by two fences of razor wire.... a few
children were seen standing in the open or hanging on to the fences, moving rub-
bish bins from one place to another, kicking stones. There was nothing for them to
206 FARRELL
do ... many of the children, even up to the age of 12 are incontinent day and night,
and many mattresses lay outside in the sun against the fences, (p. 93)
Many refugee children show adverse physical and psychological sequelae of their
migration-related trauma, from their premigration dislocation to the ongoing
stressors of resettlement and acculturation in a new country (Beiser & Hou, 2000;
Gorst-Unsworth & Goldenberg, 1998; Miller et al., 2002; Silove et al., 1998;
Sinnerbrink Silove, Field, Steel, & Manicavasagar, 1997, see Table 1 for a sum-
mary of selected Australian research that demonstrates the effect of migration-
related stress on children).
Mares et al. (2002) also cited the case of a couple with a 2-year-old and a
5-month-old baby born in detention. The detained parents reported in an inter-
view, "The toddler doesn't trust us anymore. He can't play, he won't eat, he can't
sleep" (p. 912).
Clearly the daily routines and everyday interactions within the family are com-
promised by detention, and the protective factors that may strengthen these
children's ability to cope with displacement are significantly reduced. This
picture of family life in detention is consistent with compelling evidence that
children of depressed parents are at risk of developing psychological difficulties
later in life. In the case of refugees, this relationship is found to be particularly
strong in relation to the mother's mental health (Adjukovic & Adjukovic, 1993;
Ekblad, 1993; Miller, 1996).
For those who are living with parents, the effect of living in detention may be
moderated to some extent, but this depends on the parents' ability to cope (Garbarino
et al., 1991). The entire family is affected, because children learn that it is not the
parents who are in control, but someone else (Comerford et al., 1991). Conversely,
where conditions enable refugees to maintain traditional roles such as a parent going
to work, the effects are less severe (Markowitz, 1996; McCallin, 1993).
In summary, the Australian Psychological Society (2004) concluded that
detention is a negative socialization experience. It accentuates developmental
risk, it threatens the relationship between children and significant caregivers, it
limits educational opportunities, it has traumatic effects on child refugees and
reduces their potential to recover from trauma, and it exacerbates the effects of
other trauma. Given this evidence, it is imperative for early childhood profes-
sionals working with these children to seek to provide the protective factors that
may increase their resilience and reduce the risk of further harm.
McKelvey et al. 2002 519 Vietnamese children and 23 parents Prevalence rates of 14%—21%
living in Western Australia, focused on psychiatric disorders in children
children's psychiatric disorders; researchers and adolescents; higher rates
used translators/community leaders in among refugee than non-refugee
data collection (Diagnostic Interview children
Schedule for Children [DISC-C])
Zwi, Herzberg, 2003 Case study of distressed 6-year-old boy 6-year-old was in a state of distress and
Dossetor & Field held in detention preoccupied by imprisonment and the
violence he had witnessed; child
improved when removed from detention
with rapid deterioration on return
Sawyer et al. 2000 National mental health survey of 4500 Paucity of information on the mental
children (4-7 years), adolescents and parents. health of children and adolescents
Parent questionnaire assessed mental health living in non-English speaking
problems (Youth Self-Report & Child families
Behaviour Checklist); focus on health related
quality of life, health-risk behavior and
service utilization
207
(Continued)
208
TABLE 1 (Continued)
Sultan & O'Sullivan 2001 Focused on psychological well- Children exposed to hunger strikes,
being of 10-15 children in a self-harm and suicide attempts;
detention center wide range of psychological
disturbances in children: separation
anxiety, nocturnal enuresis, sleep
disturbances; children of parents who
reached the tertiary depressive stage
were vulnerable to developing a range
of psychological disorders
Silove 2002 Review of Australian studies examining Research found high rates of trauma,
mental health consequences of post-traumatic stress disorders
contemporary Australian policies for (PTSD) and depression in asylum
asylum seekers seekers
HREOC: National 2004 346 submissions from leading individuals 53 breaches of the Convention on the
Inquiry into Children and organizations representing education, Rights of the Child with regard to
in Immigration law, health professions and human services children's issues
Detention
13. RESETTLEMENT OF CHILDREN IN AUSTRALIA 209
Although external education may give refugee and migrant children access to lan-
guage and social networks, this also may accentuate the cultural divide between
the center and the school (Christie & Sidhu, 2002).
Children's use of their home language is an important part of their identity
construction and capacity to cope with adversity. Yet opportunities for them to
learn both in their language of origin and in the language of their new context are
severely compromised by detention. Experiencing the loss of his or her first lan-
guage, culture, and family values can have serious, long-term consequences for
children, such as loss of feelings of self-worth, loss of motivation to learn, and
breakdown of family relationships (HREOC, 2004). These are key factors that
need to be taken into consideration in the early childhood education and care of
displaced children, whether in detention or in the general community.
HREOC (2004) noted that education in detention was typically conducted in
isolated, harsh, and physically intimidating circumstances despite the existence of
performance measures for the assessment of education such as the Immigration
Detention Standards (IDS). The IDS require that all detainees have access to edu-
cation programs and that social and educational programs appropriate to the
child's age and abilities be available to all children in detention. In this framework
services for children are said to include the following:
Yet despite this framework, there is skepticism that the services exist. HREOC
(2004) challenged whether these children in fact were provided with education
of a standard comparable to that provided in the Australian community. HREOC
highlighted three key difficulties in providing a full curriculum to children in
immigration detention. First, they challenged the appropriateness of a standard
Australian curriculum for the special needs of detainee children. Second, they
noted that the transitory nature of the detainee population worked against effective
education. Third, they cited a severe lack of appropriate curriculum resources.
13. RESETTLEMENT OF CHILDREN IN AUSTRALIA 211
HREOC (2004) noted that the curriculum taught in detention centers fell far short
of that provided in Australian schools for similar children. In particular, no
attempts were made to adapt existing state curricula in an ESL framework. In
addition, they advocated the key principles that should drive the education of
these children until they should be released from detention: flexibility, recogni-
tion of the child within the family, sound educational experiences, respect for
linguistic and cultural rights, and specially qualified staff suited to work with
migrant and refugee children.
It is important to realize that many children who are educated in the Australian
community have had similar experiences to those of detainee children. For exam-
ple, children who arrive in Australia with visas and seek asylum and live in the
community on bridging visas, arrive under Australia's Refugee and Humanitarian
Program, or are released from detention and live in the community on temporary
protection visas all attend Australian schools. So too these children may have
culturally and linguistically diverse backgrounds and significant educational,
emotional, and social needs (Phillips & Lorimer, 2003). Educational programs for
these children also need to be designed to address severe mental health issues that
affect their ability and willingness to participate in regular education (Mares
et al., 2002). This requires customized programs rather than a one-size-fits-all
approach. Although Australia has begun to develop and implement such policies
and practices, there is still a considerable way to go to achieve equitable educa-
tion for young displaced children.
Early childhood practitioners cannot fail to the see the denial of children's rights and
take up their role to speak our in their defence ... the committee who worked to
develop the Early Childhood Australia Code of Ethics (2004) could hardly have imag-
ined a time when the voice of early childhood advocates was so desperately needed.
Children continue to be detained in prison-like conditions despite numerous reports,
a supposed change in policy and a growing concerned with the community. The voice
of concern and the shouts of injustice need to be heard. Not just from those who line
the streets and march, but those who know what isrightand just for children and can
speak with authority about what they know—early childhood educators. The
commitment we have to children must be for all children, of not just those enrolled in
centres and services, but for those we will never see. (p. 14)
Although there is evidence of advocacy from the early childhood sector and of
service-based attempts to address these pressing issues, rigorous, longitudinal
research involving these children, families, and communities is also needed to
generate meaningful, evidence-based practice that will advance children's life
chances beyond settlement. Waniganayake (2001) concurred in the urgent need
for research into refugee children's adaptation to life in their new country and the
part played by early childhood services in this process.
. What are the qualifications and training of staff who care for children and
their families in Australian detention? What is their knowledge of the issues
faced by people who have been subjected to traumatic experiences and are
suffering high degrees of anxiety, stress, and uncertainty?
214 FARRELL
. What provisions have been made for assessment of children's specific learning
needs before their attending formal educational programs?
. What provisions have been made for the care of children who are suffering
chronic or vicarious trauma as a result of witnessing threatening behavior?
. What critical-incident debriefing procedures are in place for children who
have witnessed their parents, other family members, or social acquaintances
engaging in acts of self-harm or being harmed? What support is in place for
children who themselves have been harmed or have engaged in self-harmful
acts while in detention?
. What provisions are in place for parenting programs that provide support for
parents of children under extremely difficult psychological and physical
circumstances?
. What efforts are being made to provide parents with the opportunity to
model traditional family roles for children such as working to earn an
income, meal preparation, other household duties, and so forth?
. What opportunities are in place for the assessment of safety issues such as
bullying and sexual or physical abuse of children or their mothers in deten-
tion centers?
. How are resources distributed to children and families in detention centers?
. What socialization opportunities are available either in detention centers or
in the wider community for children to develop skills and independence,
engage in social activities, participate in cultural traditions, and communi-
cate and interact with same-age peers and adults from similar ethnic and
religious backgrounds?
. What access do children and families have to videos, music, and entertain-
ment from their cultures of origin?
. What provisions are in place to ensure the maintenance of privacy in a man-
ner commensurate with usual cultural practice?
. What is the government's rationale for continuing to implement a policy of
mandatory detention of child asylum seekers that is likely to have a perni-
cious effect on these children's health and well-being?
Although policies about the detention of these children and families may change
over time (e.g., a policy shift to have such children placed in the community
rather than in detention centers), the challenges associated with their care and
education persist.
CONCLUSION
REFERENCES
Adjukovic, M., & Adjukovic, D. (1993). Psychological wellbeing of refugee children. Child Abuse
and Neglect, 17, 843-854.
Andreoni, H. (1998). Necessity is the mother of invention. Australian and Eritrean early childhood
educators sharing skills and experiences. Australian Journal of Early Childhood 25(1), 5-9.
Australian Psychological Society. (2004). Detention of Children of Refugee Families in Australia: The
Australian Psychological Society's Position Statement Submitted to the Australian Human Rights
and Equal Opportunity Commission's Inquiry Into Children in Immigration Detention. Retrieved
April 3, 2005, from http://www.psychology.org.au/news/media_releases/10.l_58.asp
Beck, U. (1992). Risk Society: Towards a New Modernity. London: Sage.
Beiser, M. (1988). Influences of time, ethnicity, and attachment on depression in Southeast Asian
refugees. American Journal of Psychiatry, 145, 46-51.
Beiser, M., & Hou, F. (2000). Language acquisition, unemployment and depressive disorder among
Southeast Asian refugees: A 10-year study. Social Science and Medicine, 53, 1321-1334.
Birman, D., Trickett, E. J., Vinokurova, A. (2002). Acculturation and adaptation of Soviet Jewish
refugee adolescents: Predictors of adjustment across life domains. American Journal of Community
Psychology, 30(5), 585-607.
Christie, P., & Sidhu, R. (2002). Responding to globalisation: Refugees and the challenges facing
Australian schools. Mots Pluriels, 21. Retrieved March 11, 2005, from http://www.arts
.uwa.edu.au/MotsPluriels/MP2102pcrs.html
Chung, R. C , Bemak, E, & Wong, S. (2000). Vietnamese refugees' levels of distress, social support
and acculturation: Implications for mental health counselling. Journal of Mental Health
Counselling, 22(2), 150-161.
Comerford, S. A., Armour-Hileman, V. L., & Waller, S. R. (1991). Defenceless in detention.
Vietnamese children living amid increased violence in Hong Kong. Hong Kong: Refugee Concern
Hong Kong.
Danby, S., & Farrell, A. (2004). Accounting for young children's competence in educational research:
New perspectives on research ethics. Australian Educational Researcher, 31(3), 35-49.
Davidson, N., Skull, S., Burgner, D., Kelly, P., Raman, S., Silove, D., Steel, Z., Vora, R., & Smith, M.
(2004). An issue of access: Delivering equitable health care for newly arrived refugee children in
Australia. Journal of Paediatric Child Health, 40, 569-575.
Department of Education, Science and Training (DEST). (2006). English as a second language—New
arrivals (ESL-NA) programme. Retrieved March 20, 2006, from http://www.dest.gov.au/sectors/
216 FARRELL
school_education/programmes_funding/programme_categories/special_needs_disadvantage/english_
as_a_second_language_new_arrivals_programmehome.htm
Department of Immigration and Multicultural and Indigenous Affairs (DIMIA). (2003). Fact sheets.
Retrieved May 10, 2006, from http://www.immi.gov.au/refugee/migrating refugeehtm
Devereaux, J. (2004). Lessons from behind the wire. Australian Educator, 41, 14-17.
Dewey, J. (1958). Experience and Nature. New York: Dover.
Early Childhood Australia. (2004). Code of Ethics. Canberra, ACT: ECA. Retrieved April 3, 2005,
from http://www.earlychildhoodaustralia.org.au/abtus_resources_cofe.htm
Ekblad, S. (1993). Psychosocial adaptation of children while housed in a Swedish refugee camp:
Aftermath of the collapse of Yugoslavia. Stress Medicine, 9, 159-166.
Elbedour, S., ten Bensel, R., & Bastien, D. T. (1993). Ecological integrated model of children of war:
Individual and social psychology. Child Abuse and Neglect, 17, 805-819.
Farrell, A. (2004). Child protection policy perspectives and reform of Australian legislation. Child
Abuse Review, 13, 234-245.
Garbarino, J., Kostelny, K., & Dubrow, N. (1991). What can children tell us about living in danger?
American Psychologist, 46, 376-383.
Giddens, A. (2001). Sociology (4th ed.). Cambridge, UK: Polity Press.
Gorst-Unsworth, C , & Goldenberg, E. (1998). Psychological sequelae of torture and organised
violence suffered by refugees from Iraq. British Journal of Psychiatry, 172, 90-94.
Harding, R. K., & Looney, J. G. (1977). Problems of Southeast Asian children in a refugee camp.
American Journal of Psychiatry, 134, 407-111.
Human Rights and Equal Opportunity Commission (HREOC). (1998-9). Those who've come across
the seas: The report of the Commission's Inquiry into the detention of unauthorised arrivals.
Canberra: HREOC.
Human Rights and Equal Opportunity Commission (HREOC). (2002). National Inquiry Into Children
in Immigration Detention. Retrieved May 23, 2006, from http://www.hreoc.gov.au/human_rights_
detention/19th_Sept.htm
Human Rights and Equal Opportunity Commission (HREOC). (2003). 'Submission to National
Inquiry into Children in Immigration Detention from The Australian Psychological Society'
Retrieved 24th May 2006 from http://www.humanrights.gov.au/human_rights/children_detention/
submissions/aus_psch_society.html
Human Rights and Equal Opportunity Commission (HREOC). (2004). "A Last Resort?" Report of
the National Inquiry Into Children in Immigration Detention. Retrieved March 24, 2005, from
http://www.humanrights.gov.au/human_rights/children_detention_report/
Hydon, C. (2004). The erosion of children's rights: A plea to the early childhood sectors. Every Child,
10(3), 14.
James, A. Jenks, C , & Prout, A. (1998). Theorising childhood. Cambridge, UK: Polity Press.
Mares, S., Newman, L., Dudley, M., & Gale, F. (2002). Seeking refuges, losing hope: Parents and
children in immigration detention. Australasian Psychiatry, 10(2), 91-96.
Markowitz, F. (1996). Living in limbo: Bosnian Muslim refugees in Israel. Human Organization, 55,
127-132.
McCallin, M. (1992). Living in detention: A review of the psychological wellbeing of Vietnamese
children in the Hong Kong detention centres. Geneva: International Catholic Child Bureau.
McCallin, M. (1993). The psychosocial wellbeing of Vietnam minors in the Philippines: A compari-
son with Hong Kong. Geneva, Switzerland: International Catholic Child Bureau.
McKelvey, R., Sang, D., Baldassar, L., Davies, L., Roberts, L., & Cutler, N. (2002). The prevalence
of psychiatric disorders among Vietnamese children and adolescents. Medical Journal of Australia,
777(8), 4 1 3 - 1 7 .
McLennan, W. (1997). Mental health and wellbeing: Profile of adults, Australia. Canberra Act:
Department of Immigration, Multicultural and Indigenous Affairs. Retrieved May 10, 2003, from
http://www.abs.gov.aU/AUSSTATS/abs@nsf/DetailsPage/4326.019977OpenDocument
13. RESETTLEMENT OF CHILDREN IN AUSTRALIA 217
Miller, K. E. (1996). The effects of state terrorism and exile on indigenous Guatemalan refugee
children: A mental health assessment and an analysis of children's narratives. Child Development,
67, 89-106.
Miller, L., Weine, S., Ramie, A., Brkic, N., Djuric-Bejdic, Z., & Smajkic, A. (2002). The relative con-
tribution of war experiences and exile-related stressors to levels of psychological distress among
Bosnian refugees. Journal of Traumatic Stress, 15, 377-387.
Oakley, A. (1994). Women and children first and last: Parallels and differences between women's and
children's studies. In B. Mayall (Ed.), Children's Childhoods: Observed and Experienced. London:
Falmer.
Ozdowski, S. (2002). Education of detained asylum seeker children and young people at state
government schools. Media release. Retrieved March 24, 2005, from http://www.humanrights.
gov.au/media_releases/2002/65_02.html
Office of Economic and Statistical Research, Queensland Treasury. (2002). Demographic trends and
implications for Queensland. Brisbane, Queensland, Australia: Author.
Phillips, J., & Lorimer, C. (2003). Children in Detention. Retrieved March 17, 2005, from
http://www.aph.gov.au/library/intguide/SP/Childrendetention.htm
Rayner, M. (2001, October). Political Pinballs. The Plight of Child Refugees in Australia. Walter
Murdoch Lecture. Canberra, Australia. Retrieved April 3, 2005, from the Real Rights for Refugee
Children Web site http://home.vicnet.net.au/~rrrc/news.htm
Refugee Resettlement Advisory Council. (RRAC) (2002). Strategy for Refugee Young People: An
Overview. Canberra, Australia: Department of Immigration and Multicultural and Indigenous Affairs.
Rutter, J., & Jones, C. (Eds.). (1998). Refugee Education. Mapping the Field. London: Trentham
Books.
Sawyer, M., Arney, E, Baghurst, P., Kosky, R., Clark, J., Graetz, B., Waites, L., Nurcombe,
B., Raphael, B., Patton, G., Prior, G., & Zubrick, S. (2000). Mental Health of Young People in
Australia: Child and Adolescent Component of the National Survey of Mental Health and Well-
Being. Canberra, Australia: Mental Health and Special Programs Branch, Commonwealth
Department of Health and Aged Care.
Schweitzer, R., Melville, F., & Steele, Z. (2004). The Relationship Between Trauma, Family
Connectedness and Emotional Wellbeing in Resettled Refugees From the Horn of Africa. Paper in
preparation based upon an Honours Thesis (F. Melville). Queensland University of Technology.
Silove, D. (2002). The asylum debacle in Australia: A challenge for psychiatry. Australian and New
Zealand Journal of Psychiatry, 36(3), 290-296.
Silove, D., Steel, Z., McGorry, P., & Mohan, P. (1998). Trauma exposure, postmigration stressors and
symptoms of anxiety, depression and post traumatic stress in Tamil asylum seekers: Comparison
with refugees and immigrants. Acta Psychiatrica Scandinavica, 97, 175-181.
Silove, D., Steel, Z., & Watters, C. (2000). Policies of deterrence and the mental health of asylum
seekers. Journal of American Medical Association, 284, 604-611.
Sinnerbrink, I., Silove, D., Field, A., Steel, Z., & Manicavasagar, V. (1997). Compounding of remigra-
tions trauma and postmigration stress in Asylum Seekers. Journal of Psychology, 131(5), 463-70.
Steel, Z., Silove, D., Phan, T., & Bauman, A. (2002). Long-term effect of psychological trauma on the
mental health of Vietnamese refugees resettled in Australia: A population based study. Lancet, 360,
1056-1062.
Sultan, A., & O'Sullivan, K. (2001). Psychological disturbances in asylum seekers held in long term
detention: A participant observer account. Medical Journal of Australia, 175, 593-596.
Szwarc, J. (2001). Faces of racism. London: Amnesty International.
United Nations Convention and Protocols in Relation to the Status of Refugees (1951). Retrieved
April 2, 2005, from http://www.unher.org/cgi-bin/texis/vtx/protect/opendoc.pdf?tbl=PROTECTION&
id=3bbbc2aal0
United Nations Convention on the Rights of the Child (1989). Retrieved April 2, 2005, from http://
www.ohchr.org/english/law/pdf/crc.pdf
218 FARRELL
United Nations High Commission for Refugees (UNHCR). (2005). Statistics. Refugees, Asylum-
Seekers and Others of Concern to UNHCR. Retrieved April 3, 2005, from http://www.unhcr.ch/
cgi-bin/texis/vtx/basics/opendoc.htm?tbi=BASICS&page=home&id3b028097c
Universal Declaration of Human Rights 1948. Retrieved April 2, 2004, from http://www.un.org/
Overview/rights.html
Waniganayake, M. (2001). From playing with guns to playing with rice: The challenges of working
with refugee children. An Australian perspective. Childhood Education, 77(5), 289-294.
Zwi, K., Herzberg, B., Dossetor, D., & Field, J. (2003). A child in detention. Dilemmas faced by
health professionals. Medical Journal of Australia, 179(6), 319-322.
Chapter 14
Judit Szente
University of Central Florida, USA
James Hoot
State University of New York at Buffalo, USA
Hassan is 11 years old and has been living in New York State for 3 years. He was
born in Afghanistan, but when he was only 3, his father was killed in the war.
Fearing for their lives, Hassan's mother took him and his brother to Pakistan
hoping for help from the United Nations. The help arrived in 5 years, when the
family could receive refugee status and fly to the United States. Being a single
woman, Hassan's mother had to go through nine rigorous interviews until they were
granted the right to go to one of the refugee resettlement cities in the United States.
During their first month in Buffalo, NY, 8-year-old Hassan and his brother had to
move from school to school because they were unable to receive English as a
Second Language services. Eventually a public school was found that could offer
the best possible accommodations. Hassan was scared of school at first, but he felt
safe when he learned that "teachers don't hit children in school." He said, "I was
afraid that schools would have weapons and they could kill us." Three years later,
however, he is well adjusted and is eager to become a dentist one day.
This story is just one of the many that describe the lives of refugee families and
children. Although each story is unique, the stories share some common elements.
219
220 SZENTE AND HOOT
Most refugee families flee their homes because of war or political uprising and
have to reduce their belongings to what they can carry with them. Typically, most
of their previous experiences are nothing more than "hiding and running for their
lives," as one of the refugee parents stated. Further, many parents and children
have witnessed friends or family being murdered or know someone who left for
water and did not return.
According to Church World Service (CWS) statistics, currently the number of
refugees and asylum seekers in the world totals 11.9 million. Each year since 2001,
the United States has established an "admission ceiling" of 70,000 refugees. During
2004, the number of actual arrivals was 52,826 (CWS). Between 1997 and 2006 a
total of 51,257 refugees were resettled in New York State Office of Temporary and
Disability Assistance, 2006. Of these, 8,550 were 18 years old or younger. Once
admitted to the United States, the nation "upholds the rights of refugees" and pro-
vides refugee families with "food stamps, low income housing, and educational ser-
vices" (Arlington Diocese Office of Resettlement, 2004, p. 3).
According to Anderson, Hamilton, Moore, Loewen, and Frater-Mathieson
(2004), there are currently approximately 6 million refugee children in the world.
Some of these children are separated from their families, and their number increases
each year. After reaching the United States, refugee children face additional chal-
lenges. Hamilton (2004) stated, "One of the major tasks facing the refugee child
when arriving in a new country is to adapt to a new school environment." (p. 83).
For refugee children to adjust successfully, however, educational systems also need
to make adequate adjustments. Anderson et al. (2004) stated,
Although by law teachers and school districts are not allowed to ask for immi-
gration status, principals and teachers usually know which children are sponsored
by refugee resettlement agencies.
Rutter (1994) further suggested that schools should make a host of provisions
to welcome the new students appropriately. These provisions include making sure
that (a) an educational policy (or government refugee policy) is in effect for
refugee children; (b) teachers have at least basic knowledge of multicultural and
English as a Second Language (ESL) education, as well as the characteristics of
refugees; and (c) an overall positive educational framework is established in the
school that prepares children "for life in a multi-ethnic democracy" (p. 53).
As the statistics indicate, many refugee children find themselves in our
schools. Classroom teachers, however, often do not feel sufficiently prepared to
meet the unique needs of these children (Minnesota Department of Children,
Families and Learning, 2002). As also indicated earlier, schools systems often are
14. NEEDS OF REFUGEE SCHOOL CHILDREN 221
The purpose of this study was to explore the unique needs of refugee children in
Buffalo, NY, schools and to identify practices to support the social-emotional and
academic development of these children.
The following research questions guided this study: (a) What issues do our
schools face in meeting the unique social-emotional and academic challenges of
refugee children?, and (b) How can schools help refugee children be successful?
To address the research questions, the study presented in this chapter used quali-
tative research methodology. Focused interviews allowed the participants (teach-
ers, refugee parents, school counselors, a school administrator, and social service
providers) to reflect on their experiences and to provide suggestions for present
and future teachers of refugee children.
Study Sample
Twenty-six refugee participants from 11 countries were included in the study. In
addition, nine professionals who worked with refugee families and children were
included. Table 1 summarizes the demographic characteristics of the participants
(N = 35).
Selection of Participants
Refugee families in our study were sponsored by Catholic Charities, one of the
10 agencies approved by the U.S. Department of Health and Human Services to
aid in the resettlement of refugees. Because this agency has the most refugee
resettlement cases, we contacted Catholic Charities, and their social service
providers recommended participants for the interviews.
The main requirement for selecting parents was that they had school-age
children (5-8 years old) in the Buffalo Public Schools or in schools in the Buffalo
suburbs. The teachers, counselors, and principal were selected based on their
experiences working with refugee children.
Data Collection
Researchers conducted focused interviews with all the participants. English was
used as the main language of the interviews; however, when needed, interpreters
were called in. All the interviews were tape-recorded except in one case in which the
222
TABLE 1
Demographic Characteristics of the Study Sample
participant did not agree to be recorded. The interviews lasted11/2h on average, and,
when needed, follow-up interviews were conducted with some participants. The
interviews took place either in homes, schools, workplaces, or at Catholic Charities.
Parents could choose individual, pair, or focus-group interviews. Four chose
individual interviews, two chose pair interviews, and the remainder chose focus
groups. Social service providers and the principal were interviewed individually,
whereas teachers and counselors were interviewed in teams.
Data Analysis
All tapes were transcribed, and emerging themes were identified. Notes from the
unrecorded interview also were included in the analysis. Transcripts were analyzed
in relation to the research questions. In some cases, contradictory views were clar-
ified in follow-up interviews and informal discussions. Parents and teachers' views
were compared and are presented in the following sections. Counselors', adminis-
trators', and social service providers' views are included when appropriate.
One day a child showed up at my classroom. From the name, manner of dress, and
very short hair, everybody thought that the child was a boy. In addition, the child's
biographical sheet indicated gender as "male." After recess the child was sent to the
bathroom with the boys. Upon returning to the classroom, the child looked con-
fused. It turned out that the child was female and she figured out that there had been
a mistake when she did not see other girls around her in the bathroom. (Team
Teacher Interview, February 18, 2005)
I don't want to share anything about our experiences with the teacher. I believe that
my child should be treated equally to the other, non-refugee children.... The teacher
should try to help my children only if the child starts sharing. (Focus Group
Interview with Parents, February 18, 2005)
Another parent added, "Teachers don't need to know why my children left their
country and what happened to us. But I expect the teacher to educate my children
like she does with the other children." Such differences in views make the work of
teachers, social service providers, and counselors a little more difficult.
Nevertheless, all nonrefugee participants agreed that parents' views should be
respected at all times, and the establishment of trust between home and school was
viewed as one of the most important steps in the healing and adjustment process.
14. NEEDS OF REFUGEE SCHOOL CHILDREN 225
I had a child, and the paperwork indicated that she was 8 years old. Based on her age,
she was sent to my classroom mid-year. I had another 25 children, and soon I noticed
that this child had difficulty drawing simple lines and circles. I also noticed that she
had difficulty holding a crayon, handling a book, and sitting in her seat. There was no
additional help available for me. It was very hard to continue with my class while try-
ing to meet this child's unique needs. (Team Teacher Interview, February 18, 2005)
There are two types of refugee children. Regardless of age, one type has never been to
school because of war or poverty. The other type has had at least some schooling but the
classrooms they are used to are very different from American classrooms where children
have so many choices. (Focus Group Interview with Parents, February 18, 2005).
A parent added that the parents trusted the U.S. teachers' expertise and commit-
ment to educate their children in the best possible way. However, as the teachers
frequently commented, they were often alone without adequate help from the
school or appropriate agencies. Therefore, teachers found it difficult to differen-
tiate their instruction, especially when there were such major gaps between
academic skills and school readiness in the classroom.
This teacher believed that the prior academic assessments gave a false picture of
a child's real skills and knowledge. Furthermore, all participants believed that if
children were not speaking adequate English and translators were not available,
academic testing posed major concerns. In addition, teachers expressed much
concern about being required to submit report card grades for refugee children.
One teacher commented,
While grades for nonverbal classes such as PE, art, and music are relatively easy to be
determined, grading becomes more difficult when deciding what grade children have
earned in [subjects] like math and social studies, which require English skills.... After
a very difficult time, our administration came up with the idea to include a special cat-
egory in their computerized grading form. For areas where the children could not be
appropriately assessed like math, spelling, writing, social studies, reading, science, the
category "Unable to evaluate at this time. English language learner beginner" was
available. (Team Teacher Interview, February 18, 2005)
Perhaps even more troubling than grading is the concern for state-mandated stan-
dardized tests. In this regard, a teacher commented,
State guidelines do permit translators to be used for such testing. However, since
children are instructed in English throughout the year, they are unlikely to be famil-
iar with the technical words in their own language when they are taking the tests. In
addition, although dictionaries may also be used during testing, it is difficult to find
a dictionary for some of the increasingly rare languages spoken by refugee children.
(Team Teacher Interview, February 18, 2005)
Data analysis for Research Question 2 resulted in three major themes: (a) pro-
viding refugee children with social-emotional support, (b) providing refugee
children with academic support, and (c) establishing meaningful family or home
14. NEEDS OF REFUGEE SCHOOL CHILDREN 227
partnerships. Several subthemes were identified within each theme, and these are
reported in the following sections. Each subtheme is supported by claims and
evidence from the interviews.
Since they [refugee children] are not able to speak English and we are not able
to speak their languages, it is very difficult to design therapeutic activities for the
children. You can't ask even basic questions such as: How do you feel? Do you have
nightmares? ... Also, many times we know nothing about their background, we do
not even have phone numbers for the families. We generally have only the contact
information of their caseworkers, who often do not speak the children's native language
either. (Team Counselor Interview, February 18, 2005)
In such cases, counselors tend to engage children in activities that use universal
languages such as art and music. Through art, play, and music therapy children
start working through their experiences nonverbally. Observing the children and
their responses enables counselors to understand the children better and plan for
further activities. Counselors also indicated that signs of posttraumatic stress dis-
order were often present in these children, and they welcomed working with
teachers and caseworkers to provide additional mental health services to address
this disorder.
The Second Step: A Violence Prevention Curriculum by the Committee for Children
appears to aid all children in building tolerance toward each other while targeting
important skills such as empathy, impulse control, and anger management. In addi-
tion, character development programs can be utilized to teach children to be respect-
ful toward others and honor each other and our differences. (Team Teacher
Interview, February 18, 2005).
Translators or interpreters should be located for the children and the teachers right
away. These can be volunteers or work study interns (perhaps from local universi-
ties) who are able to speak the child's language and who do not cost a lot of money
for the schools. (Team Teacher Interview, February 18, 2005)
Teachers further believed that online resources were often inadequate for helping
teachers learn about a child's background or native language. To aid future teach-
ers of refugee children, one of the teachers suggested the following.
The counselors also recommended using basic sign language symbols. One of the
counselors noted, "Children seem to learn basic sign language for friendship,
peace, love, caring very quickly. It is believed that such learning will eventually
lead to verbal communication." In addition, providing ESL services as soon as
possible and developing some type of communication between the teacher and
refugee children and their families were strongly emphasized.
14. NEEDS OF REFUGEE SCHOOL CHILDREN 229
It is best not to assume anything regarding the child's previous experiences. For
example, teachers should not assume that the child has had prior experiences with
school materials even if the child is older. Neither should they assume that a refugee
child knows how to behave or relate to certain situations. And most importantly,
teachers should also not assume that refugee children are not capable of learning
just because what they have been through and just because they don't speak English.
(Team Teacher Interview, February 18, 2005)
When we notice that the child is lacking important skills, we use toys and materials
that are targeted for younger children. For example, when my third graders learn
about leaves and trees, I introduce an activity about leaves and trees to the refugee
child utilizing materials designed for lower grade level students. This way, all chil-
dren are learning about the same concepts, however at various levels. (Team Teacher
Interview, February 18, 2005)
Teachers also advised caution when using materials for younger children. One
suggested, "It is important to use kindergarten materials with an 8- or 9-year-old
in a judicious manner. We need to make sure that we do not insult the refugee
child." Fortunately, many publishers of ESL materials have responded to the need
for content resources with age-appropriate but easy-to-understand subject matter.
I had some refugee parents who came to the meeting and said yes to everything I said
or asked. I soon realized that it didn't mean that they agreed with me or understood
230 SZENTE AND HOOT
everything I said. I believe they said yes out of respect for teachers in their culture.
(Team Teacher Interview, February 18, 2005)
During one of the conferences, I had a refugee parent come with another refugee
parent. I assumed that she was their translator. I found it interesting that she did not
translate anything to the family; however, she kept taking notes and looked like she
understood what I was saying. After a while I asked her why she was not translat-
ing to the family. She told me that she doesn't speak their language, but she is here
to take notes, write them down and take it back to the resettlement agency where
there is a person who can then read the report and share it with the family. (Team
Teacher Interview, February 18, 2005)
The parents also unanimously expressed their concern about language barriers
between home and school. At the same time, all the parents wished to voice their
concern and commitment to the education of their children. One parent, for exam-
ple, stated,
Many times we are not able to understand what is said during the parent-teacher
conferences because we don't speak good English.... I think teachers should write
down all the communication, even the conference notes, so we could take it home
and read it and really understand it. If needed, we can also use some help to inter-
pret the reports. Or if we don't attend the meetings, we would still like to have the
reports so we can read how our children are doing at school. (Focus Group
Interview with Parents, February 18, 2005).
Parents also viewed home visits as beneficial. One parent told this story.
My children had to move from school to school until they had ESL services for
them. My younger son became very emotional after we had to switch schools the
third time, and he cried a lot both at home and at school. His teacher came to visit
us one day, and she brought some clothes and toys with her. My son really liked
that, and he stopped crying. I really liked it also that the teacher came to visit us.
(Pair Parent Interview, January 28, 2005).
14. NEEDS OF REFUGEE SCHOOL CHILDREN 231
As the examples indicate, although refugee parents may not be active in school,
they are concerned about the education of their children.
This study explored the views of 26 refugee parents and 9 nonrefugee educators about
the unique needs of refugee children in our schools. Two research questions guided
the investigation. The first explored the unique issues faced by the schools in meeting
refugee children's needs, and the analysis resulted in two major themes: (a) lack of
background information on children, and (b) (in)appropriate academic assessments
The second research question explored how schools could help refugee
children be successful. Results indicated three majors themes among the responses
of the participants: (a) providing refugee children with social-emotional support,
(b) providing refugee children with academic support, and (c) establishing mean-
ingful family or home partnerships.
and of second language proficiency in particular are at greater risk for inadequate
second language development after resettlement" (p. 36). She recommended peer
tutoring and peer learning to help refugee children become familiar with the
school.
Over the course of this study, we had the opportunity to work with outstanding
teachers, administrators, and social service providers, who with little or no pro-
fessional preparation took on the challenge of educating refugee children. These
people developed numerous strategies to assist in their efforts to make refugee
children successful both socially-emotionally and academically. Based on the
results of the study, we provide the following suggestions for professionals work-
ing with refugee children in our schools.
REFERENCES
Anderson, A., Hamilton, R., Moore, D., Loewen, S., & Frater-Mathieson, K. (2004). Education of
refugee children: Theoretical perspectives and best practice. In R. Hamilton & D. Moore (Eds.),
Educational Interventions for Refugee Children: Theoretical Perspectives and Implementing Best
Practice (pp. 1-11). New York: RoutledgeFalmer.
Arlington Diocese Office of Resettlement. (2004). Refugee Facts. Retrieved November 13, 2004, from
http://www.arlingtonrefugeeservices.com/new_page_3.htm
Church World Service (CWS). (2006). Statistics on-line. Retrieved May 16, 2005, from
http://www.churchworldservice.org/Immigration/stats.html
Cole, E. (1996). Immigrant and refugee children and families: Supporting a new road travelled. In
M. G. Luther, E. Cole, & P. Gamlin (Eds.), Dynamic Assessment for Instruction: From Theory to
Application (pp. 35-12). North York, ON: Captus Press.
Creamer, M. (2000). Post-traumatic stress disorder following violence and aggression. Aggression
and Violent Behaviour, 5, 431-449.
Dunn, B., & Adkins, M. A. (2003). The Multicultural Classroom: Teaching Refugee and Immigrant
Children. Retrieved November 27, 2004, from http://www.newhorizons.org/strategies/multicul-
tural/adkins_dunn.htm
ECRE Task Force on Integration. (2005). Good Practice Guide on the Integration of Refugees
in the European Union. Retrieved December 2, 2005, from http://www.refugeenet.org/pdf/
education_guide/pdf
Frater-Mathieson, K. (2004). Refugee trauma, loss and grief: Implications for interventions. In
R. Hamilton & D. Moore (Eds.), Educational Interventions for Refugee Children: Theoretical
Perspectives and Implementing Best Practice (pp. 12-34). New York: RoutledgeFalmer.
Hamilton, R. (2004). Schools, teachers and education of refugee children. In R. Hamilton & D. Moore
(Eds.), Educational Interventions for Refugee Children: Theoretical Perspectives and Implementing
Best Practice (pp. 83-96). New York: RoutledgeFalmer.
Leung, C , & Franson, C. (2001). Mainstreaming: ESL as a diffused curriculum concern. In
B. Mohan, C. Leung, & C. Davison (Eds.), English as a Second Language in the Mainstream:
Teaching, Learning and Identity (pp. 177-198). Harlow, UK: Longman.
Loewen, S. (2004). Second language concerns for refugee children. In R. Hamilton & D. Moore
(Eds.), Educational Interventions for Refugee Children: Theoretical Perspectives and Implementing
Best Practice (pp. 35-52). New York: RoutledgeFalmer.
McBrien, J. L. (2003). A second chance for refugee students. Educational Leadership, 61(2), 76-79.
Minnesota Department of Children, Families and Learning. (2002). Serving Refugee Students: Case
Studies of Somali, Bosnian and Liberian Students in Minnesota Schools. Roseville, MN: Author.
Office of Temporary and Disability Assistance. (2006). Refugees resettled in New York State by
provider area. Retrieved on May 14, 2006, from: http://www.otda.state.nv.us/otda/bria/radata/
Resettlement by Region 97-06.pdf
Rutter, J. (1994). Refugee Children in the Classroom. London: Trentham Books.
Chapter 15
Guofang Li
Michigan State University, USA
Everything you have to struggle for it, and then after that at the end you can
succeed. (Anne, mother, May 2004)
Since the early 1990s, the United States has received a wave of African refugees.
The most recent estimate suggests that the number of African foreign-born immi-
grants exceeded 1 million in 2004, and the number continues to grow (Grieco,
2004). Most of these refugees came from Sudan after the 1983 outbreak of civil war
between the northern Sunni Muslims and the southern animists and Christians and
are the largest of these immigrant groups. Most are from southern Sudan and are
Christians. Approximately 20,000 Sudanese refugees have resettled across the
country, and the number continues to rise (Migration News, 2005).
Because they come from a war-torn country, it is believed that most Sudanese
refugees have experienced many difficulties and challenges with regard to
language, culture, employment, and education when they resettle in the United
237
238 LI
States (Hayward, 1994). Because they are relative newcomers, little research has
examined their resettlement experiences. The few studies concerning Sudanese
refugees have focused mostly on trauma to the children (Bolea, Grant, Burgess,
& Plasa, 2003), their transnational linkages and ties (Shandy, 2003), and their sur-
vival stories (Educational Study Guide, 2005). Few studies have examined
Sudanese refugees' adjustment experiences in the United States, especially how
they adjust to the educational system.
The purpose of this case study was to examine Sudanese refugee families'
values and beliefs about education and their perceptions of and adjustment to
urban schooling. Using observations and in-depth interviews, this study reports
the findings from one low-income, Sudanese immigrant family, the Torkeri
family. The Torkeri family has six children, four of whom are school-aged and
attend various schools in an urban community. The guiding questions for this
research include the following:
1. What are the Sudanese parents' beliefs and values about their children's
education?
2. What are their perceptions of the U.S. urban schools, and what are their
children's adjustment experiences with these schools?
3. What are the implications of their perceptions and experiences for advanc-
ing urban immigrant children's education?
The Torkeri family came originally from a southern city in Sudan called Juba.
Before coming to the United States in 1999, they spent 3 years in Egypt. At the
time of the study, they had been in Buffalo, NY, for 3 years. The mother, 41-year-
old Anne, is multilingual and speaks Bari (her tribal language in Sudan), Arabic
(Sudan's national language), and English she learned in school. She was raised in
a well-off Christian family in Sudan that valued education highly. She attended a
private missionary high school called a Comboni school. As an adult, she studied
in Sudan for a bachelor's of arts for which she took courses in education, clinical
psychology, and women's studies, but she was not able to finish her internship
training. After she immigrated to the United States, she worked on an hourly basis
as a family educator in "Even Star" programs organized by the Erie regional edu-
cation authority. She visited other refugee or immigrant families and taught them
English and communication skills. After working for a few months, she was laid
off. Since then, she has stayed at home to raise her children.
Anne's husband Tifa is 43 years old. He speaks a regional language, Natuka,
and Arabic. He studied law in Egypt in obedience to his father, although he
15. CASE STUDY OF A SUDANESE REFUGEE FAMILY 239
240
The Torkeri Family Profile
Anne 41 Housewife, Private high school, Bari, Left Juba in 1996 for Egypt;
previously family undergraduate courses in Arabic, English Immigrated to the US in 1999
educator education (Sudan)
Nina 13 Grade 9 School X (a multicultural school) Arabic, English Born in Sudan ESL program
2 years' schooling in Egypt Interested in arts
Like many other immigrant families, the Torkeri family experienced many-
layered difficulties in adjusting to life in the United States, including language
differences, changes in gender roles and cultural identity, employment, and com-
munity socialization patterns (Hayward, 1994). In terms of cultural and linguistic
differences in their initial experiences in the United States, for example, the
family had to learn English, and the children, especially Owen and Nina who
were schooled in Arabic in Egypt for 3 years, had to adjust to English instruction.
These linguistic and cultural differences profoundly influenced their schooling
experiences in the United States. In the following sections, I describe the family's
experiences and interactions with urban schools that the children attend. I first
describe the family's expectations of their children and their perceptions of U.S.
schools. Then I present the family's experiences of learning about the school sys-
tem and their interactions with schools in relation to the ESL programs their
children attend. Finally, I discuss the implications of their adjustment experiences
for the education of minority students in urban settings.
I want them, you know, to finish, they go to college, go to university. If they want
to do further study, that's good, because there are chances here. Don't miss the
chances since you are here. In my country, there is not a lot of chance[s] like that.
For me, when I came here, I was thinking, I said, "Oh, my god. If I came when I
was young, I will do so many things." But for me, I consider myself now like a late
comer ... The most important, I want [for] my kids. Then, after that, I can look for
myself.
However, as African refugees she also realized that there was discrimination
against Blacks in this society and that her children would have to work even
harder to succeed. This realization encouraged the parents to put even more
emphasis on the importance of education.
242 LI
You know, education plays a big role. Although I know that sometimes there is
discrimination like here, because there are some places that Black people leave their
work and you find just White people, and some places you can find out they are
mixed up, multicultural group working at the same place ... But still there is a
chance. Why do you give up for education? ... Like us, we came, we try our best ...
There are chances that you can do.
Anne and Tifa tried to provide their children with a better learning environment
at home. Anne did not ask her children to help with household chores during the
academic year, because she wanted them to focus on studying. She asked them to
help with the housework only during summer vacations. In Sudanese culture, men
do not help with housework. However, she asked her sons to help during the vaca-
tion so that they could learn to take responsibilities in this Western country that
focuses on equal opportunities for men and women. She believed that it was
important for them to adjust to the culture of their new home country.
Anne and Tifa also made many personal sacrifices for their children. Anne
wanted to take the many opportunities available for her in the United States and
update her own knowledge and skills, but she chose to make her children her
priority. For example, she wished to take a 1-h computer class that was offered
once a week by the government, but she decided not to because it would affect
the study time of her eldest daughter Nina. Her family's financial situation did not
allow Anne to send her children to a day care center. If Anne attended a computer
class, she would have to ask Nina to take care of her young brother and sisters
during her absence. Moreover, all the children returned home at different times,
and she wished to be there so that they could talk to her about school or other
matters and ask her for help when needed. She believed that being always avail-
able to her children would create a better home environment and establish a more
trusting relationship between her and her children. She hoped that her personal
sacrifice would instill strong motivation in her children to achieve.
It's [taking care of her six children] a full job although without pay. I was telling them,
I said you know, although now I feel too exhausted ... I said only thing I'll be happy
if one day I could see you graduate, you are in good process, you are capable for your-
self, you are responsible for yourself. That will be the time that I get my pay.
especially on weekends. 'Today is Friday and they came [home] without any
homework—that means [they] have Friday, Saturday, and Sunday [off]. Sometimes,
they don't want to do anything."
Anne and Tifa also found that the subjects taught in U.S. schools were differ-
ent and believed that U.S. schools lacked adequate instruction in what they called
general knowledge, which included mathematics, geography, and history. Anne
explained,
Like when before I came here, I know all about, about like geographical, I know all
about like the Great Lakes and ... all this stuff. I get it in school. So it's not new [to
me] like, River Niagara is the longest and the big river in this country, but others
[here] they don't know, even if you ask the American family ... I think they don't
teach. We call this is like ... general knowledge. They don't have general knowl-
edge, you know. And it is very important... I am new in this country and I, and their
system is different from ours, and their other subjects that they don't even teach,
because like [we] taught history, and geography, and it's not like that [here]. Even
sometimes I ask them, and even sometimes I watch the TV like Sesame Street. I
wonder sometimes, they ask simple [math] question and [students] couldn't answer,
I said, "Oh, my goodness." That means you have a limit [in the content of teaching].
Like if they could allow the kids, I mean with the [reading aloud] styles.... When I
was in school, they encourage me like we have a reading at class, turn by turn,
everybody must stand up and read loudly with colleagues. But I don't think they do
that here.
However, the biggest difference the family experienced was in the ESL program
in the schools, which was a totally new concept to them. In the following section,
I discuss the family's struggle with the ESL programs.
Most of the time, they got pulled out from the classroom, like if they have history
in class, and then they come and pull my kid out and while the others are getting the
subjects. So he is going to miss the subject. They pull him out and he will go and
get that ESL and when he came back, he will find his colleagues, they got their
homework, their lecture was over. And they will not lecture for him anymore, so this
is really a big problem.
Anne was particularly worried about Owen, who was in the 11th grade and who
needed good grades if he was to go to college. She observed that pulling Owen
out of his mainstream classes caused problems in his performance in the content
areas of his mainstream classes. His teacher did not help him make up what he
missed while attending the ESL classes; however, he was graded in the same way
as the regular class students. Sometimes he missed hearing about assignments
while he was in the ESL classes, failed to submit them, and, as a result, received
lower grades. Anne believed that such a situation was unfair to Owen. She said,
And now he is not taking Spanish, and he is losing the marks for that. That's why
sometimes his average is not very high. That's what he is complaining. And he said
he wants to attend the Spanish class so that he may get the mark for that. But he
don't attend that. He get zero for that, which I think is there is no logic here.
That year she noticed that Owen was not allowed to take geometry, a subject she
regarded as a core course.
Even now, now I have a problem with my son. I have to go to school and talk to the
teacher about it.... They say that he is not going to take geometry because of ESL.
So I worry much. I think, why? Geometry is most important even. He need it. Yeah.
He is going to miss that because of ESL. He just miss it.... How comes like that?
I'm really mad about that, you know. I talk to him before two days because I got a
letter at the mail. And it's saying that he should take at least 39 hours for ESL.
Fred, who was in an international elementary school, also was pulled out of main-
stream classes during school hours for ESL, as well as physical therapy and occu-
pational therapy for the physical problem he had with his left arm. Despite missing
many mainstream classes, however, he finished in the top three in his class. Anne
thought that if he could attend the mainstream classes rather than being pulled out
for the ESL class, he would do even better. However, regardless of how well he per-
formed in the content areas, he was still not allowed to drop the ESL class, and he
had to attend summer school for his therapy sessions. According to Anne, because
a common perception among students is that those who do not do well in their
studies must attend the summer program, this might affect how Fred felt about him-
self and how others saw him. He worried that other students might think he was not
doing well in school and would distance themselves from him.
15. CASE STUDY OF A SUDANESE REFUGEE FAMILY 245
Anne said that hers was not the only family experiencing problems with the
ESL programs. Many other refugee and immigrant families voiced similar con-
cerns. Anne and other parents went to the schools to express their concerns, but
their voices were not heard, and they were told that this was how the ESL pro-
gram worked. Anne expressed her frustration:
We discussed it before at school like at the PTO meeting and all this stuff. But they
said it's according to the system, they can't change anything. It depend on the gov-
ernment, because this is not the first time that they are doing this, and this is not
their fault. If the government could pay for that because we say, "Why don't they
teach the ESL like, they select some days, at the evening instead of pulling the kids
out from the class, and then leaving the others going on with the lecture?" But they
said, "No," they can't do that. They said, it needs like a special budget for that and
all this ... They said, "What should we do? It is the system."
Realizing that they had to fight the "system," Anne actively sought ways to work
the system. In the following section, I describe Anne's efforts to work the system
through her choice of schools for her children.
One day I ask about, I ask one of my friends, and she told me there is a difference
between magnet schools [and government schools]. The magnet school, usually you
go to the City Hall, and then they do it through lottery. If you fill the paper and then
after that, if they pick one of your kids, then if they are siblings, they can go through.
Realizing that she could change her children's schools, Anne applied for Owen to
attend a magnet school, but the application was rejected. After two attempts to
246 LI
change her children's schools, Anne learned that Owen, Nina, and Fred, who
were not born in the United States, had no choice but to attend schools designated
for refugee children. She decided that her younger children, who either grew up
or were born in the United States, would not attend those schools although they
did have advantages (e.g., she liked the administration style in Owen's high
school and the multicultural aspects in Nina and Fred's school). Because Irene
had no prior schooling experiences in Sudan or Egypt, Anne was determined to
send her to another school.
I would like to apply for my daughter, but I don't want her to go to School X ...
because she starts here. That means, she don't have any problem with the language ...
My idea is I want her either go to the charter school, or either to go to the magnet
schools. And they said, magnet school, they will not allow her to go there unless you
have to apply at the City Hall also. That's the same obstacles. So, but the charter
school, if they got the application, they will send me ... so they sent me a letter and
I took all the paper they needed, documents that they needed, and now she got the
acceptance.
Anne was satisfied with the Head Start program in the charter school that Irene
attended. This school gave Irene different reading activities from the rest of the
class and a great deal of homework every day. Anne described the differences she
saw.
Today they [Owen, Fred, and Nina] don't have homework. But, although today is
Friday, Irene will have homework. Usually there is one that she gets it on Monday
or Tuesday. And then, she has to submit it today. And then she will get another
homework for next Friday. Like a week she has to do it either with me, or some-
times her sister. And she has to read books in the library and she has to write the
names of the books and their writers and all. And she has to turn in. And then they
have something called "Open Circle." They always discuss.
Anne was happy with the homework assignments and believed that Irene
appeared to be more aware of the importance of reading stories because she read
a new book every day and discussed the books in school. Anne sometimes asked
Nina to take Irene to the public library to borrow more books. She also was happy
that the school taught children "applied technology," which showed a difference
between Irene and the other children. For example, often when Irene returned
home she would go to the computer to play a math-related game, whereas the
other children watched television. Anne attributed the difference in Irene's behav-
ior to the different school program she attended.
She can write the alphabets very beautiful. That's why I'm very happy about her.
Maybe because of the system that they insist the homework every day, every night,
15. CASE STUDY OF A SUDANESE REFUGEE FAMILY 247
she has to do. And reading too. She has books, she has to read when she came from
there from school, because every day she has a new book.
Anne was also happy that she could be in frequent contact with Irene's teachers
through writing notes and participating in school field trips, which was an
improvement over the difficulty she experienced in communicating with the
school personnel in schools attended by Owen, Nina, and Fred. Knowing that
there were differences in schools and programs, Anne said that she would con-
tinue to struggle for her children, "But you have to struggle for yourself. If you
didn't struggle, you are not able to [get ahead] from where you start."
The Torkeri family's experiences with urban schooling suggest that they encoun-
tered multiple layers of cultural differences and challenges in their adjustment to
urban schools in the United States that went beyond the social and linguistic and
included the educational and institutional. Contrary to popular deficit views of
refugee families, the Torkeri parents valued education highly and tried as hard as
they could by making personal sacrifices to provide their children with a better
learning environment. They expected their children to earn a college degree,
become successful, and have a better quality of life in the future. They wanted them
to take advantage of the opportunities available in the United States to make their
dreams come true. However, the family had to overcome multilayered barriers
along the way. They encountered a range of cultural differences with the U.S.
schools, not only in content but also in the style of instruction. Most significantly,
they had to learn how the school system worked and how to work the system.
The parents, being actively involved and gravely concerned, tried their best to
learn about the system and work it through their own struggles. They understood
that the goal of the ESL programs in public schools was to improve non-English
speaking children's English proficiency so that they could attend the English-
dominant mainstream classes and do well in academic content areas. However, in
the parents' opinion, the structure of the existing ESL programs had the opposite
result in that they took the students away from content-area instruction. In Anne's
words, "If they miss like this, they will have nothing—[not] even the foundation!"
Thus she tried to oppose the ESL programs in the schools by petitioning to have
her children's names removed from the ESL list. In addition, she (along with
some other parents) repeatedly raised these concerns with the schools.
Unfortunately, their concerns were not addressed, and the children's programs of
study remained unchanged. This story of one family's fight against the ESL pro-
grams in two urban schools demonstrates the unequal power relations between
the school authorities and minority parents whose first language is not English.
248 LI
Minority parents like the Torkeri parents, who are marginalized in society, are
often powerless to change the school programs their children attend and are
excluded from decision making about their children's education (Fine, 1993; Li,
2006). The barriers to the children's adjustment to school and the failure of the
school personnel to listen to their voice suggest that some refugee and immigrant
children are "overlooked and underserved" in our school system (Ruiz-de-
Velasco & Fix, 2001).
This family's struggle with the school system demonstrates a need to consider
the students' and parents' opinions about the structure of ESL programs and their
cultural and linguistic backgrounds. The Torkeri family's story shows that a
rigidly structured ESL program does not always help nonnative-English-speaking
children develop their dominant-language literacy skills; on the contrary, it may
negatively affect their performance in the content areas of their mainstream
classes, as noted by the parents. Moreover, the segregation occasioned by being
pulled out of classes for ESL lessons may affect minority students' construction
of social identity. This is shown in Fred's experience that being in an ESL pro-
gram did not foster his sense of pride, but rather that the separate ESL programs
often promoted a sense of distance and separation from the other students
(Valdés, 2001). Therefore, it is time for critical reflection on the effectiveness of
existing ESL programs and how these can best serve the needs of immigrant
minority students. Schools may need to consider parents' suggestions about
changing the scheduling of the pull-out classes so that ESL students are not
doubly disadvantaged by missing regular content-area instruction.
The parents' active involvement and their strenuous efforts to learn about how
the school system works in the United States and to work the system on their own
suggest a need for educators to help incoming immigrant parents become better
advocates for their children's education (Li, 2003). First, as Li (2006) recom-
mends, it is necessary to help immigrant parents gain critical awareness of how
the school system works and to learn to negotiate for their children more access
in the system. For example, schools and the community, such as immigration
agencies, could offer parents workshops on the differences between the various
kinds of schools available and how to choose among the various schools. Second,
schools need to establish specific communication channels to address the major
concerns and questions of parents, families, and teachers about ESL programs
and students' academic progress. In terms of the ESL programs, for example,
schools might collaborate with parents to find solutions that best facilitate learn-
ers' educational needs. In sum, educators must hear the minority parents' voices
and mediate for the students between school and home.
15. CASE STUDY OF A SUDANESE REFUGEE FAMILY 249
REFERENCES
Bolea, P. T., Grant, G., Jr., Burgess, M., & Plasa, O. (2003). Trauma of children of Sudan: A
constructivist exploration. Child Welfare, 82, 219-232.
Creswell, J. W. (2005). Educational Research: Planning, Conducting, and Evaluating Quantitative
and Qualitative Research (2nd ed.). Columbus, OH: Pearson.
Educational Study Guide. (2005). Lost Boys of Sudan. Retrieved March 1, 2005, from
www.LostBoysFilm.com
Fine, M. (1993). [Aplparent involvement: Reflections on parents, power, and urban public schools.
Teachers College Record, 94(4), 682-710.
Greico, E. (2004). The African Foreign Born in the United States. Migration Policy Institute.
Retrieved March 22, 2005, from www.migrationinformation.org/Usfocus/display.cmf?id=250
Hayward, P. W. (1994). Pre-resettlement preparation: Needs and issues of refugees. Proceedings of
the conference of East African refugee service providers. Arlington, VA: Ethiopian Community
Development Council and Center for Applied Linguistics. (ERIC Document Retrieval No. ED
407480)
Li, G. (2003). Literacy, culture, and politics of schooling: Counter narratives of a Chinese Canadian
family. Anthropology and Education Quarterly, 34, 184-206.
Li, G. (2005). Culturally Contested Pedagogy: Battles of Literacy and Schooling Between Mainstream
Teachers and Asian Immigrant Parents. Albany, NY: SUNY Press.
Lincoln, Y. S., & Guba, G. E. (1985). Naturalist Inquiry. Beverly Hills, CA: Sage.
Migration News. (2005). Welfare, Licenses, Sudanese. Retrieved March 1, 2005, from http://migra-
tion.ucdavis.edu/mn
Ruiz-de-Velasco, J., & Fix, M. (2001). Overlooked and Underserved: Immigrant Children in U.S.
Secondary Schools. Washington, DC: Urban Institute.
Shandy, D. J. (2003). Transnational linkages between refugees in africa and in the diaspora. Forced
Migration Review, 16, 7-8.
Valdés, G. (2001). Learning and Not Learning English: Latino Students in American Schools. New York:
Teachers College Press.
Chapter 16
Darcey M. Dachyshyn
University of Alberta, Canada
251
252 DACHYSHYN
The research described in this chapter begins to map the complexities faced by
refugee families with preschool children as they adapt to life in a new country.
RESEARCH CONTEXT
Refugee families arriving in the city of Edmonton face a multitude of factors that
impinge on their ability to integrate into local society. The Multicultural Family
Connections Program, funded through the Early Childhood Development
Initiative, offers cultural brokering support to these families. Cultural brokers,
those who share the same cultural and linguistic background as the families they
work with, are key to the success of this approach. A primary component of the
program mandate is to develop culturally and linguistically relevant parenting
information and facilitate parenting groups, particularly for those families with
preschool children. The main concern is supporting these families as they strug-
gle to parent within two often-conflicting cultural frameworks.
Staff and volunteers working with refugee families through the Multicultural
Family Connections Program labor from crisis to crisis. Small successes with
individual family members serve as touchstones. The intensity of the work, how-
ever, leaves minimal time for reflection, analysis, and evaluation of the factors
contributing to the stress and difficulties that refugee families face every day.
The lived experiences of refugees heard in this research help educators, settle-
ment workers, and cultural brokers identify factors that influence the ability of
these families to integrate into the Edmonton community and to parent their
preschool children in their new location. Such knowledge is leading to greater
understanding, awareness, compassion, and meaningful assistance being offered
to these parents and children.
METHODOLOGY
Mapping the Life Experiences of Refugee and Immigrant Families With Preschool
Children (Multicultural Family Connections Program, 2004), ethnographic
research undertaken in Edmonton, Canada, involved 41 refugee parents, repre-
senting 62 children under 6 years of age, and 128 children 6 years of age or older.
Seven focus groups and seven one-on-one conversational interviews were con-
ducted. Afghan, African French-speaking (from Democratic Republic of Congo,
Rwanda, Burundi, and Djibouti), Cambodian, Eritrean, Kurdish, Somali, and
Sudanese refugees participated. Cultural brokers, who already have established
relationships with the communities, served as group facilitators and interpreters,
thus allowing all participants to communicate in the languages in which they
felt most competent. All interviews and focus group conversations were taped,
16. REFUGEE FAMILIES WITH PRESCHOOL CHILDREN 253
transcribed into English, and analyzed for common themes. Cultural brokers
served to verify the translations and the interpretation of the data.
The situation of each refugee family is unique; some may have been able to
escape before unrest in their country arose, whereas others have faced severe
atrocities before being able to flee their home country. The following recollec-
tions provided by refugees now living in Edmonton describe the variety of ways
families experience unrest and resettlement.
Many refugees endured years of hardship and waiting in a refugee camp.
You cannot imagine how we spent our whole life in a refugee camp. To be a Kurd
from a mountain, a very beautiful cool weather country with water everywhere and
then go to the desert where even we do not have water to drink. We were kicked out
and moved from a heaven to a hell. (Kurdish refugee)
Not all refugee families relocate to camps. This Sudanese mother spoke of her
situation after fleeing to Egypt.
There is no security. One day I was not well and did not go to work so I went to the
medical clinic. It happened that on that day people were caught and taken back to
Sudan. They were put in a goods train with their children. They were just caught on
the street. I was very, very lucky. Those that went back, I am sure that one hundred
percent of them were killed. (Sudanese refugee)
Many Afghan refugees who participated in a focus group had fled to Iran shortly
after the Taliban came to power.
It was very difficult when the Taliban came. I made it to Iran all by myself with my
children. After my husband was murdered we hid in the mountains for 40 days; the
Taliban constantly threatened us. We made a caravan that fit seven families and we
left for Iran.
Many refugee family members are left separated from one another for extended
periods. A Somali father, who gained refugee status as a refugee claimant in
Canada, was away from his wife and children for 4 years before he was in a finan-
cial position to sponsor them to come to Canada. Preschool children parented
under such unstable and fear-filled circumstances often lack the experiences
needed to prepare them for formal schooling. Canadian educators are then faced
with the task of supporting families as they "make up for" those lost years.
Literature describing the refugee situation commonly identifies three phases of
influence: premigration or preflight, transmigration or flight, and postmigration
254 DACHYSHYN
or resettlement (Beiser, Dion, Gotowiec, Hyman, & Vu, 1995; Frazel & Stein,
2002; Hamilton & Moore, 2004; Lustig et al., 2004). In considering the socio-
cultural and historical background influencing refugee families, it is necessary to
understand all three phases of the refugee experience. Following is a brief sum-
mary of key issues (premigration, transmigration, and postmigration) that affect
resettlement.
From the focus group and interview conversations I had with refugee parents
living in Edmonton, it is possible to outline eight common issues influencing
resettlement. Following are the main themes that emerged through the data analy-
sis. A human voice is brought to these issues through the narrative comments
provided by research participants.
I am afraid because after two years my sponsorship will be cut off. This is worry-
ing because I do not speak English, but I will have to look for a job. The daycare
will be very expensive for me. Therefore, I will have to stay at home and look after
the children, because I cannot move and leave the children alone.
Here you are with your partner and there is no other person. The guidance that you
would need from other members of your family like your mom is not here so it is
very difficult for many of us. So now we are just raising our children the way we
think it is right. (Eritrean refugee)
Instead of the close supportive community they are used to, many refugees strug-
gle alone. "Here people are isolated and lonely, and it is very difficult for new-
comers to integrate. They expect the same closeness with their neighbor just like
it is in Africa, but it is not the case" (African French-speaking refugee). A
Congolese single mother with five children under the age of 7, because of her
isolation at home with her children, feels like she is in a prison. Children as well
as parents feel the loss of extended family.
The little one [daughter] misses her grandmother. Whenever she sees an older
woman, she calls her "grandma." I sometimes feel bad, because my children do not
really know their grandparents. (Sudanese refugee)
256 DACHYSHYN
The fact that refugee families are bereft of extended family support is highly
problematic, especially after childbirth. In their home countries, female relatives
would provide 40 days of postpartum care.
The next day after my baby was born in Canada, I was back in the kitchen. I had no
choice. I felt bad, sad, and lonely. There is nobody here. I think if I was back home
my sister, my aunty, my mom, everyone would be there, but now here we do not
have a choice. (Sudanese refugee)
My daughter was told by one of the children at school, your mom is ugly and she is
always dressing up like Halloween.
At school, the teachers are suspicious of our children. They think maybe their hair
is not combed or not proper because they have it covered. They are suspicious. I do
not like it.
At school, the teacher does not give her attention or give her answers sometimes.
When she asks questions she does not get answers, she does not get any attention.
Now it is already recorded in her mind that there is discrimination.
258 DACHYSHYN
My son says if there is fighting or violence in Africa "I do not want to go there." I
do not want him to grow up thinking our country is bad. I try to tell him that there
is not only war in Sudan, that there can also be good things there. (Sudanese mother)
Negative public attitudes, separation from family and community, inability to speak
English or French, and failure to find employment are among the most powerful
causes of emotional distress. Persons whose pre-migration experience has been
traumatic, women from traditional cultures, adolescents and the elderly also are at
high risk for experiencing difficulties during resettlement. (Canadian Task Force on
Mental Health Issues Affecting Immigrants and Refugees, 1988, p. 91)
them more chances to learn about both Canadian culture and our community"
(Kurdish parent). Schooling in Canada however offers little support of the reten-
tion of home language and culture; this creates a distance between children and
parents. "When my daughter first started school she did not speak much English,
but now she wants to only speak English. I really want her to keep speaking Khmer
otherwise I cannot talk with her" (Cambodian parent).
Unfortunately, the importance of young children maintaining their home
language and culture is not always appreciated in schools, as is exemplified in the
experience of a Congolese 7-year-old.
When I started school, I met some people who speak Swahili, who have been living
here for a long time. We started to play together. After a few days, a teacher told us
that we could not speak Swahili, and we stopped talking to each other.
Their education, because with education they can do anything they want to do and
they will know everything and they will know what is good to do and what is bad.
Education is the key. They can go anywhere and do anything.
This Kurdish mother appealed for a better life for her children than she has.
I want a greater sense of learning for my young children, because I do not want my
children to be like I am right now, I want a better life for them, better learning,
better education, more support from school, when they go to school in the future; a
more open-minded school system.
With respect to the school system in Canada, many refugees have mixed feelings.
They are thankful for access to quality public education, but struggle with the
perceived lack of moral training provided in schools. "The only thing children get
from education here is knowledge but not good behavior or respect" (African French-
speaking parent). Parents want to be supportive of their children's educational expe-
riences, but find the system here different from what they are familiar with.
The difference between education here and back home is, if children do not do well
they have to repeat a grade until they do well. Here they put children in the class
260 DACHYSHYN
with the children the same age even if they do not know the English alphabet. The
children are given assignments and the parents are expected to help even if they are
not educated. Then if children do not do well in school the parents are blamed which
is not their fault. (Sudanese mother)
DISCUSSION
Refugee parents live in the tension between hope and reality. They have high
expectations for the futures of their children, especially with respect to education.
Unfortunately, refugee families are seldom in a position to access culturally and
linguistically appropriate preschool experiences that would help prepare their
children for school success. Information gathered during an interview with a
Congolese mother illustrates the difficulty refugees have accessing early years
care and education. In the case of this single mother, forcefully separated from
her husband by rebel factions while in a refugee camp, now relocated to
Edmonton with her five children, ranging in age from infancy to 7 years; she
experiences great difficulty making sure her school-age child safely gets on the
school bus before trundling the other four children off with her on public transit
to two different preschool settings in hopes of arriving to her English as a second
language class before she is penalized for being late.
Preschool care and education can play a pivotal role in the settlement of refugee
families. For example, the development of racist attitudes (Harris, 1998; Van
Ausdale & Feagin, 2001) and prejudice (Aboud, 1988) are found to begin during
the preschool years. As preschool settings rise to the challenge of a commitment to
antibias and antiracist models of learning and living, I believe peace and acceptance
will become the norm rather than the exception in our society. Furthermore, men-
torship, caring, safety, acceptance of cultural differences, counseling, and support
networks within preschools and schools will help ensure these settings become a
"resilience factor" not another "risk factor" in refugee children's lives (Hamilton &
Moore, 2004, p. 63). Finally, research into second language development and the
retention of first languages has shown that heritage language and culture, if given
greater prominence in the day-to-day life of preschool and school age children will
result in many benefits: (a) newcomer children will experience a sense of pride and
acceptance that leads to a feeling of belonging; (b) competence in one's first lan-
guage will allow the learning of a second and subsequent languages to proceed
more fluidly; (c) communication and relationships between home, school, and com-
munity will be strengthened; and (d) equal access to education will be ensured (Dei,
James, Karumanchery, James-Wilson, & Zine, 2000).
While being in greater need, refugee families are among the least likely to
receive the preschool support they need. Causes for this lack of access to
preschool settings, according to Rutter (1998), include meager finances as a result
16. REFUGEE FAMILIES WITH PRESCHOOL CHILDREN 261
REFERENCES
Citizenship and Immigration Canada. (2005). Facts and figures 2004: Immigration overview. Ottawa,
ON, Canada: Author.
Dei, S. G. J., James, I. M , Karumanchery, L. L., James-Wilson, S., & Zine, J. (2000). Removing the
Margins: the Challenges and Possibilities of Inclusive Schooling. Toronto, ON: Canadian Scholars'
Press.
Edmonton Social Planning Council. (2004). Child and family poverty in Alberta 2004 [Fact Sheet].
Edmonton, AB: Author.
Frazel, M., & Stein, A. (2002). The mental health of refugee children. Archives of Disease in
Childhood, 87(5), 366-370.
Hamilton, R., & Moore, D. (2004). Educational Interventions for Refugee Children: Theoretical
Perspectives and Implementing Best Practice. London: RoutledgeFalmer.
Harris, J. R. (1998). The Nurture Assumption: Why Children Turn Out the Way They Do. New York:
Touchstone.
Lustig, S. L., Kia-Keating, M., Knight, W. G., Geltman, P., Ellis, H., Kinzie, J. D., Keane, T, & Saxe,
G. N. (2004). Review of child and adolescent refugee mental health. Journal of the American
Academy of Child and Adolescent Psychiatry, 43(\), 24-36.
Multicultural Family Connections Program. (2004). [Mapping the life experiences of refugee and
immigrant families with preschool children]. Unpublished raw data.
Office of the United Nations High Commissioner for Refugees. (1996). Convention and protocol
relating to the status of refugees. Geneva, Switzerland: Author.
Rutter, J. (1998). Refugee children in the early years. Multicultural Teaching, 17(1), 23-26.
Spigelman, M. (1998). Unfulfilled Expectations, Missed Opportunities: Poverty Among Immigrants
and Refugees in British Columbia. Victoria, BC: British Columbia Policy, Planning and Research
Division.
Van Ausdale, D., & Feagin, J. R. (2001). The First R: How Children Learn Race and Racism. Lanham,
MD: Rowman & Littlefield.
Wenger, E. (1998). Communities of Practice: Learning, Meaning, and Identity. New York: Cambridge
University Press.
Introduction to Part V
Searching for New Ways to Belong
263
264 PART v
women. Ogdul (2000) argued that the existence of social cohesion in a neighborhood
is not necessarily an advantage and that the community may constitute a closed
"island." Although the migrant populations may have strong community ties,
chapter 19 reveals that such urban communities in a city (e.g., Istanbul) can have
both negative and positive aspects. Erman (2001) stated that in migrant commu-
nities in Turkey, traditional patriarchal control is reproduced in the urban context.
Among the results are that women's economic contributions are devalued and the
labor market offers only low-level jobs to migrant women. Concern is also grow-
ing about moral corruption (in urban settings), and this causes women to stay at
home and inside their communities. Erman's observations substantiate the find-
ings in chapter 19 that a low percentage of newly migrated mothers work outside
the home. The isolation of mothers in an immigrant social community may not
encourage acculturation, particularly acquisition of the host nation's language.
This in turn can affect the ability of the parents to communicate with the school
and thus the child's adaptation to the school (Children Now, 2004.)
Chapter 20 describes the multiple problems for children in China, where a large
number of families migrate from rural to urban areas. Ma (2002) suggested that
although providing employment opportunities in rural areas might stem the flow, the
reality is that such a action will not be taken quickly, if ever, in China or in other coun-
tries with a high level of rural-urban migration. Meanwhile, young rural-urban
migrant children with their need for education are often left outside the mainstream
educational system. The community-based approach of providing informal education
in the form of a playgroup offered in a migrant community in China, as described in
chapter 20, brought positive outcomes for both the children and the parents. This
might be seen as a possible form of early education for children of migrant families.
The unique features of the program included appropriateness to local conditions, flex-
ibility, relevance, and tapping into various sources of assistance. As a result, parents
became the main actors in the community education effort, improving their own edu-
cation and increasing their chances of being accepted into city life. Thus, the program
became a center for lifelong learning and building a learning community.
All four chapters in part V invite the reader to consider what it means for a young
child to feel that he or she does not belong in a given place. The implication is that
the notion of home for children who experience multiple moves in their lives could
be reinstated through fostering closer family and peer relationships.
REFERENCES
Children Now. 2004. California Report Card: Focus on Children in Immigrant Families. Oakland,
CA: Author. Retrieved August 26, 2005 from http://publications.childrennow.org/publications/
invest/reportcard2004.cfm
266 PART V
Marjory Ebbeck
Valerie Reus
University of South Australia, Australia
THIRD-CULTURE CHILDREN
Children who are neither raised entirely in their parents' home country nor as citi-
zens of the country in which they currently reside are called third-culture children
267
268 EBBECK AND REUS
(TCC) and are also sometimes referred to as third-culture kids (TCKs). Pollock and
Van Reken (2001) give the following definition of third-culture children.
A Third Culture Kid (TCK) is a person who has spent a significant part of his or her
developmental years outside the parents' culture. The TCK builds relationships to
all of the cultures, while not having full ownership in any. Although elements from
each culture are assimilated into the TCK's life expe
rience, the sense of belonging
is in relationship to others of similar background. (p. 19)
It is useful and important to remember that although culture can be thought of as
the way of life of a group of people, TCC are members of several cultural groups:
their family (which might be biracial), their country of origin, their host country,
their school, and their peers.
TCC are not the only children who move around and experience cross-cultural
or multicultural experiences. Often children of the same culture as the school
experience difficulties when they move from one school to another. The differ-
ence between TCC and non-TCC lies in the fact that TCC do not have the oppor-
tunity to experience diversity in a rooted locality as a non-TCC experiences it.
TCC frequently find themselves in transition between many places: country,
school, grade level, teacher, and friends.
Although studies have shown that "international exposure at an early age
appears to have an enduring impact that positively shapes both children and
adults" (Glicksberg-Skipper 2000, n.p.), Berk (2002) commented that the psy-
chological and other stresses placed on TCC as well as on nonmobile children
require them to cope with challenging and sometimes threatening situations.
As Pollock and Van Reken (2001) stated, "It is vital that highly mobile fami-
lies learn to deal well with the entire process of transition" (p. 199), as this
process can affect the child's ability to cope and to make friends. Children have
difficulties in foreseeing themselves in a different environment. They see what
they are losing and leaving behind, and "in addition parents feel helpless because
they realize that their decision to relocate has caused the stress their children are
experiencing" (Roman 2001, n.p.).
Miller (2003), for example, reported the following comment from a now-adult
TCC.
[I] grew up in the Philippines and also lived in California and Singapore, but
decided that Indianapolis would be home. If I lived in the same house for 50 years,
I could be happy. I have been everywhere, and I don't want to go anywhere else ...
He [her husband], to me, means stability ... he's from here and always lived here,
and that's what I was looking for." (n.p.)
Van Reken (2001, p. 4) highlighted six emotional stages TCC face when they
enter a new environment:
17. EXPERIENCES OF THIRD-CULTURE CHILDREN 269
1. Feeling vulnerable
2. Feeling ambivalent
3. Feeling different
4. Feeling angry
5. Feeling depressed
6. Feeling to begin to live again. (p. 4)
It's important that parents ... explain to their children that they are moving, includ-
ing the reasons why. Children should know that the entire family will be working
together to realize a positive relocation experience. Parents need to listen very care-
fully when questions are raised by children and address each issue in a meaningful
way. (Roman, 2003, n.p.)
Children are remarkably resilient. Newman and Blackburn (2002) used the term
resilience to explain how children overcome difficulties. "Resilient children are
better equipped to resist stress and adversity, cope with change and uncertainty,
and to recover faster and more completely from traumatic events or episodes"
(Newman and Blackburn, 2002, n.p.).
Leo (2003) mentioned the importance of attachment and how children deal
with transition.
How well children cope with change, stress, loss and uncertainty depends greatly on
how securely bonded they are, what we teach them to believe about themselves,
how connected they feel, and how much safety they are given to release and heal
their emotional hurts. (n.p.)
TCC experience many separations during their developmental years (Pollock &
Van Reken. 2001). Therefore, for emotional stability that comes through sound
attachments, they need a strong, continuing relationship with their parents.
270 EBBECK AND REUS
Feelings of displacement and rejection are normal, even in TCC who are
comfortable with transition. Age has a relative influence in how TCC feel when
they are relocated. To keep the effects of international assignments on children as
positive as possible, their socioemotional needs must be sensitively considered,
especially by their parents.
According to Leo (2003), "We nurture our children's resilience when we focus
on their strengths, spend enough time with them to stay connected to them, and
to create safe space for them to work through their fears and feelings" (n.p.).
O'Connell (2003) described the reactions of children aged from 6 to 12 years old
when they relocate.
Elementary-aged children are at the point where they are worried about losing
friends, making friends, everyday routines and activities, and attending a new
school. In addition to discussing these fears, parents should research the host area
prior to the move in order to inform their children about new recreational activities,
schools and communities. Allowing children to accompany their parents on a pre-
assignment trip will also allow them to explore the new area on their own, see where
they will be living and possibly meet some new friends. (n.p.)
When children enter school they search for more information about themselves;
they often refer "to social groups in their self-descriptions" (Livesley & Bromley,
cited in Berk, 2002, p. 484).
The self-concept of children at the end of early childhood and at the beginning
of middle childhood changes considerably. They start to make social comparisons
(Berk, 2002), they watch television, attend movies, and widen their circle of
friends and adults outside the family. They also become more aware of similari-
ties and differences in others' behavior and feelings, thus enabling them to
strengthen their identification to a social, racial, religious, or national group
(Ames & Haber, 1990). This generalization of 8-year-old children enhances the
importance of belonging to a group and is an important challenge for TCC. Peer
relationships become the beginning of a major socioemotional developmental
stage. Children's friendships are extremely important, as they follow them
through the developmental stages from early childhood to adolescence.
Pollock and Van Reken (2001) pointed out some of the challenges faced by
TCC with respect to relationships.
Because TCKs often cope with high mobility by defining their sense of rootedness
in terms of relationships, rather than geography, many TCKs will go to greater
lengths than some people might consider normal to nurture relational ties with others—
be they family members, friends with whom the TCKs have shared boarding school
years, or other important members of their third culture community. Unfortunately,
that same mobility can result in relationships being a source of great conflict and
pain as well. (p. 131)
17. EXPERIENCES OF THIRD-CULTURE CHILDREN 271
These sources of pain, conflict, and external changes can cause significant
feelings of grief and loss. "Unresolved grief ranks as the second greatest challenge
TCC face" (p. 165) in their journey. TCC experience feelings of loss for many
reasons. As globally mobile children acquiring knowledge and experiences in
their daily life, they have more to lose than their counterparts who stay in one
location. They lose homes, schools, friends, and relatives.
The problem is that in these types of losses, no one actually died or was divorced,
and nothing was physically stolen. Contrary to obvious losses, there are no mark-
ers, no rites of passage recognizing them as they occur—no recognized way to
mourn. (p. 172)
Current literature on TCC clearly shows that these children experience many
social and emotional challenges as they move through their early development in
varying cultural contexts. These challenges are not necessarily negative and can
and should be positive, thereby enriching the children's development in ways that
non-TCC cannot experience. For young children beginning their lives as TCC, the
home and the school play a crucial role in enabling their sound development to
occur as normally as possible. No studies had been carried out to date in
Singapore, and research was needed to define this is problem there.
Methodology
A qualitative approach was adopted to "understand individuals' perception of the
world" (Bell, 2002, p. 7), in this case to discover the feelings of children during
transition to a new foreign school in Singapore. The frequency of mentioned
feelings also was taken into account and necessitated a quantitative approach be
272 EBBECK AND REUS
Pilot Study
We decided to implement a pilot study with three TCC not included in the main
study to evaluate the proposed questions and forms of documentation to see if the
children would feel comfortable and have no difficulty in understanding the ques-
tions. Some changes to the questions were made as a result of feedback from the
pilot study
When both interviews were completed, we categorized the data. A subcat-
egorization of the "positive and negative feelings" was needed; to achieve this,
"negative feelings" were divided into five subcategories: after shock, insecure,
outcast, extreme, and passive. Positive feelings were divided into well-adjusted
passive and well-adjusted active. Again, this subcategorization was in agreement
with Van Reken's (2001) stage except for the addition of the well-adjusted pas-
sive subcategory (see Table 1).
Rich data were gathered from the children, as shown in the following samples of
their qualitative responses. These are grouped into themes as follows to answer
the research questions.
Question 1: What are TCC's feelings when they enter an overseas school?
In Week 1, common themes were scared, bored, nervous, shy, and different:
. "I feel scared, because I don't know anybody. I feel bored in the bus ride."
. "I feel nervous; it's such a big school. I thought I would get lost. I felt scared
because I got lost on the first day."
17. EXPERIENCES OF THIRD-CULTURE CHILDREN 273
TABLE 1
Comparative Categorization of Feelings From Van Reken (2001) and the Current Study
"I felt shy; I did not know anybody, and I did not think I would meet my
teacher."
"I felt scared: I thought I would not have fun at recess because I did not
know anyone."
"I felt nervous; I have never been in a big school and I felt shy; I never met
the people here."
"I felt shy. I am always that way. I was scared; I did not know who my
teacher was."
"I felt nervous; I did not know anything about the school."
"I felt different, everybody else was not new."
At the end of 8 weeks, the qualitative responses were grouped into themes of
positive and negative.
274 EBBECK AND REUS
. "I feel stressed; school day needs to be shorter. I have lots of homework and
after school activities to do. I get tired of school sometimes. I am anxious to
end school and have a long break."
. I am tired."
. "I feel tired. I have to get up soooo early!"
. "I feel very tired; we are busy all the time."
. "I feel scared. I am new so I still don't know well the teachers and when they
talk to me I am scared."
. "I feel different; each day different things happen and it affects how I feel."
. "I feel behind; I messed up on my spelling words."
Some of the children's comments in Week 8 were more negative than in Week 1,
indicating tiredness, boredom, too much work, and anxiety about tests. Inferences
drawn from this include the possibility that some of the excitement of starting a
new school had worn off.
The emotional toll exacted by the transition affected some children physically
and emotionally in their expressions of feeling tired and enduring long days.
However, positive feelings also emerged and countered some of the negative.
These showed that the transitional stage was ending and that children were more
settled. Common themes (positive feelings) of feeling relaxed or excited also
emerged. The experience of making friends and being accepted by teachers
showed the importance of the social elements of transition. In addition, being able
to achieve academically was viewed positively by four of the children.
Subcategorization of the positive and negative feelings was carried out according
to adaptations made using Van Reken's (2001) model. Nine of the 11 children
were categorized as well-adjusted passive, and two were categorized as well-
adjusted active. This showed a considerable growth in being satisfied and posi-
tive about the school environment.
The results from this small sample showed that children did indeed feel vulnerable,
different, and nervous about starting a new foreign school in an unknown country. The
sense of belonging was not there initially, but it did emerge in the children's initial
responses. The loss of their friends and a new cultural context created emotional chal-
lenges and anxieties that the children readily expressed in their oral and written com-
ments. Forging new friendships, being accepted by understanding teachers, and
experiencing academic success were important for many of the 11 children. Again,
children were able and willing to document freely how they felt at the end of 8 weeks.
The emotional needs of TCC must not be underestimated, because they have
additional challenges to overcome. They need to belong and become part of a new
culture whether in school or in their new home location. If children are success-
ful in overcoming these challenges, the resilience they have shown should help
them to continue to accept change and ultimately become part of the new cultural
context in which they live.
Although the outcomes of this small study confirm the commonly held view
of international schools where most of the children are TCC, the same results
might not be obtained in noninternational school situations. Thus, it is even more
crucial that teachers (and parents) appreciate the situations experienced by their
TCC and understand their subsequent behavior. Children who relocate bring (and
take) with them attributes of their own and other cultures, and so the process of
acculturation continues. Although the sample size in this study was small and the
results cannot be generalized, the findings are interesting and do provide a data-
base that could be extended in the future.
REFERENCES
Adams Report 2001: Third Culture Kids. Retrieved December 25, 2002 from http://www.globalas
signment.com/10-04-01 /thirdculturekids .html
Allan, M. (2002). Cultural borderlands: A case study of cultural dissonance in an international school.
Journal of Research in International Education, 7(1), 63-90.
Ames, L. B., & Haber, C. C (1990). Your Eight-Year Old, Lively and Outgoing. New York: Dell.
Bell, B. (2002). Doing Your Research Project: a Guide for First-Time Researchers in Education and
Social Science. Milton Keynes, UK: Open University Press.
276 EBBECK AND REUS
Berk, L. E. (2002). Infants, Children, and Adolescents. Boston, MA: Allyn and Bacon.
Glicksberg-Skipper, R. (2000). Growing up abroad offers advantages. Transition Abroad Magazine,
24(2). Retrieved December 10, 2003, from http://www.transitionsabroad.com/publications/
magazine/0009/third_culture_kids_ Research.shtml
Global Assignment Americans Abroad—The Adams Report 2001: Third Culture Kids. Retrieved
December 25, 2002, from http://www.echointernational.com/Adams_Report/JAdams%20
Newsletter%2010.2pdf
Leo, P. (2003). Nurturing Our Children's Resilience. Retrieved December 15, 2003, from
http://www.connectionparenting.com/parenting_articles/resilience.html
McCaig, N. M. (1994, September). Growing up with a world view: Nomad children develop multi-
cultural skills. Foreign Service Journal, 32-41. Retrieved December 26, 2003, from http://www.
kaiku.com/nomads.html
Miller, E. (2003). Faces of many places: "Growing up in another culture has its benefits and pitfalls—
And lessons for stay-at-home." Indianapolis Star [online]. Retrieved June 23, 2003, from http://
www.figt.org/incEngine/inc_uploads/figt/Faces%20of%20many%20places%20-%20Indystar%
20121902.pdf
Newman, T., & Blackburn, S. (2002). Transitions in the lives of children and young people:
resilience factors. Interchange, 78 [online]. Retrieved October 8, 2003, from http://www.Scotland.
gov.uk/library5/education/ic78-00.asp
O'Connell, J. (2003). Helping expat kids bridge the culture gap. National Relocation and Real Estate
Magazine. Retrieved April 26, 2006, from http://www.rismedia.com/index.php/article/article-
view/4052/1/383/
Pollock, D. C., & Van Reken, R. E. (2001). Third Culture Kids: The Experience of Growing Up
Among Worlds. Yarmouth, ME: Intercultural Press.
Roman, B. D. (2003). Relocating our small movers. Families in Global Transitions, [online].
Retrieved December 6, 2003, from Adams Report 2001, Third Culture Kids.
Van Reken, R. (2001, March). Third Culture Kids—Raising Children in a Cross-Cultural World and
Making the Most of the Journey. Paper presented at the Supportive Parents and Resource
Conferences, Singapore.
Zoetmulder, E. J. (2003, May). Making sense of education—For professionals. Teach! 20-21.
APPENDIX I
THIS IS MY STORY
My name is
passport. I lived in
before I
came to Singapore.
My father is from and
my mother is from
. I live with
because
because
278 EBBECK AND REUS
because
Hilary Fabian
North East Wales Institute of Higher Education, United Kingdom
Cari Roberts
Service Children's Education, Germany
There is little doubt that frequent changes of school and country can bring both
benefits and challenges to children as they weave together living in a number of
varying cultures with a high-mobility lifestyle (Pollock & Van Reken, 2001).
Children whose parents are in the armed forces may experience multiple interna-
tional changes because of their parents' careers, but they often move with the
same group of people. Although they might be moving with friends, they still go
through the process of settling into their new school in terms of getting to know
the people and the environment, and they expect some curriculum continuity
(Fabian, 2002b). In this chapter, we suggest that children's agency is key to the
success of their transfer and that they will gain greater benefits from each move
if they are involved in the decision-making processes.
Just as teachers take time to know their students, children take time to "build a
picture" of their new school, adapt to any change in culture, and make sense of
279
280 FABIAN AND ROBERTS
their new surroundings (Bruner, 1996). Ballinger (2001) suggested that they also
need to explore the depth of their connection to the new country and consider how
they are going to fit in or not bother to fit in if they believe that they will have to
move again soon. Much of the ease of settling in has to do with high self-esteem,
but this might be difficult to achieve if children have negative feelings about the
new school (Fabian, 2002a). Negativity could arise from lack of curriculum con-
tinuity or because friendships, which play a significant role in transfer, may have
been broken in the move (Noyes, 2004).
Mobility does not necessarily have a negative effect on children. Pollock and
Van Reken (2001) pointed out that many students also gain valuable learning expe-
riences and benefits. Students can become adaptable and flexible, become confident
with change, gain a wide network of friends and value relationships, develop a
sense of realism and the importance of now, and become adept at closure.
Many schools devote energy to efforts to smooth the emotional and social
transfer process (Galton, Gray, & Rudduck, 1999). Nevertheless, it could be
argued that preoccupation with social factors makes it difficult for students to
focus on learning. The Office for Standards in Education (OFSTED, 2002) did
not include service children in their survey about mobility because the study was
less concerned with large-scale planned movement, such as military postings,
than with individual transfers. Nevertheless, curriculum continuity was raised as
a key concern. Not all armed forces personnel move as a large group. Some move
as individual families, which continues to be of major concern to the Service
Children's Authority (Chislett, 2001). Tracking individual students' movements,
particularly those with special educational needs (SENs), has implications for the
education service as a whole (Mott, 2002). Mott suggested that collecting data to
track students be given priority in order for them to remain known to the system.
Children who move from one country to another might have particular diffi-
culties during transfer. Whatever the circumstances of the change, there is "a
widespread assumption that pupil mobility is disruptive to education, either
directly, by disrupting curriculum continuity and progression, or indirectly,
through domestic stress or poor social adjustment" (Strand, 2002, pp. 63-64).
The current focus on citizenship in the curriculum in the United Kingdom
might help to begin to address the issue of disruption during transfer. By having
a voice in the planning for each move, children learn how they can influence their
lives; empathize with others; and acquire the knowledge, skills, and values to
equip them to participate in decision making. Thus, they gain a sense of self-
esteem and a belief that people can make a difference.
Ballinger (2000) documented three steps in the transfer process for children of
armed forces personnel: a disengagement phase, an interim stage, and a reintegration
18. CHILDREN AS GLOBAL CITIZENS 281
phase. If the move is made at short notice, Ballinger suggested that the
disengagement phase would be brief. For those who know about their posting
some months in advance, the disengagement phase is characterized by spending
more time and energy preparing to leave the current situation than in trying to live
in it. However, she also suggested that once a family is relocated, it can take up
to 12 months before the members have fully engaged with the new situation. The
aim of this study was to identify the views of children and their parents about
their moves from one country to another, to explore how teachers and parents
seek ways to make the continuity of learning between transitions meaningful, and
to consider how those in transition themselves make decisions that help them set-
tle into their new school.
The participants were children who had moved between a number of coun-
tries, including Germany, Australia, Cyprus, and the UK in the course of their
parents' work. Parents and teachers at a forces school in Germany also took part.
Listening to children and working with them to develop their ideas into strate-
gies to address their anxieties and expectations is an important dimension of the
transition process. "There is now increasing recognition and acceptance that
children's views and perspectives need to be heard both as an ethical imperative and
also as a matter of practical utility and efficacy" (Davie & Galloway, 1996, p. 3).
This study has three key areas of questioning and recognizes that children's
ideas, approaches to life, choices, and relationships are viewed in their own right
(James & Prout, 1997). In particular, these are the level of social and emotional
well-being surrounding transition; strategies for dealing with change; and strate-
gies for supporting continuity of curriculum.
The forces community outside the United Kingdom is interesting because of the
absence of the extended family—grandparents, uncles and aunts, and so forth—
and the predominance of homemaker parents. Although the number of service-
women who are the main wage earners and service wives who have been able to
find a job has risen, in many families, the father is still the wage earner and the
mother stays at home.
The research was conducted in a Service Children's Education (SCE) primary
school in Germany. Six classes of years 4, 5, and 6 students (122 children in all,
aged between 8 and 11 years) each used one of their regular class discussion
lessons to talk with one of the researchers, who also teach at the school, about
their views on the lives they lead. These sessions often focused on personal and
social issues to help give students the knowledge, skills, and understanding they
need to lead confident, healthy, independent lives and to become informed, active,
and responsible citizens.
282 FABIAN AND ROBERTS
Most children in the school came from one close-knit Scottish regiment, and
most had moved four times. A few children had moved five or six times, and one,
whose father was part of a small unit and not part of the regiment, had moved
seven times. The main moves were undertaken as a whole regiment and were
between the United Kingdom and Cyprus, Cyprus and the United Kingdom,
England and Scotland, and the United Kingdom and Germany. A small number
of parents (28) were invited to an informal social after-school gathering organized
by the researcher. The parents were asked the same questions as the children
about their experience of moving. Two teachers were also interviewed after
school to triangulate the data. The discussion section that follows shows the rich-
ness of the discussions that took place.
All names of parents, teachers, and children have been changed to preserve
anonymity. Participants were informed that their comments would be used in a
small-scale research project that was aimed at supporting children's learning in a
mobile community. All were satisfied with this and gave their consent.
FINDINGS
This section shows the questions followed by the key findings and an informal
account of the responses. The quotes included here represent issues about the
move, friendships, school, the curriculum, and activities to support the transfer.
Although the questions were asked at different times, by presenting the responses
in this way, we can see the thoughts of parents, children, and teachers juxtaposed
so that the varying perspectives become clear. The common themes are explored
further in the key findings and discussion section.
For my son the moving about has been a good thing. It's made him more sociable.
He's only moved as part of a big thing—the whole regiment moving. He always
knows that his mates will be there when he gets to the next place.
18. CHILDREN AS GLOBAL CITIZENS 283
My daughter is getting a bit sick of moving. She wants her own bedroom at home
to come home to and I have to admit that we do chuck stuff away—stuffed toys and
so on—every time we move, so there's not a lot left from when she was really
little. I think she'll be glad when we get posted back to the UK. We'll be going to
Scotland and staying. He [the husband] can do the next one unaccompanied.
Lucinda lives in Germany and is the mother of two boys who are in a boarding school
in the United Kingdom. She has worked in an SCE school but no longer does so.
That's one of the reasons we sent the boys off to school. They didn't like all the
packing up and moving, and I do think it affects the standards in schools. I think the
children miss a lot in all the packing up at one end and settling down at the next. I
do think the children are less committed to a school because they know they're not
going to be there for long.
Sheila lives in Germany and is the mother of a 14-year-old girl who is a weekly
boarder at an SCE school in Germany. Her husband works for NATO, and the
family has moved six times.
The moving about was a nightmare for my daughter when she was little. She kept
having to start different systems. It was all phonic stuff in one place and then it
would be learning flashcards at another and so on. Mind you, I work in school, and
I can see that the National Curriculum and all the planning that the teachers do
means that the children are studying the same things wherever they are in the world.
I was very concerned about her reading, but in terms of whether she was happy or
not, I would say she was quite relaxed about it. She doesn't much like it now
because she has discovered boys and also the friendships you make when you're a
teenager are much more intense, aren't they? It's getting harder to keep saying
goodbye to them.
Justin (10 years old) said, "I don't mind moving. We all stick together. I mean,
you get some new ones and some people leave if their dad leaves the army—but
usually we're together." Jo (10) said, "I've got a bit sick of it. Stuff gets thrown
out but it's normally just baby stuff that I don't play with."
Holly (10) said,
I get nervous when I go to a new place because we don't move like everyone else;
I mean we move a lot! I get scared sometimes. When we move I stay out of the way
because my mum gets in a real stress and shouts at my dad because he doesn't do
anything to help.
Kate is a teacher who has taught in SCE schools in Germany and worked with
forces families in various welfare roles since 1977.
284 FABIAN AND ROBERTS
I think it's remarkable how well children seem to adapt to moving about. I've met a
few nervous ones, one who was genuinely school phobic but he was the son of a
civilian worker and it was a whole new experience for him. I'm always amazed by
how a new unit or regiment arrives and the children turn up, usually on a bus from
the quartering area, check out the new place, hang their coats up and get on with it.
I don't think the children are less committed to a school because they're moving. I
don't think children think in those terms anyway, but I'm always impressed by how
children make a school their own really quickly and develop a sense of pride in the
place. I think our children are resourceful and sociable and I'm almost certain that
life with the military has helped them develop that part of their character. Often I
think it depends on how the parents present the move to them. Some, it has to be
said it's the mothers usually, get rather stressed and I don't think that helps. It's an
unbalanced community in a way as, over here, most mothers are at home—there's
not a lot of work available—and the extended family, grannies and aunties and so
on, are back in the UK and not around the corner.
How Far Ahead Do You or Your Children Like to Know About a Move? Is
It Easier to Know at the Last Minute? If You Know a Long Time in
Advance, Do You or Your Children Think About It a Lot? Does Knowing
About a Move Affect How You or Your Children Think About Schoolwork?
The findings here indicate that people have varying coping strategies when they learn
that they are moving. These range from shutting out the knowledge of the move until
the last minute to wanting more time to say goodbye to the place and the people.
Andrea (parent) said,
The thought of moving doesn't seem to worry my son. We never tell him more than
a couple of months in advance, even if we know, but I think it's as important for him
as it is for me that he has a chance to say Cheerio to people.
I dread telling her now because she gives me that look. I feel so guilty. I am won-
dering whether she'd be better off in a boarding school in the UK, near her granny
but then I'd never see her at weekends.
The following exchange took place between Justin and Andrew in the group
interview.
Andrew (10): I don't think about it. I get told and then I put it at the back of my
mind until I have to do something about it. I'm too busy in school to think about it
but I suppose we talk about it on the bus and the playground, you know, like where
we're going and stuff.
18. CHILDREN AS GLOBAL CITIZENS 285
Justin (10): I'm leaving today. I'm not in the regiment here. I'm feeling a bit upset
because I got on with people here. I've known for a few weeks. I suppose I prefer
to know for a while but it has been on my mind. I don't work any differently, no
really, don't laugh, Andrew. My books are going to my new school so my Mum says
that they shouldn't look like a mess or they'll think I'm, you know, dumb.
Jamie (10): I didn't know we were going to Australia until just before we went.
[Jamie's father took the family to Australia for a year as part of a military exchange
program], but I didn't have to say goodbye really because we'd be coming back. But
when we got back to the regiment, everyone here had moved. The Australian school
was okay, a bit different, but everyone was friendly. I tried to keep up. In some
lessons we were doing stuff that I'd already done and some stuff I'd never heard of.
I'd missed a bit here when we came back but Miss X showed me what to do and I'm
all right now.
Chris (9): I like to know about it at the last minute because I do think about it, you
know, what the new place is going to be like and if someone is bullying you here
you think will they be there again when you move.—It did happen to me at one
place, not here, but his dad got chucked out of the army and he had to leave, ha ha!"
I think most of them cope really well but I've known a few children who have just
switched off as soon as they knew they were leaving and some, the older ones
mainly, who've been really sad. We get one or two behavioral problems but they're
usually the children who would react in the same way no matter what the change in
their lifestyle was, you know, in the UK it would be mother's new boyfriend or
something similar.
Could the School Do Anything to Help Make Moving Easier? Have You
Been Anywhere That Was a Really Good Move for Some Reason? Is the
Whole Business of Settling in Easier If the Next School Is an SCE School
Rather Than a Civilian One?
Responses to this question indicate that seeing pictures of the next school
is important, and this can be facilitated with information and communication
technology (ICT); friendships and memories can ease the transfer, and informa-
tion about students that is passed to the next teacher is not always recognized as
relevant.
Sheila (parent) said, "Now that we've got all this ICT, computers and the
Internet, the children could go on their next school's Web site and find out about
it." Andrea (parent) said, "Those little movie cameras that Mr. M (ICT coordina-
tor) has just bought would be great for putting moving images on."
286 FABIAN AND ROBERTS
George (9): We went to this brilliant school in Ireland. [Brilliant is a term for
something very good.]
Chris (9): Oh yeah! That was really brilliant. It had an adventure playground and
everything.—it wasn't an army school but we did all go there.
George: It was brilliant because the teachers were a bit strict but we did lots of inter-
esting things as well. No one really cared about what your dad did or anything.—I
made new friends by seeing where the footballs were kept and then I just went and
got one and said, "Do you want to play?" to people.
Chris: I didn't. I just sort of watched and then someone came and kicked me and I
said "don't" and then George came and said, "don't kick my friend," and then a
teacher came.—When we knew we were leaving, our teacher let us all make scrap-
books—memories, you know, like pictures of places we'd been and everyone in the
class signed each other's. I've still got mine.
George: I don't know where mine is. I think my mum put it in a box for moving and
it got lost.
Tom (10): It would be good if the school you were leaving got information about
the next school, wherever it was.
Justin (10): You could get brochures, like the one here [the School Council in this
school helped to put together the school brochure], and you could do it on disk.
Justin: Movies, like the little ones did. [Foundation Stage children had shown their
pictures using the new moving picture recorders at a recent assembly]
Jo (10): We got the one from the boarding school and that had a disc with it and it
had pictures of the classrooms on it. That makes me feel better, just looking at where
we're going to be.
When the teachers were asked about how the they could make the transition
between schools easier for children, Kate replied,
Teachers do a lot to try to make a smooth transition. We send all the current books
and the usual mountain of paperwork with all the statistics. I'm not sure people
really read it all. These days they just want to know what level they are.
James (9): I have a lady that helps me. I like her. She lives in our road. I've always
had help in every school and I like that, because I get things wrong a lot. I don't
mind moving about but I think I might remember things better if I didn't.
Tally (James' learning support assistant): I haven't known James very long but I
think we get along all right. James has a problem with remembering things and he
has some difficulties relating to other people. His teacher suspects that he may be
autistic. If he is autistic, then moving about is going to be the worst thing for him.
He's all right if he knows his routine. But then, if he is diagnosed as autistic his
father will be sent back to the UK and there'll be a block on him being posted and
that'll mean he won't get promoted, so you can see that the parents aren't keen for
us to find anything "wrong" with him.
I don't know if I think that moving affects the children's education. I thought we
had a disproportionate number of children with special needs until I spent a few
years in schools in the UK, and now I think our children are pretty well behaved and
motivated and do rather well although, in terms of all the tests we have to do they
are performing below the national average in almost everything. I don't have a lot
of faith in tests—any tests—for young children.
I don't think we have any more SEN problems than in the UK and those we do
don't really have to do with the children moving, although for some children it's
frustrating because you just get them started with something and they form a rela-
tionship with the helper and then one of them leaves. We do have a problem with
the time it takes to put strategies in place. There's a big shortage of speech thera-
pists, for example, and I have real problems getting Ed Psych consultations
because of the pressure on the department. There's a big problem with funding. No
one understands that you can't just magic up extra hours of help. But that's not to
do with the children moving; it's to do with the organization of things at the top in
education.
Opinions about the effect of turbulence on the education of service children vary
widely. Even the children themselves hold differing views, although most chil-
dren in this admittedly small and informal sample who expressed views appeared
fairly sanguine about their lifestyle. One teacher, Kate, appeared to think that the
attitude of the parents was a contributing factor to the children's viewing move-
ment as a positive experience.
288 FABIAN AND ROBERTS
Many of the children appeared to think that moving in the forces was a straight-
forward experience and because of how the services take the culture with them, this
may well be so. Wherever the children go in the world, they can still buy their famil-
iar treats and the parents can buy many of their favorite foods in the Navy, Army and
Airforce Institutes (NAAFI) chain of shops. For some children, a move appears to
be no more than an inconvenience. A few younger children appeared to be unhappy
about moving, but more of the older children—primarily girls—were tired of the
mobile lifestyle. Most followed Justin's attitude and did not mind moving because
they moved with friends. However, the making and breaking of friendships is a
major factor in transitions. Penn (2005) referring to Dunn's (1913) work, considered,
Friendships can offer warmth and security, perspective taking, conflict resolution,
moral understanding and a sense of self. Some young children have considerable
powers of understanding, sensitivity and intimacy. Friends may quarrel more, but
life with friends is more distinctive and more exciting. (p. 53)
Children are less likely to learn well and profit from school without the support
of friends. In addition, how children feel about themselves in relation to their
peers lays the emotional foundations for them to gain confidence for learning.
Most of the children in this study had the advantage of moving with friends as the
regiment usually moved as a whole, but they also took the opportunity to make
new friends. However, children of attached personnel may find transfer more dif-
ficult as they usually move individually and at a different time from most of their
friends, as witnessed by Jamie who found on his return that everyone had moved.
There appeared to be almost no anecdotal evidence of the children undergoing
any noticeable period of disengagement or reengagement in moving, such as that
outlined in Ballinger's (2000) study. This may be because the children were
familiar with the process by which books and records are transferred from school
to school, which gives an impression of continuity. It also may be connected with
how they perceive themselves as belonging to a community that moves within a
defined area: that collection of places in the world where the forces serve accom-
panied by their families. Jamie, whose family went to Australia for a year on an
exchange program, was clear about this being an excursion. He talked about tak-
ing part in the life of the Australian school, but it was clear that he saw it as time
out from the familiar system.
There was no doubt in the minds of teachers and parents that the introduction of
the National Curriculum, and lately the availability of standardized planning for
mathematics, English, and science, has been of benefit to the education of service
children. The children know that when they transfer within the education system,
the work will be familiar and that they will know how to do it. They also know that
their progress is tracked and that they will take the same tests wherever they are.
18. CHILDREN AS GLOBAL CITIZENS 289
A key factor that arose from this study was the finding that when children were
consulted about transferring schools, they took a mature attitude to supporting
others and dealing with issues. Recognizing children's competence to deal with
their own lives can help adults reflect on the limitations of their understanding of
children's lives (Clark & Moss, 2001). They appeared to enjoy the experience of
discussing their lifestyle and sometimes became quite animated. When the
children were told that their views would be considered seriously and included in
a wider work examining the effect of moving on education, they were keen to
extend some of the points raised by making notes for the School Council to con-
sider, particularly about making information brochures for new students in the
school. They considered it important to recognize and acknowledge the feelings
of others. Involving children in making choices and decisions in factors that affect
their lives helps them to recognize their rights and responsibilities. The theme that
arose continually was the potential use of ICT. It was clear that the children and
their parents saw themselves now as part of a global community. It has become
routine for them to exchange e-mails with friends and with family they do not see
often. As much of the curriculum for 7- to 11-year-olds in the United Kingdom
includes the chance to use ICT skills, perhaps this might form a basis for future
development.
This study indicates that a fundamental shift in the relationship between chil-
dren and adults takes place if children are consulted about issues that affect them.
Adults were once the assumed holders of knowledge, wisdom, and power, and
children were seen as passive recipients in the transitions that they made. Today
the relationship has more to do with negotiation and with children being given an
increasing say in their lives. This is demonstrated by some children deciding that
they would prefer to stay in one place and attend boarding school rather than
continually move homes. By recognizing that others need their support, some
children were able to take issues to the School Council to negotiate a better future
for others.
The examples outlined in this study in which children were consulted with
genuine intentions and a whole-school commitment are bringing great benefits.
They help to offset the adult bias in the educational agenda and place issues
such as curriculum continuity and emotional well-being much higher on the list
of priorities. They also give young people a real experience of democratic
processes through the School Council. Citizenship learning is developmental.
It starts with children understanding themselves, leads to them understanding
their role in their immediate community, and finally leads to them considering
their role in society as a whole. Providing meaningful opportunities for children
to make decisions that will help them settle into their new school and develop
structures and processes will help them gain much-needed skills for their role
as citizens.
290 FABIAN AND ROBERTS
It can be seen from this study that most of the children developed resilience in
dealing with change. If they had prior knowledge of the next school, moving with
friends gave them the emotional foundations needed for them to gain confidence
for learning and to feel in control of their lives.
It is clear that children's participation in discussions and decisions about real-
life problems can encourage them to listen to one another, consider the needs of
others, and begin to solve problems. However, this requires teachers and parents
allowing children to take responsibility. The study raises a number of questions
for future research including the following.
. How else can children be helped to make decisions about transfer to the next
school?
. How can learners' differences be catered for during transfer?
. What place might ICT have in enhancing transitions?
. How can transitions help citizenship skills be developed further?
REFERENCES
Ballinger, A. (2000, July). Psychological dimensions to transition. Paper presented at the Wiltshire
County Council Smoothing out Turbulence conference, Bradford-on-Avon, Bath, UK.
Ballinger, A. (2001, July). Mobility: information for teachers and other staff who work with service
children. Paper presented at the Shropshire Service Schools' conference Pupil Mobility: What does
it mean?/What can we do? Albrighton, UK.
Bruner, J. (1996). The Culture of Education. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press.
Chislett, M. (2001, July). Turbulence and mobility. Paper presented at the Shropshire Service Schools'
conference Pupil Mobility: What does it mean?/What can we do? Albrighton, UK.
Clark, A., & Moss, P. (2001). Listening to Young Children: The Mosaic Approach. London: National
Children's Bureau and Joseph Rowntree Foundation.
Davie, R., & Galloway, D. (1996). The voice of the child in education. In R. Davie & D. Galloway
(Eds.), Listening to Children in Education (pp. 1-14). London: David Fulton.
Fabian, H. (2002a). Children Starting School. London: David Fulton.
Fabian, H. (2002b). Empowering children for transitions. In H. Fabian & A.-W. Dunlop (Eds.),
Transitions in the Early Years. London: RoutledgeFalmer.
Galton, M., Gray, J., & Rudduck, J. (1999). The Impact of School Transitions and Transfers on Pupil
Progress and Attainment: Research Report RR131. London: DfEE, HMSO.
James, A., & Prout, A. (Eds.). (1997). Constructing and Reconstructing Childhood: Contemporary
Issues in the Sociological Study of Childhood. London: Falmer.
Mott, G. (2002). Children on the Move: Helping High Mobility Schools and Their Pupils. Slough,
UK: National Foundation for Educational Research.
Noyes, A. (2004). Learning landscapes. British Educational Research Journal, 30(\), 27-41.
18. CHILDREN AS GLOBAL CITIZENS 291
Office for Standards in Education (OFSTED). (2002). Managing Pupil Mobility (Reference No. HMI
403). Retrieved July 24, 2004 from http://www.ofsted.gov.uk/public/docs2/managingmobility.pdf
Penn, H. (2005). Understanding Early Childhood. Maidenhead, UK: Open University Press.
Pollock, D. C , & Van Reken, R. E. (2001). Third Culture Kids: The Experience of Growing Up
Among Worlds. Yarmouth, ME: Intercultural Press.
Strand, S. (2002). Pupil mobility, attainment and progress during key stage 1: A study in cautious
interpretation. British Educational Research Journal, 28(\), 63-78.
Chapter 19
Esra Omeroglu
Adalet Kandir
Gazi University, Turkey
Leah D. Adams
Eastern Michigan University, USA
Societal life emerged from people's need to solve their common problems together.
Interactions among the people make it possible for a society to meet their economic,
social, cultural, and administrative needs. Societies are dynamic constitutions and
structures and change is their own most important characteristic; migration can be
considered as one of the indications of societal change (Kağitçibaşi, 2003b; Yalçin,
2004). The urbanization process that started concurrently with the industrialization
process can be seen clearly through the changes in a society's economic and social
structure. The main reason behind migration that occurs from small town to large
cities is the rising demand for the work force in the urban areas. Migration from vil-
lages to metropolitan centers can be considered as one of the requirements of indus-
trialization, as well as a symbol of modernization process (Kağitçibaşi 2003a;
Tezcan, 2000). In Turkey, rural to urban migrants are generally seen as a group of
non-city dwellers, and their integration into urban society is considered to be the
293
294 O M E R O Ğ L U , KANDIR, ADAMS
only way to solve the problems that arise from the migration process. It also could
be said that migrants' integration into the cities are directly connected with their
adaptation skills (Tezcan, 1996).
The migrant family members' social surroundings and relationships that they
are accustomed to do not exist in the new place, and they lose their previous
social roles. They are disengaged from the feelings of belonging, adequacy, and
locus of control (Kalaycioglu & Rittersberger, 2000). The problems in the adap-
tation process especially affect the children's development and social adaptations
(Gökçe, 1996). The social adaptation of a migrant family's children plays an
important role in a family's integration into the city setting.
RESEARCH OBJECTIVES
Little is known about the families who move into large cities in Turkey and enroll
their children in the public schools. Migrant children are brought face to face with
a new social environment that is unfamiliar and often unaccepting of them and their
families. Because the children are not capable of protecting themselves from exter-
nal effects, they suffer more from the migration process. The sociocultural disad-
vantages that they experience after migration could permanently affect their
personality development. The new problems the migration causes for the children
are added to any prior problems. The feelings of insecurity, anxiety, and helpless-
ness that the children experience play an important role in their social adaptation
process, but limited research has focused on this subject of social adaptation and
personality development of migrant children. This descriptive study aimed to learn
of parents' and primary school teachers' opinions about social adaptation and skills
of migrant children attending primary school and to consider new ways to over-
come challenges to the development of healthy personality traits.
METHODS
Data were gathered by a questionnaire distributed to parents and teachers, using the
survey method in accordance with the aim of the study (Sumbuloglu &
Sumbuloglu, 1997) and working in cooperation with the Ministry of Education for
permission and support to gather the data. Specialists in survey methods were con-
sulted in the development of the questionnaire. The questionnaire consisted of two
sections: demographic information about the family and information related to
children's social adaptation and skills. The questionnaire had two forms. Form A
gathered information about teachers' perceptions of the children's social adapta-
tions and skills, and Form B was designed to ask parents similar questions. A pilot
study was conducted to examine the reliability and validity of the questionnaire.
19. SOCIAL ADAPTATION IN PRIMARY SCHOOL 295
Data Collection
Bursa, one of the largest industrialized cities in Turkey and the recipient of many
rural-urban migrants, was selected as the site for gathering data from parents and
teachers of children in Grades 1,3, and 5. Determining the number and location of
primary schools to include from the Bursa city center and its districts was the first
step. Because no data were available for the number of children enrolled in the
schools who were rural-urban migrants, the Directorate of National Education in
Bursa was asked to identify the primary schools in the districts estimated to have
the highest percentage of migrant residents. The parents and teachers in those
schools were informed of the study. Once the schools were identified, it was learned
that the number of migrant children attending third grade and fourth grade was
about equal, with a smaller number enrolled in fifth grade. The decision was made
to include parents and teachers of children at fourth grade level in the data collec-
tion, along with those from Grades 1,3, and 5 (Cingi, 1994, Table 1).
Several researchers familiar with the purpose of the study and trained in how the
survey was to be conducted met with the principals in the selected schools to inform
them about the study and the procedures. The sample for the parent survey consisted
of those parents who volunteered to participate and the teachers of their children.
Because it would be difficult for teacher to fill out the scales for all of the children
because of the size of the classes, teachers filled out the scales only for the children
whose parents had voluntarily agreed to complete a questionnaire. The teachers col-
lated their own Form A for a child with the Form B that child's parents had submit-
ted and sent them to the Directorate of National Education in Bursa as a set.
Data Analysis
A t-test was run to analyze whether there were differences between the parents'
and teachers' perceptions about the migrant children's social adaptation and skills
according to the frequency distribution of responses.
A Kruskal-Wallis test was run to analyze the effects such as the location from
which the parents migrated, parents' age, and their education levels on the
children's social adaptation and skills. Mann-Whitney test was run to determine
whether the family structure, frequency of visiting the home community, level of
families' perceptions of themselves as urban dwellers, or family regret about
migrating affects the children's social adaptation and skills (Koklii &
Büyüköztürk, 2000).
TABLE 1
The Cronbach Alpha Reliability Coefficients for the Scale
of Social Adaptation and Skills
Scale/Factor Number of Items Cronbach Alpha
Factor 1 16 .90
Factor 2 11 .77
Factor 3 5 .54
Total 32 .90
the factor analysis, and correlations between the items were examined. The corre-
lation was generally around .30. Kaiser-Meyer-Olkin value was accounted for .82.
The result of Barlett test was also significant ( χ2 = 2214, 76, p « .001). These tests
showed that the items on the scale were appropriate for factor analysis.
The PCA determined that the scale has three factors, with only three items
loaded low on the factors. After removing those three items, PCA was used again
and showed 16 items of the scale were loaded on Factor 1. The items with the
highest loaded value were as follows: "Success in communication with friends,"
"Making friends easily," "Having empathy with others," and "Good at under-
standing others' feelings." Factor 1 was then labeled as Social Adaptation and
Skills. Factor 1 explained 20.17 % of the total variance.
Of the 11 items of the scale loaded on Factor 2, the highest loaded values were
"Being regretful for his/her unwanted behavior," "Taking pains to comply with
the rules," and "Engaging in fights with friends." Factor 2 was therefore labeled
as Socially Anadaptation (lacking social adaptation). Factor 2 explained 12.36%
of the total variance.
Loaded on Factor 3 were "Being affected by friends who do not comply with
the rules," "Prefer being alone instead of making friends," "Being shy for a long
time in unknown environment," "Making friends based on their gender," "Visiting
friends' homes," and "Preferring being with the same friends." It was thought that
those items assess the behaviors of children who show social adaptation skills in
a particular environment but do not transfer these behavioral patterns into a new
environment. Thus, Factor 3 was labeled as Limited Social Adaptation. Factor 3
explained 7.39 % of the total variance. The three factors together explained 40%
of total variance. The Cronbach alpha reliability coefficients for each factor were
found as follows: Factor 1, .90; Factor 2, .77; Factor 3 .54; and for overall scale
.90 (Table 2).
The internal consistency reliability analysis was run for parents' responses,
and the result was approximately the same with Cronbach alpha reliability coef-
ficients (internal consistency reliability for Factor 1, .80; for Factor 2, .77; for
Factor 3, .14 and for overall scale, .86). Internal consistency reliability for the
19. SOCIAL ADAPTATION IN PRIMARY SCHOOL 297
TABLE 2
Grade Levels for Children of Parents Completing Survey
Migrants Non-migrants Total
Grade n % n % n %
overall scale and for Factor 1 and Factor 2 was quite high. Internal consistency
reliability for Factor 3 was low in teachers' responses and significantly low in
parents' responses.
RESULTS
Variable Group n % n % n %
Parent's
working Mother Working 52 53.6 16 34.8 68 47.6
19. SOCIAL ADAPTATION IN PRIMARY SCHOOL 299
TABLE 4
The Result of T-test for Differences of Teachers' and Parents' Perception About the
Children Social Adaptation and Skills
Scale Group n X SS sd T p
Factor 1 Teacher 167 40.03 5.96 166 .04 .968
Parent 40.01 5.44
Factor 2 Teacher 167 25.97 3.96 166 .46 .646
Parent 25.88 3.47
Factor 3 Teacher 167 10.28 1.80 166 .54 .585
Parent 10.20 1.43
Total Teacher 167 76.29 9.60 166 .32 .747
more positive relationships with friends, more positive relationships with the
teachers, and more satisfactory relationships with their parents than the nonmi-
grant families' perceptions of their children (Table 4.)
particular environment, but they have difficulty transferring those adaptations and
skills to a new environment. A similar analysis for age of fathers did not show any
significant differences between age groups. Kruskal-Wallis analysis showed no
significant relationship between children's social adaptation and skills and the
number of children in the family, total family size, or household composition.
Significant differences in the reported children's social adaptation and skills
emerged from data analysis based on the migrant parents' level of education. In
migrant families, mothers who graduated from junior high school reported that
their children had higher social adaptation and skills compared with the mothers
who graduated from primary school, high school or other higher educational
institutions ( χ2 (2) = 15.93, p << .05). Conversely, teachers reported that the
children whose mothers graduated form high school or other higher educational
institutions had higher social adaptation and skills ( χ2 (2) = 11.51, p « .05).
These findings are significant for both Factor 1 and 2. Regarding the differences
between the teachers' and parents' perceptions of their children's social adapta-
tion and skills, it could be claimed that the mothers who graduated from high
school or other higher educational institutions have high criteria in the evaluation
process of their children. However, in nonmigrant families, there was no signifi-
cant relationship between the education level of mothers and the parents' percep-
tion of their children social adaptation and skills.
The relationship between the education level of the fathers and the children's
social adaptation and skills in both migrant and nonmigrant families also was
considered. The results showed that the education level of the fathers had a
significant effect on children's social adaptation and skills, as reported in the
surveys. The fathers who graduated from high school or higher educational insti-
tutions reported higher social adaptation and skills for their children compared
with the fathers who had lower education levels ( χ2 (2) = 17.63, p « .05). The
significance test on father's education also showed that the fathers who graduated
from junior high school reported that their children have better social adaptation
and skills ( χ2 (2) = 12.12, p « .05). The teachers concurred in that their ratings
of social adaptations and skills were higher for migrant children whose fathers
graduated from high school or higher ( χ2 (2) = 13.18, p << .05).
The data were examined for a possible link between the migration situation of
the family and the social adaptation and skills of the children, including the
family's reason for migrating, the frequency of visits to the home community,
feelings toward migration, and the degree to which family members consider
themselves city dwellers. The families were asked the reason for their migration,
and the responses were grouped under two categories: "for better life conditions"
and "for finding a job." According to the results of Mann-Whitney U test, the rea-
sons behind a family's migration have an effect on children's social adaptation
and skills. The teachers and parents reported that the children of the families that
migrated for finding a proper job have lower social adaptation and skills.
19. SOCIAL ADAPTATION IN PRIMARY SCHOOL 301
The families visiting their home community were asked the frequency of those
visits. The responses were generally "more than once in a year" or "once in a year
or less than once a year." The frequency of visiting homeland had no significant
effect on the children's social adaptation and skills.
To determine whether the locations from which the parents migrated had an
effect on the children's social adaptation and skills, a Kruskal-Wallis test was
used. The results showed that the children of families that migrated from the vil-
lage had lower social adaptation and skills than the children of families that
migrated from other cities or from abroad. The results were significant for both
parents' and teachers' scores ( χ2 (2) = 10.50, p « .05 for parents' scores) ( χ2 (2)
= 9.56, p « .05 for teachers' score).
The parents were asked whether they perceive themselves as urban dwellers;
the relationship between the families' perception of themselves as urban dwellers
and the children's social adaptation and skills was examined. The results of
Mann-Whitney test validated that families that perceive themselves as urban
dwellers reported that their children have a higher level of social adaptation and
skills (U = 815.50, p << .05).
The migrant families were asked whether they feel regret for having migrated.
The relationship between the level of regret and the children's social adaptation
and skills was examined through Mann-Whitney test. The results showed that the
children of families that have no regret for migration were evaluated as more
positive by the teachers than the children of families that have regret (U = 171,
p « .05) and parents (U = 179, p << .05).
Discussion
Many of the findings in this study ran counter to expectations, considering the
existing awareness of the abundant challenges facing rural-urban migrant fami-
lies (Tacoli, 1998). Although the data analysis failed to reveal numerous and
important significant differences between the migrant and nonmigrant partici-
pants that would cry out for prompt action from authorities at all levels, there are
many points that bear consideration. It is also possible to draw parallels between
some of the findings and related prior research.
Howard and Hodes (2000) scanned the files of 30 migrant children and their
families and 30 British children and their families who had applied to the clinic for
health problems. They found that the migrant children had psychosocial problems
rather than neurological problems. The majority of migrant parents in this study
reported that most of their children were doing well in school and that the majority
were following rules and participating in extracurricular activities. Although this is
basically consistent with the teacher's perceptions, it still indicates that there may be
underlying social adaptation issues that deserve attention for the overall ongoing
development of the child and were not uncovered in this survey process.
302 O M E R O Ğ L U , KANDIR, ADAMS
The results of the current study show that the immigrant mothers who aged
between 30 and 34 years reported that their children have higher social adapta-
tion and skills. This result is similar to the age range of mothers in a study by Coll
and his colleagues (2002) in which 85% of the mothers were around 30 years of
age. In that study, it was found that the immigrant families with children attend-
ing second and fifth grade showed lower interest in their children, which affects
the children's social adaptation and skills. The sample for this study consisted of
parents who voluntarily completed a survey. It is possible, of course, that the
more confident parents and those of the more socially adept children are the par-
ents who elected to participate. However, it also could be possible that the parents
were not keenly aware of details of their child's behavior or that migrant children
are adaptive and may not have lingering and obvious psychosocial issues.
This may be particularly true if, as found in this study, the family is comfort-
able with the migration and has adapted to the point of thinking of themselves as
urban dwellers. The social adaptation and skills of migrant children need to be
studied further, with special attention on the contrasting or similar view of par-
ents and teachers on what is socially accepted behavior and whether the inevitable
changes in a migrant child's life affects his or her social adaptation.
Kolaitis and his colleagues (2003) conducted a study with the families who
had migrated from Greece to former Soviet Union and then remigrated to Greece
at the beginning of 1980s. They examined that social adaptation and academic
skills of the immigrant families' children ages 8 to 12 years using a sample of 65
immigrant families and 41 local families. The immigrant families lived in the sub-
urb area of Athens where generally the high socioeconomic level families settled.
The teachers reported that immigrant children were more anxious and inattentive
compared with the children of local families. The immigrant families also
reported that their children had immature behavior.
The results of the current study showed that the rural-urban migrant parents
who graduated from high school or college had higher criteria to evaluate their
children's social adaptation and skills; this result is consistent with the results of
the Kolaitis and his colleagues. It also should be noted that the parents of this
rural-urban migrant sample were employed at a higher rate than the nonimmi-
grant parents (Table 3), which might make for a less stressful situation in the
home than for some of the nonimmigrant families living in the same school atten-
dance area.
The teachers in this sample perceived the children of those families that had
migrated to find work, those who had some regret about migration, and those who
did not consider themselves as city dwellers to rate lower on social adaptation and
skills than the children from other migrant families. Sir, Bayram, and Ozkan
(1998) conducted interviews with 100 families that had migrated into Diyarbakir.
The researchers utilized the posttraumatic stress disorder scale developed by
Blake et al (1990), and found that 66% of the migrant group had suffered from
19. SOCIAL ADAPTATION IN PRIMARY SCHOOL 303
posttraumatic stress disorder. The current study did not specifically investigate the
possibility of such a problem. However, that does not mean that the issue was not
there, only that it did not come to the surface with these data. In addition, the vol-
untary participation of both migrant and nonmigrant families may have skewed the
sample membership toward those who were more resilient and who had made a
more satisfactory acculturation than some other migrants. At the same time, the
results of this study support the notion that the differences between the perception
of migrant children's social adaptation and skills compared with the perception of
nonmigrant children's social adaptation and skills may be unfairly seen in terms of
social factors, rather than in the actual competencies displayed in school.
In his study about the women who migrate from rural areas to urban for eco-
nomic reasons, Erman (1997) concluded that the women who migrated to urban
areas wanted their children to live in the cities. The women have a chance to live
as a nuclear family in the city, which enhances their independence. The women
also could support their children's social adaptation and skills.
Conversely, in his study about the families that migrated from Chile to the
United States, Eastmond (1993, cited in ikkaraca & ikkaraca, 1998) reported that
the life standards of immigrant women decreased dramatically after migration.
Living in the nuclear family caused the women to be isolated from public life and
affected their social adaptation. ikkaraca and Ikkaraca (1998) showed that 54.5 %
of the immigrant women reported that they would want to migrate to big city
(Itanbul) if they have any choice. They explained that living in a big city provided
them social opportunities. This study did not explore such details of the migrant
mothers' situation, but the overall ratings of the mothers for their children's social
adaptation and skills—as well as the positive relationships with the school, the
teacher, and the parents—suggest that many migrants can, and do, make a satis-
factory transition to urban living.
This study revealed that the families migrated to reach "better life conditions"
in new settings (mean rank was 52.15 for teacher and 51.36 for parents). This
result is consistent with the results of the study by ikkaraca and ikkaraca (1998)
in which they asked the reasons of the migration for women (aged between 15
and 64 years old) who had migrated from the east part (N = 599) and west part
(N = 530) of Turkey. The results showed that the main reason for migration was
economic factors. Economic stability in the home situation can help a child to feel
confident and to be able to learn in school, and the families in this study had high
levels of employment (92.3% of the fathers and 53.6% of the mothers employed).
The limited reports of frequent visits to the home community also hint at a stable
migratory experience for the families in this study.
In a major study considering emotional and behavioral problems in migrant
children, Diler, Avci, and Seydaoglu (2003) concluded that there were signifi-
cantly more emotional (e.g., depression, anxiety, self-esteem) problems but not
behavioral problems in Turkish migrant children than in Turkish nonmigrant
304 O M E R O Ğ L U , KANDIR, ADAMS
children. They also found increased problems in migrant children with a longer
duration of residence after migration and suggested that migrant children
appeared to experience a greater degree of social hardship than did their nonmi-
grant peers. However, both the Diler et al. study and this study relied on survey
data rather than in-depth interviews or other data collection approaches. The cur-
rent study did not attempt to differentiate between short- and long-term migrant
residents, but the lack of significant difference in reported behavior problems is
consistent with our findings from the teachers or parents as to maladjustment of
the migrant children.
An overview of the literature suggests that adaptation problems arise after
rural-to-urban migration (Diler et al., 2003; Kağitçibaşi, 1987; Tacoli, 1998). It
was not easy to provide proper life conditions in new settings and to become city
dwellers. Urbanization is a process that dramatically changes people's behavior,
relationships with others, morality, and family life. (Keleş, 1983). At the same
time, the results of this study support the notion that some negative perceptions
of differences between migrant children's social adaptation and skills compared
with the perception of nonmigrant children's social adaptation and skills may be
unfairly seen in terms of social factors rather than in the actual competencies the
migrant children display in school.
Implications
The main objectives of this study were to gather information for the National
Ministry of Education about migrant families with children in school and to gain
knowledge of teachers' and parents' opinions about social adaptation and skills of
the migrant children who are attending first, third, fourth and fifth grade.
Rural-urban migration in Turkey is not likely to come to a halt, and urban areas
will continue to need to absorb migrants. The migrants arriving in the large cities
will continue to face challenges as they attempt to acculturate to the realities of
urban life. At the very highest level of state policy, those facts suggest that the
government should consider trying to lessen some of the forces behind rural-
urban migration, such as lack of employment or economic opportunity in the rural
regions, to make it feasible for families to avoid rural-urban migration in search
of work and a better way of life. Industrialized cities with large numbers of rural
migrants continuing to flow in could arrange for public programs that aim to help
adults, youths, and children with their social and cultural adaptation. Further,
vocational training courses for migrant adults and youths should be explored to
assist the families with acquiring employment that will meet the family needs in
the urban setting.
The Ministry of Education could initiate research projects in large cities to
determine the educational needs of migrant children. Activities could be arranged
for families and their children to help them with overcoming difficulties related
19. SOCIAL ADAPTATION IN PRIMARY SCHOOL 305
REFERENCES
Blake, D. D., Weathers, F. W., & Nagy, L. M. ve Ark. (1990). A Clinician Rating Scale for Assessing
Current and Lifetime PTSD. The CAPS-I. Behaviour Therapist, 13, 187-188.
Cingi, H. (1994). Sampling Theory. Beytepe, Ankara, Turkey: Hacettepe University Arts and Science
School Publication.
Coll, C. G., Akiba, D., Palacios, N., Bailey, B., Silver, R., Dimartino, L. & Chin, C. (2002). Parental
involvement in children's education: Lessons from three immigrant groups. Parenting: Science and
Practice, 2(3), 303-304.
Diler, R. S., Aci, A., & Seydaoglu, G. (2003). Emotional and behavioural problems in migrant
children. Swiss Medical Weekly, 133, 16-21. Retrieved October 17, 2005 from http://www.smw.ch
Erman, T. (1997). The Meaning of City Living for Rural Migrant Women and Their Role in Migration:
The Case of Turkey. Women's Studies International Forum, 20(2), 263-273.
Gokçe, B. (1996). Göç ve metodolojik tart:Mmalar (Discussion about migration and methodology).
II. Ulusal Sosyoloji Kongresi (Toplum ve Göç) (2nd National Congress of Sociology: The Society
and Migration) T. C. Devlet 9statistik Enstitiisii, Mersin, Turkey.
Howard, M. & Hodes, M. (2000). Psychopathology, adversity, and service utilization of young
refugees. Journal of the American Academy of Child and Adolescent Psychiatry, 39(3), 368-377.
Ikkaraca, P. & ikkaraca, 9. (1998). 1990'lar Turkiye'sinde Kadin ve Gog (Turkish Women and
Migration in the Era of 1990's) Tarih Vakf: Yayinlar:, istanbul: Bilanço 98: 75 Y:lda Koylerden
Lehirlere, 305-322.
Kağitçibaşi, C. (1987). Alienation of the outsider: the plight of migrants. International Migration,
25 (2), 195-210.
306 O M E R O Ğ L U , KANDIR, ADAMS
Kağitçibaşi, Ç. (2003a). Kulturel Psikoloji. {Books on Social Psychology, 2) 9stanbul, Turkey: Sosyal
Psikoloji Dizisi 2, Evrim Publication.
Kağitçibaşi, Ç. (2003b). Yeni 9nsan ve 9nsanlar. {Books on Social Psychology, 1) 9stanbul, Turkey:
Sosyal Psikoloji Dizisi 1, Evrim Publication.
Kalaycioglu, S., & Rittersberger-Tiliç, H. (2000). Intergenerational solidarity networks of instrumen-
tal and cultural transfers within migrant families in Turkey. Ageing & Society, 20, 523-542.
Keleş, R. (1983). Tiirkiye'de Sehirlesme, Konut ve Gecekondu {Urbanization, Dwelling, and
Gecekondu). Ankara, Turkey: Gerçek Publications.
Köklü, N. & Biiyukozturk, S. (2000). Sosyal Bilimler 9gin 9statistige GiriM {Introduction to Statistics
for Social Sciences). Ankara, Turkey: Pegem Publication.
Kolaitis, G., Tsiantis, J., Madianos, M., & Kotsopoulos, S. (2003). Psychosocial Adaptation of
Immigrant Greek Children from The Former Soviet Union. European Child and Adolescent
Psychiatry, 12, 61-14.
Sir, A., Bayram, Y., & Özkan, M. (1998). Zorunlu Iç Göç Yasamis Bir Grupta Travma Sonrasi Stres
Bozuklugu Üzerine On Çalisma. Türk Psikiyatri Dergisi {Journal of Turkish Psychiatry),
9, 173-180.
Sumbiiloglu, K., & Siimbiiloglu, V. (1997). Biyoistatistik. Ankara, Turkey: Hatiboglu Publication.
Tacoli, C. (1998). Rural-Urban Interactions: A Guide to the Literature. Environment and
Urbanization, 10{l), 147-166.
Tezcan, M. (1996). Gog ve Egitim (Migration and Education) II. Ulusal Sosyoloji Kongresi (Toplum
ve Gog) (2nd National Congress of Sociology-The Society and Migration) T.C. Devlet Istatistik
Enstitusii, Mersin, Turkey.
Tezcan, M. (2000). Dis Göç ve Egitim {Migration to Abroad and Education). Ankara, Turkey: Ani
Publication.
Yalgin, C. (2004). Gog Sosyolojisi {Sociology of Migration). Ankara, Turkey: Ani Publication.
Chapter 20
307
308 ZHANG YAN AND WEI-XIAOBING
The migrants are not granted "urban citizenship" and are treated as "outsiders"
(Fan, 2002). Providing education for their children has thus emerged as a chal-
lenge for society. For example, rural migrants in Beijing number 4.09 million and
represent one third of the population (Zhang & Zhao, 2003). Some studies have
shown that migrant peasants moving to cities with their families often have young
preschool children in their households (Zhou, 2004). Official statistics for Beijing
report that the population of migrant children eligible for compulsory education
at close to 240,000, but the actual number of migrant children of preschool age
may be more than 300,000 (Wang, Zhou, & Zhi, 2004).
An analysis of the occupations of peasant workers revealed that almost all work
long hours under poor working conditions and are poorly paid. They work in jobs
that city residents would rarely choose, such as construction workers, sanitation
workers, or vegetable peddlers. Approximately 40.7% are peddlers in agricultural
markets (Han, 2002). Because the parents must work long hours and have no means
for finding nonworking adults to look after their children, the preschool-aged
children grow up with little supervision. Many children of peasant workers do not
participate in public education, partly because they do not speak Mandarin Chinese,
the language used in the Beijing schools. In each of the 1,241 small-scale agricul-
tural markets in Beijing, often 10 or more preschool children wander aimlessly
about (Luo-ailin, 2004). Their parents, busy earning their meager wages, have little
time to care for the children. The children, therefore, become vulnerable to unex-
pected dangers like accidental injury or childnapping.
Although their work is essential to city life, it is as if peasant workers are liv-
ing on an island separated from and rejected by city society (Fan, 2002.) In recent
years, as the central government has paid more attention to agriculture, rural
areas, and peasants, the migrant population has begun to be seen as a problem of
society as a whole. Education authorities at all levels are implementing policies
to address the education for migrant children. For example, the school entrance
fee that some local governments formerly levied for parents who were not regis-
tered as permanent residents has been cancelled. Education authorities have
pointed out emphatically that local government must shoulder the main responsi-
bility for providing education for migrant children. However, until recently, the
government had no accurate statistics on the population of migrant children, and
educational provisions for them remain weak. The government is a long way from
taking such problems seriously. Because of their separation from city society and
the hardship of their lives, few migrant parents show an awareness of their
preschool children's educational needs.
Nonformal education in early years has been taken into great consideration by
many other counties, including developed countries and developing countries.
20. COMMUNITY EDUCATION FOR MIGRANT PEASANTS 309
For example, the Sure Start approach in the United Kingdom (2005) is taking the
form of nonformal community education to offer a variety of programs, includ-
ing early education, child care, health, and family support for people across the
country and particularly people with disadvantaged young children (Sure Start,
2005), whereas middle class parents use playgroups to meet their individual
family needs (e.g., nursing). Thailand and India have provided help for disadvan-
taged groups by means of nonformal education, as well. Since the last decade of
the 20th century, some rural regions in China have provided nonformal early
childhood education for local children, such as child activity station, family sup-
port station, and moving caravan in grassland (Liang-zhishen, 1992).
Peasant workers in the city usually live together in the same area, for instance,
the boundary between city and country or the neighborhood near agricultural
goods markets. Therefore, the community they live in could serve as a platform
for early childhood education. Research both in China and elsewhere indicates
that when the community is the platform for early childhood education, the com-
munity may provide rich resources in terms of human capital and supportive
interest. It was decided that the pilot study would investigate whether the com-
munity could be interested in and supportive of nonformal community-based edu-
cation for their young children. A playgroup as a kind of nonformal education has
its own characteristics and values. Because community education is tied to the
area it serves, the supply of and demand for education are closely linked and can
be developed efficiently and appropriately. Nonformal education is established
according to the local environment and conditions and can offer high benefits at
a low cost. Nonformal education is also open, close to the community, and invites
the participation of the community.
Drawing on the perspectives mentioned here, we can see that community as
the platform of early childhood education is rich in educational resources. To
solve the problem of migrant children's education in a practical and realistical
manner requires appropriate forms and approaches. The pilot survey was estab-
lished to answer the following: Can we provide a kind of early childhood educa-
tion in the form of nonformal community education?
We selected Beijing Si Huan market as our pilot survey subject. Through inter-
views (see appendix I, Research Protocol), we tried to determine the educational
needs of migrant children around Si Huan and find some ways to, provide a com-
munity-based program that was both practical and realistic. From the beginning
we were aware that we had limited resources with which to implement a program.
However, we had a firm commitment to help the peasant workers and their
children in the Si Huan area with integrating into urban living. We were commit-
ted to helping both parents and their children shake off their isolated status and
become a part of the city life. For the sake of healthy development of Si Huan
children we wanted to build a strong and friendly community. Activities of Si
Huan play group promote the self-improvement of parents and children but it's
not enough. Starting from the beginning, we wanted go on to build a strong market
310 ZHANG YAN AND WEI-XIAOBING
community that could be self sustaining. The syrvey was to identify the needs and
ways in which we could take the first steps toward those goals. At the same time,
we would be providing a place in which students who plan to become teachers
could gain from onsite experiences and increase their ability to work effectively
with families. The project would provide students with personal experience in
helping parents find ways to educate their children within their own community
and at the same time assist with their integration into urban living.
Si Huan market is near the old city zone De Sheng Men. It is a large integrated
market where more than 500 peddlers' stands are operated by peasant workers,
most of whom have worked here for more than 3 years. Of the approximately
60-70 preschool children of these workers, few attend kindergarten and more
than 80% do not attend school. They saunter through the market all day or remain
in the booth with their parents. For the parents, making a living is the most impor-
tant thing in their lives. They do not consider preschool education to be essential
for their children, nor can they afford it. Survey results showed that most peddlers
hoped their children could receive some kind of education and some expressed
willingness to join in educational activities as volunteers. The survey indicated
that although this floating population does not see early childhood education as a
pressing need, the parents hope that their children will receive appropriate edu-
cation. To this end, we attempted to set up a nonformal playgroup.
Because situations in any country vary, our playgroup has its own special char-
acteristics and philosophy. We established a research approach to provide sup-
portive help to the parents with child care. We hoped to stimulate and enhance the
content knowledge and child care ability of parents. We want to develop early
childhood education from the bottom up within the community, so it could flour-
ish without outside leadership. The emblem we designed for the playgroup con-
sists of a bud inside four circles, indicating that it is a local community that
provides education for children and where volunteers, parents, and the commu-
nity (e.g., local residents, council) cooperate.
practices, lending books, talking with parents, holding parents' meetings, exchang-
ing experiences of educating children, and so forth. We also established a parents'
leadership group and sought appropriate parents as leaders.
better. They also quickly learned Mandarin Chinese, the language of instruction
in the Beijing schools, and now can speak it fluently.
Yang-Chen Jie was a child from He Nan province who did not speak Mandarin
but a local dialect. His mother accompanied him in our activities. Because of the
language barrier, Yang-Chen was shy and self-conscious and dared not take part
in any activity in spite of his mother's encouragement. One month latter, although
he still did not take part in activities alone, he became more confident and will-
ing to play with other children.
When XuQi-teng first took part in the playgroup, she did not pay much atten-
tion to the other children and was listless. Her attitude changed as a result of the
teachers' supportive help and the interesting activities available in the playgroup.
Now when XuQi-teng comes into the room she says "Hello" to the teacher with-
out her mother reminding her to do so.
Last summer, some of the children's brothers and sisters came to Beijing and
joined us. Licao-huimin, sister of Licao-huikai, an 11-year-old in Grade 2, and
other older children became capable assistants in the playgroup.
Approximately 60 children benefited from our work and continue to show
further positive changes. For example, Liuv-zhihai was aggressive at first, often
fighting with others, and was rejected by his peers. After taking part in the play-
group for some time, he learned how to express himself properly through friendly
words and actions, and his peer relationships gradually improved.
Observed Benefits for Parents. Parents have begun to understand and accept
the Si Huan playgroup, and increasing numbers of parents now wish to join.
Many came to realize that play is a form of education, and they understood more
about childhood learning and how to support it. By participating in the playgroup,
many children participate in activities and learn games and songs. They go home
and tell about what they have learned. Their families are glad to know that their
children learn through play. Some help their children to review what the teacher
taught them in playgroup. Li-xiaolong's father said,
I've been in Beijing for more than 10 years. Thank you for coming here to organize
these activities for our children. They are growing up day by day and need to have
some education, but there are few cheap kindergartens nearby, and we parents have
to stay here to make a living. We could not pay too much attention on our kids' edu-
cation. We hope the Si Huan playgroup can last all the time.
Every day, many parents joined in and helped with the educational activities.
More than 50 have taken part in the parents' meeting. Some active parents came
forward and joined the Si Han playgroup to organize activities in the afternoons.
Parents were invited by the teachers to learn how to play games with the children,
how to teach them to play ball, how to help them to color pictures and so forth.
314 ZHANG YAN AND WEI-XIAOBING
DISCUSSION
workers needs more attention. We need to help peasant workers and their children
to avoid isolation and to participate in city life. For the healthy development of Si
Huan children, we must build a strong and friendly community. The activities of
the Si Huan playgroup not only promote self-improvement among parents but
also help the work of the market management. After talking with people from the
market management office and the community committee, we agreed to build the
playgroup and to try to build a civilized market.
how appropriately to reach them and meet their educational needs. There is a need
to further refine the curriculum and make use of rural culture toys and materials.
The management of the playgroup needs to coordinate with community organi-
zations for formal and nonformal education and with policymakers who have and
effect on the education of migrant children. We see a need to seek amendments
to policies at the city level.
Through our action and research, we hope to promote playgroups as a kind of
nonformal community education to make education accessible to more migrant
children. At the same time, we wish to advance reform in early childhood educa-
tion programs and management systems in cities in China
REFERENCES
China Preschool Education Research Association. (1999). Implementation opinions about the
Development of National Early Childhood Education during the Nineth Five-year Plan. Important
Document Collection of People's Republic of China's Early Childhood Education. Beijing, China:
Beijing Normal University Press.
Fan, C. C. (2002). The Elite, the Natives, and the Outsiders: Migration and Labor Market
Segmentation in Urban China. Annals of the Association of American Geographers, 92, 103-124.
Han, J. (Ed.). (2002). Matters Concerning Education of Children of Migrant Population. Beijing,
China: Forum of Party Cadre in China.
Han-jialing. (Eds.) (2002). Matters Concerning Education of Children of Migrant Population.
Beijing, China: Forum of Party Cadre in China.
Liang-zhishen. (1992). The Flourishing Development of Community Early Childhood Education in
China. Beijing, China: Beijing Normal University Press.
Luo-ailin. (2004, April 1). How long will the Fairyland for vegetable peddlers' kids last? Early
Childhood Education Weekly.
Stringer, E. T. (1999). Action Research (2nd ed.). Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage.
Sure Start. (2005). Welcome to sure start. Retrieved May 19, 2005, from http://www.surestart.gov.uk/
Tang, S. (1996). Many kinds of nursery ways to adapt to different needs. Early Childhood Education,
10, 23-24.
Wang, D., Zhou, L., & Zhi, P. (Eds.). (2004). Basic Education for the Children of Rural-Urban
Migrant Workers: Policies and Innovations (UNESCO-sponsored publication). Zhejiang, China:
Zhejiang University Press.
Zhang, Y. (1997). Management of Kindergarten. Beijing, China: Normal University Press.
Zhang, Y. (Ed.). (2002). Report on the Investigation of the Management System Reform of Kindergartens
in Beijing. Unpublished manuscript. Beijing, China: School of Education, Beijing Normal University.
Zhang, Y.(2004a). The development of private early childhood education in the mainland of China. In
Chen (Ed.) Private Early Childhood Education in the Mainland of China and Taiwan (pp.
345-357).Taibei, China: Wunan Book Co.
Zhang, Y (2004b). Problems and solutions of community early childhood education in the Mainland
of China, Preschool Education, 6, 38-39.
Zhang, L., & Zhao, S. (2003). Let Us Share Sunshine Together—The Report of Migrant Children in
Nine Cities of China. Beijing, China: Renmin Education Press.
Zhou, Y (Ed.). (2004). Observation: One Hundred of Poor Migrant Peasant Families. Beijing, China:
China Youth Press.
318 ZHANG YAN AND WEI-XIAOBING
APPENDIX I
Anna Kirova
University of Alberta, Canada
Leah D. Adams
Eastern Michigan University, USA
321
322 KIROVA AND ADAMS
for continual support for teachers who are already in school systems is emphasized
by many of the teachers and school administrators who participated in the studies.
Availability of appropriate curriculum resources, sufficient funding for children
who need to learn the language of instruction, or adequate psychological and coun-
seling services for victims of violence and trauma before they entered the host
country are among the most commonly described areas of pressing need.
Second, because these studies include participants who have migrated from all
six inhabited continents, they represent a wide range of ethnic, cultural, racial, and
linguistic groups. This has allowed us to appreciate the unique and complex amal-
gamation of circumstances and experiences that make each family and child
unique. The more we learned about the individual families' and children's
approaches to coping with multiple losses and adjusting to the new culture, as well
as solving problems and creating new ways of living, the less meaningful the labels
such as immigrant, refugee, migrant, asylum seeker, newcomer, or TCKs (third cul-
ture kids) became. These categories were helpful in providing information about the
status of the persons involved in the various studies, about the general reasons for
their migration, and perhaps to some extent about their experiences during the pre-
migration period. However, the variations among the experiences of the individual
families in these categories clearly show that no generalizations could or should be
made based solely on the label given to the family. Diversity exists in every group,
whether refugees or nations, whether of a single ethnic or cultural group or of a
multicultural group. The labels not only reduce the diversity in each group to a sin-
gle category but also are intangible as the schools do not always know the legal sta-
tus of children who enter the system. In some cases presented here, teachers were
not aware of where the newcomers in their classrooms came from or what they had
experienced before entering the school. The studies suggest that the lack of infor-
mation about children in the mainstream classrooms can be a two-edged sword. On
one hand, it can free teachers from any preconceived notions about what the child
might be like based on the label given to him or her. On the other hand, it can pre-
vent teachers from being as helpful as they might be if a child's unique circum-
stances warrant particular attention.
Third, because the numerous pedagogical approaches explored and described
here by the authors provide strong evidence in support of each child's unique
circumstances, it is evident that there is no single right way of teaching the immi-
grant, migrant, refugee, or internationally mobile student. However, too heavy of
an emphasis on the uniqueness of individual children's circumstances should not
lead to an individualized view that ignores the cultural resources present in all
ethnic groups. Some authors warn that a strong emphasis on the individual child's
background can reproduce the asymmetrical dichotomy of "us" and "them" used
by dominant ethnic majorities in the host countries as a framework to interpret
interethnic and intercultural relationships. Such an emphasis can lead to the social
construction of "them" as having individual family problems associated with
specific ethnic identities. The authors make us aware that whatever labels are or
324 KIROVA AND ADAMS
are not used for migrant families and their children, prejudice against new arrivals
exists. It is a documented fact of life in the societies represented here. The preju-
dices and biases that exist in the general communities are not left outside the door
of the school building. Most authors address this issue and emphasize the need
for teachers to work conscientiously against their own biases and those of the
students. They call for actively addressing and rigorously contesting the issues of
racism, prejudice, discrimination, and exclusion in schools.
Fourth, the works in this volume demonstrate that educational communities
around the world can be a leading force in educational reform to ensure the right
of all children to high-quality education. The educators and educational
researchers in the countries represented here ask critical questions about the goals
of education, the philosophy of education, the practices in their respective com-
munities, and what future directions might be. As the most "national" of institu-
tions, schools are caught in the tension between their traditional role in
reproducing national culture and national identity, which is seen as a way of
stabilizing society, and the expectation that by preparing society's future adults,
they will be the force of change.
The realization that the future of education depends on critical analysis of the
state of today's education policies and practices makes crucial the debates on
multiculturalism and pluralism both in schools and in the broader society. The
authors raise their voices strongly in this regard. This in itself demonstrates the
vigor and dedication in the international education community that is not only
struggling and coping with the influx of immigrants in their countries but also try-
ing to conceptualize this change. One way to conceptualize the future of educa-
tion systems worldwide is to see the current changes in the makeup of the student
population as an advantage, an opportunity for learning, and an overall enrich-
ment of educational opportunities for all involved: children, parents, teachers,
communities, and societies. Thus, global migration could be interpreted, as it is
by many authors, not only as an opportunity to challenge the existing education
system but also as an impetus for positive educational change.
Fifth, a number of studies on children's experiences of immigration included
here indicate that educators acknowledge the difficulties that immigrant and
refugee children may experience after the many losses in their lives and the many
changes they face as they enter education systems in their host countries.
However, the educators do not see children as helpless victims of these changes.
Rather, they recognize the children as agents who actively negotiate their new
identities between their home culture and the dominant culture. Researchers
describe children's strategies: actively learning the new language to establish and
maintain meaningful peer relationships at school, using television shows to learn
about life in the new country and to engage in conversations with their majority-
group peers, working hard to achieve in school, and actively seeking information
about the new school location before arrival. As some of the studies also suggest,
21. LESSONS LEARNED/FUTURE IMPLICATIONS 325
the fact that children are prepared to advise other children who are also new to
the school and country shows that children understand the strategies they use to
cope with the pressures in school and are capable of assessing their effectiveness.
Sixth, the parents' views captured by the researchers speak to the complex and
sometimes opposing forces affecting both parents and children in shaping their
new identities. Parents' determination to succeed in the host country can result in
high expectations for their children's education and a desire for them to function
successfully in the larger society. Some parents in these studies are critical of the
education system in their new host country and express concerns about their
children's opportunities to move upward in society as a result of their education.
Some parents feel powerless to help their children succeed in school and fear they
may face rejection, discrimination, and marginalization in school and in the larger
society. Others actively confront the system in protecting their children's rights to
equal participation and quality education.
Parents are also concerned with preserving their own cultural values and
lifestyles and wish to raise their children according to their cultural expectations.
However, children's quicker adaptation to mainstream culture and the language of
the host country leads, in some cases, to a reversal of family roles and increases
the parents' feelings of loss of control. The interplay between these conflicting
forces, paired with the strong influence of the peer group, affects the individual
child's sense of self and belonging to either, both, or neither of the cultures.
Seventh, the numerous research approaches to the study of educational life
experiences of immigrant, migrant, refugee, and internationally mobile children
and their families demonstrate that various research methods allow varying types
of questions about these experiences to be addressed. An array of research meth-
ods and approaches is represented here. Although each study reveals an important
aspect of the effects of globalization on either children, their families, their
schools, or a combination of all three, the use of multiple- or mixed-method
designs in addressing the complex issues related to these experiences could be
fruitful for future studies. There is also a need for more longitudinal studies of
families and children of immigrant and internationally mobile backgrounds, espe-
cially of those who have experienced family separation or violence before migra-
tion. Interdisciplinary studies that allow for the educational, psychological,
health, and economic factors that shape the experiences of immigrant and refugee
families with young children to be understood should be considered if a compre-
hensive picture of the complex interrelationship between them is to be achieved.
Multidisciplinary studies on acculturation and the rights of all immigrants and
newly arrived minorities are urgently needed.
Studies that explore the strengths of families with immigrant and refugee
backgrounds, as well as their children's agency in the process of acculturation and
development of their new identities, are extremely important. Educators can
approach the work with these students and their families not from the point of
326 KIROVA AND ADAMS
view of deficiency, but from the point of view of building on their already existing
strengths. The adversity that almost all transitional-migrant families experience
brings out these strengths. However, unless they are recognized as strengths, the
deficit models of educational interventions may continue to be a force in the field
of education.
Eighth, advocacy for newly arrived children can take many forms. In Part 1, it
takes the form of advocating for all children's right to accessible, quality educa-
tion and for their right to have teachers who are adequately prepared to teach in
multicultural, multiethnic, and multilingual classrooms. In Part 2, advocacy
includes understanding the varying cultural expectations immigrant and refugee
children need to meet at home and in school and the need to use specific strate-
gies to support them in their adjustment to the expectations of schools in the host
countries. Part 3 provides a description of challenging government policies in
educating displaced children. In Part 4, advocacy builds on children's agency in
the acculturation process. In Part 5, advocacy is for community-based education
with a high level of parental involvement and control.
By pointing to the efforts made by educators worldwide and by identifying
future directions in the development of these efforts, the authors become strong
advocates for the right of all children to protection from bias, fear, and misinter-
pretation and for their right to quality education. Advocacy includes learning
more about the many and changing needs of immigrant children as they move
through each stage of their acculturation process, knowing that there is no uni-
versal timeline or pathway for acculturation and that acculturation is a complex
and multidimensional process. It also involves raising educators' awareness of
cultural misunderstandings based on lack of accurate information about culturally
acceptable and relevant behavioral patterns and differences in cognitive norms in
various cultures. The advocacy of teachers for "slow bilingual approaches" to
learning the language of instruction and retaining children's native language to
maintain cultural and family relationships is crucial to immigrant and refugee
children's successful acculturation. The development of bicultural identities and
dual loyalties are, among others, the anticipated and desired outcomes of this
process. Recognizing that achieving such outcomes for all children is far from
being a reality makes the need for advocacy at all levels and in all forms a pri-
mary task for educators and educational researchers around the world. We hope
that all readers of this volume will find a renewed commitment to the world's
children and especially to those who are new arrivals—wherever they may be.
Author Index
A B
Aboud, F., 260 Bachmair, B., 174
Aci, A., 303, 304 Bærug,A., 71
Ackers, H. L., 185, 187 Baghurst, R, 207
Adams, L., 9 Baider, L., 106
Adjukovic, D., 206 Bailey, B., 302
Adjukovic, M., 206 Baines, E., 152, 156
Adkins, M. A., 232 Bakhtin, M., 196
Aitken, S. C., 156 Baldassar, L., 207
Akiba, D., 302 Ballinger, A., 280, 281,288
Alexander, R., 192 Bandura,A., 136, 165
Al-Haj, M., 106 Banks, J. A., 18
Alvin, N., 70 Bankston III, C. L., 8, 9
Ames, L. B., 270 Barber, M., 195
Andersen, L. R, 71 Barrere, L., 83
Anderson, A., 220 Barrett G., 129
Anderson, B., 170 Bartolome, L. I., 5, 8, 135
Andreoni, H., 212 Baruth, L., 100
Ani, C., 70 Bar-Yosef, R. W., 107
Antonsen, R., 70, 72, 74 Bastien, D. T., 209
Appadurai, A., 170 Batelaan, P., 18
Archer, D., 152, 153 Bauman, A., 205
Armour-Hileman, Baumeister, R. R, 99, 152
V. L., 205, 206 Baumert, J., 41
Arney, R, 207 Baungaard Rasmussen, L., 21
Arshad, R., 153 Bayram, Y., 302
Arsky, G. H., 70, 72, 73 Beard, J. L., 70
Artelt, C., 41 Beavin, J. H., 153
Asendorpf, J. B., 45 Beck, U., 204
Axelsson, M., 31 Beekman,T., 186, 187
Azuma, H., 104, 116 Beiser, M., 88, 205, 206, 254
327
328 AUTHOR INDEX
337
338 SUBJECT INDEX
changing family ecologies, 140, 141 school placement of, 140, See also Age
new education system, 6 appropriate school placement of
age appropriate school placement school issues, 144-145
of, 88, 140 self-concept of, 43-48, 125, 188,
agency and, 279, 325, 326 189, 196,270,288,325
assessment of, 8, 99, 101 self-esteem of, 4 1 - 3 , 45-48,
bicultural identity of, 40, 42 142, 280, 303
children's rights and, 211, 213, 325 socialization of, 43, 84, 103-119
competence and, 289 social adjustment of, 101, 135,
diet of, 15, 16, 75 148, 227, 294, 295, 299-304
educational attainment level of, 14 social competence of, 30, 88
emotional adjustment of, 8 social exclusion of, 15, 64, 65
exclusion of, 4, 64, See also trauma and, 206, 209, 212, 213,
Social exclusion of 224, 227, 232, See also
friendships and, 5, 13, 38, 71, 71, Posttraumatic stress disorder and
116, 124, 132, 157 views and voices of, 135-138
global issues for, 13-16 voices of, 135-138, 139-150
grade placement of, 8 Immigrant parents,
health education of, 15, 69, 78 adaptive adult images, 105, 109, 111
identity formation of, 8, 175 attitudes towards the host culture
inclusion movement and, 56, 57 and, 85, 105
inclusions of, See Inclusion beliefs of, 9
movement and expectations of, 108, 110, 115
individual needs assessment of, expressive values and, 104
8,214,223,226,231 fathers' roles, 109, 111
instrumental skills and success in images of fathers and, 108-113
the host culture and, 103 parental image of an "adaptive
integration of, See Integration adult", 84, 105, 115
movement and parent-teacher conferences, 9, 229, 230
integration movement and, 56, 57 preserving culture and traditions
intercultural competence and, 20 and, 114
intercultural understanding and, values of, 111, See also Cultural
136, 158, 162, 165 values of
nonverbal behaviors (NVB) and, voice of, 213
136, 152, 154, 159, 165 Immigrants,
nonverbal communication and, assimilation of, 3, 5, 31, 42, 58, 85
130, 136, 152, 165, 265, 270, 324 diet of, 15, 16, 75
nutrition of, 67-70, 74, 75, 78, 79 discrimination, 14, 15, 42, 54-59,
peer relationships and, 130, 136, 64-66, 106, 136, 141, 200,
152, 165, 265, 270, 324 241,242,257,261,324,325,
performance level of, 9 See also Racial discrimination
posttraumatic stress disorder and, and ethnic discrimination of
201, 208, 227, 232, 302, 303 exclusion of, 3, 14, 15, 55, 56, 64,
right to education and, See Education 65, 106, 158, See also Political
for all, High-quality education, exclusion of
right to participation and, 57 from Ethiopia, 106-107
SUBJECT INDEX 343
language policy and, 22, 28, 94, 209, 231 Societal models of masculinity,
learning process and, 31, 44 gender and, 43
self-esteem and well-being and, self-concept and, 41, 42
31,44,219 self-esteem and, 44
Segmented assimilation, 42 Special education needs (SEN),
Self-concept, of forces personnel's children,
acculturation and, 43-48, 125, 22,55-58,231,280
188, 189, 196,270,288,325 Still photography,
culture-specific influences and, 43 visual data collection and, 153, 154
factors that influence, 42-44 Structured interview protocol, 239
gender-specific influences and, 43 Student-centered approach,
scales for, 46 reform movement in Denmark and, 29
Self-efficacy, Sudanese parents, 237-238
depression and, 130 Survey,
parents' sense of, 130 children survey,
parents' perception of children's parent survey,
difficulties and, 130 teacher survey,
Self-esteem,
acculturation and, 41-43, T
45-48, 142, 280, 303 Teacher interviews, 92
factors that influence, 4 2 - 4 Teacher qualifications,
scales for, 47 minority children and, 24
Semistructured interviews, 142, 239 Teacher training,
Social adaptation, 293-297, 299-305 data on, 22-24
and skills of migrant children perceived helpfulness of, 95-96
attending primary school in Teachers,
Turkey, 293-306 and their roles in children's social
findings about, 299-301 adjustment, 101, 135, 148,
in primary school, 303-304 227, 294, 295, 299-304
Social competence, Teaching materials,
nonverbal behaviors (NVB) and, manipulative materials and helping
136, 152, 154, 159, 165 NAC, 20, 24, 59, 63, 94
student-centered approach and, 29 Teaching strategies,
Social exclusion, 64-65 adjusting standards and, 94
Social inequalities, dealing with language barriers and,
circle of poverty and, 53, 54 93,94,96, 101, 126, 175,230
Latin America and, 53-55, 64-66 demonstrating, 94, 99, 114
Social mirroring, engaging NAC in non-language
self-concept and, 44 activities and, 96
self-esteem and, 41, 42 helping NAC learn and, 94, 99, 114
Socialization of children, 43, 108 influence on, 36, 89, 92, 93, 95,
role of home and school in, 103-119 98, 99, 101, 305
Societal models of femininity, repeating instructions and, 94
gender and, 43 social-emotional support and, 92-94,
self-concept and, 41, 42 96, 99, 101, 221, 223,
self-esteem and, 44 226,227,231
SUBJECT INDEX 349
time and patience and, 101 Trauma,
using gesture and, 94 acculturation and migration-related
Television shows, trauma, 206, 209
access to experiences and, 174 counselling and, 8,209, 227,
autobiographical memories or 232, 234, 260, 323
histories and, 176 forced migration and, 182, 200
children's, 136, 152, 154, 159, 165 posttraumatic stress disorder and,
creating continuities and, 174-175, 180 227, 232, 302, 303
establishing location and belonging pre-migration and, 258
and, 178-179 TV talk,
games and chats and, 137, 172, shared space and, 172, 173
175,-176, 324 social inclusion and, 174
learning about family and, 172-174
Third Culture Children (TCC), See also U-V
Third Culture Kids (TCK), United Nations Declaration of
academic success and, 268 Human Rights,
adaptation and, 268 rights of immigrants and, 13
definition of, 267-268 Visual narratives,
experiences of, 267-278 fotonovelas as, 158
feelings of loss and, 269-272, 274, 275
international school in Singapore W
and, 263,268, 271,272 Waves of immigration,
interviews with, 107, 223, 252 Ethiopian immigration to
negative feelings of, 269-272, 274, 275 Israel and, 84, 106, 107
positive feelings of, 269-272, 274, 275 Israel and recent waves of,
sense of belonging and, 268 84, 105, 106
social and emotional challenges Russian immigration to Israel
and, 268 and, 84, 106
Third Culture Kids (TCK), 268 Well-being,
Traditional dietary beliefs and practices, school achievement and, 26
cultural identity and, 68
Transnational displacement of children,
an Australian perspective, 203-217